The Wastes Wiki
Register
Advertisement
Forums: Index > Roleplaying > Roleplaying: The End



This is an RP about the end of the D.C. Crusade. Yes, the very same genocidal zealots who came and either killed everyone in your settlement for loving ghouls, or came, killed the ghouls, and took over the settlement. The very men who, from a ceratin point of view, brought an rather chaotic form of order to D.C. As this RP spirals downward, the Capitol Wastes will once again revert to the way it was before the Crusade's Empire and it's reign. This is the End. This RP starts one month after the end of the "Crusade vs. Claws Pg. 9" RP.

Factions: The Crusade, the Last Legion (Time for Run4's traitors, lol), the Tribal factions

  • You don't have to be part of a faction, but you can ally yourself with one (if you hate the Crusade, go to either of the last two)


Act 1[]

Crusade PFC Hawkins was drenched in irridated rain. Inside the trenches, just about everyone was either nervous, scared shitless, or both. It was really happening, wasn't it? Numerous military setbacks, weeks of hard fighting in the north and south, tales of FairFax and of 7th Hell's remaining troops rallying to Colonel Roarke. The stories of tribals capturing troops and scalping them, the tales of the ferals and the rumors of unrest at York up in the Northeast. It was all coming to end, wasn't it? Hawkins was scared out of his mind. After the Void, he had reverted back to his usual self. Rice was gone. DeSoto was gone. Drake was long dead. How many guys were left? Just him and Harrison? This time, there would be no golden gun for their salvation. Moore had been full of empty promises and lies. Now it was coming back to haunt them. Gripping his G36C, he motioned for Harrison to follow him, and continued down his usual patrol route in the trenches. It was dark, smelly, and rainy, and this area north of Jerusalem was a rather dadly hellhole, even for guys with combat expierience in New York against MoS troops like Hawkins. Whatever. It didn't matter. Everything had just hit the fan after Jerusalem had been breached. Now Hawkins and his buds just had to wait for the storm to arrive.


Fireman0504 Here's to the Crusade! The most common enemy since the Enclave! Been a good run boys and girls!

Stefanie McRae picked her way through the ruins of D.C. She'd been out scavenging for supplies for the last day. Today'd been a good one. She came across an old, abandoned drug store. Now she had a shit ton of Buffout to fuel her addiction, and she'd been able to finally secure and get rid of her crave for Pork N' Beans. She'd been hiding out in D.C. for about a month with the groups she'd met up with outside of the place they called Jerusalem. She was simply waiting for them to make their move so she could head back to Zanadu and get on with life, such as it was. She'd done a pretty good job stocking up on things here though. She'd even come across a Mister Handy unit in an abandoned house. "He" called himself Jeeves, and he was everything he was cracked up to be. He was helping her haul water and food from the day's scrounging at the moment, as she picked her way back toward the hideout, she heard a distinctive 'thud thud thud' overhead. Ducking into a pile of rubble, she watched as Jeeves moved inside another building and the VTOL moved overhead. If there was one thing these Crusaders did right, it was make the D.C. ruins safer for everyone. They'd pushed the Super Mutants to near extinction, something that the Brotherhood of Steel had been trying for two decades to do. They'd also eradicated the feral ghoul population and destroyed most of the Raider gangs who prowled the ruins. The only ones left were the Brotherhood of Steel, and they largely kept to themselves around their Outposts at the Mall, the White House, the Citadel, and the GNR. Stefanie walked back out as the sound faded and continued on her way.

User:Ramsey03:48, 21 April 2009 (UTC)// I'll create the character page later.

Mathis Alexander had watched as this Crusade came into order, the devastation and genocide they caused to an already flawed world. Being a historian, Mathis had already recorded most of the events that have happened recently, this including the Crusade's obvious downfall. At the beginning Mathis was temped to join the extremist organization, but after seeming the destruction and war they caused, he reconsidered. Being the wanderer he is, he won't likely stay in D.C for much longer. He was considering heading to Austin after hearing about the Outcast's sudden Exodus there. Something important was going on in that city, but it would have to wait. He would stay in D.C for the time being to record the last breaths of this imperial faction. He spit as he loaded up to move out. Grabbing his Ak-103, or "Chinese Assault Rifle" as they called it around here, he left the partiality destroyed apartment complex he was resting in. To his north was the remaining Crusade forces, he would go and observe them today, he had a feeling in his bones that something was going to happen.

With that Mathis walked into the rising North, oblivious to what events linger in the near future.


--Cerebral plague 12:54, 21 April 2009 (UTC)

Jack had been with one of the others from the group from earlier. They were approaching a house, unaware of what was inside of it. He had his M79 grenade launcher out, filled with the buckshot shell. Signaling to the man behind him, when he finished picking the lock, he would bust in and shoot anyone on the the right side of the room, then the left would be cleared by Jack. When he was almost finished, he heard talking. "Do you think it was smart to hide in here Phillip? I mean, the Crusade will find us, and they'll kill us for our relationship. "Don't worry Thomas, we'll run away from all this, head to the country, or that Oasis place. That's filled with people that would respect us for who we really are!" Jack was trying not to burst out laughing, he hoped to god that they weren't talking about what he thought they were talking about.

Vegas adict17:32, 21 April 2009 (UTC) 

Sergeant Aaron Kingly of the Rivet City Police looked out over the pile of slag that had once been liberty prime.The brotherhood hadn't even bothered to move it.He had cheered as the giant robot obliterated crusaders and had been the first to sign up for what Harkness called the Freedom of DC Corps.Most of rivet city had joined in the end and now deep in the bowls of the ship men and women were being trained by harkness and given Guns from traders on the Marketplace.The Crusade would burn and the citizens of rivet city would stand by the campfire and laugh.

KuHB1aM20:29, 21 April 2009 (UTC)// Vegas, even in a defeated state, the Crusade could destroy Rivet City several times over with nothing but their pistols, lol. Notice how we demolished all of your waster armies with a few battalions?

Hawkins stood in the ruins with Harrison, completely alert. Word was that the tribals were moving for their monthly migration from the north. Except this time, it wasn't monthly. They'd been coming towards this point in the defenses, known as Gilead Point, every day now. Gilead Point was the last strong point before Jerusalem. It was the epitomy of week's of hard work of shoveling irridated dirt shit and removing dead trees for barricade cover. It was centered around an old skyscraper, once known for the lavish guests it used to hold as a hotel. Now it was the last line before a complete and utter military defeat. Hawkins, now a Sergeant, motioned for his men to follow him, their orange-colored eyes glowing in the rain of the day.

It was quiet, as usual. Nothing had happened since the end of last week, when the tribals had started gathering in force. Captain Frederick Thomas; asshole commander, former New York Garrison soldier, and now the sole leader of the the defense of Jerusalem's meager territory, sat on the top floor of Gilead Point. His desk was old and creaky, and it shuddered when he placed his power armor helmet down upon it. An aide walked inside, his voice clearly nervous. "Sir." He began. Thomas acknowledged him. "The Tribals just hit another patrol. In force this time. CCI, or what remains of it, is reporting that they're marching, and even with their primitive gear, will overwhelm Gilead." The aide finished. Thomas cursed under his breath. Sure, he been under this situation only monthes before. But he had resources; men, supplies, VTOLs; he had time. Now, the Last Legion was coming, the Tribals were marching, and whatever remnants of that blasted waster army was gathering too. Thomas waved the aide off, and turned towards his rather crumbled up map. He had some last-minute last stand planning to do.

Run4urLife!21:27, 21 April 2009 (UTC) 

Colonel Nathaniel Roarke marched with his soldiers. The Last Legion had been growing by the day as more and more Crusade soldiers defected to their cause. They had just destroyed another attack by Wastelanders. These pin pricks were becoming more and more common the closer they got to DC. But Roarke smiled nonetheless. He saw his target ahead. The waters of the Potomac River. He signalled for the Diplomat to his right to move around with the camera.

Roarke marched over his makeshift bridge. A truck pushed into the river with some scrap metal to bridge the gap between it and the banks. Hardly glorious, but this was a momentous occassion. As he stood on the center of the bridge, the Diplomat took the picture. Colonel Roarke crossing the Potomac, war following in his wake. The eyes of his T-51b glowing the same menacing red of the BRA armor his soldiers wore. He had been glad to make that modification. It scared the shit out of anyone who fought him head-on. Jerusalem would be his. Moore, Thomas, Taggart and any other commanders left would hang at his orders. The Crusade would be his.

KuHB1aM22:14, 21 April 2009 (UTC) 

Fred pulled up the dossier of his former ally, Colonel Roarke. Such a sad tale. They'd been childhood allies, back when they used to play pranks on Moore, like that time with the stun grenade under the toilet in Moore's tower retreat. Of course, Adam had taken full blame for that one. Moore had been really pissed about that. Fred continued to look through the dossier. Distuinguised service record. Several medals, including a Legion Merit badge, had attached to his record. Now, Adam had defected, and he was marching against the very thing that had given him purpose. Fred needed to stop him here. He needed to convince him that what he was doing was wrong.

Hawkins and his respective platoon patrolled the streets. As usual, the wasters scattered, the feral ghouls got shot down, the super mutant at the corner got blown to bits, and the enemy tribal patrol got obliterated. Nothing unusual. However, what was unusual was that the Last Legion had been sighted in this area; in fact, they were in sight. An advance party of several men, still clad in crusade equipment, rounded the corner about the same time as Hawkins and his men. Everyone stopped. Wasters watched from alleys and windows. The occasional dog squealed. Hawkins, aswell as everyone else present, immediatly raised their weapons. Harrison barked at the defectors. "Drop your weapons!" He roared, his rifle pointed true. The enemy sergeant repeated the very same sentence. "Do I have a kill order, Hawkins?" Harrison roared, the tension rising. "Hawkins, I need an order!" He yelled again. Hawkins was frozen. It was against the code. Crusade soldiers never shot their own, no matter if they had defected or had deserted. "I need an order, Hawkins, dammit!" Harrison said again. The enemy soldiers held their positions too. It was completely silent. Not a bird moved. The rain became a figment of imagination. But both sides refused to fire. Instead, Hawkins and his respective enemy commander did something crazy; they lowered weapons. Harrison, in disbelief, let his shotgun droop down. The enemy sergeant nodded in sympathy. They were still brothers. No matter whose side they were on, they were all Crusade, through and through. In old times, this would have been considered Christmas Day. Not that it mattered, anyhow.


Solbur22:33, 21 April 2009 (UTC) 

The device gave a long whining noise, and Conor Strauss responded by giving it a strong thump, at which point it abruptly stopped. He glanced over to Worthington, who was checking over the rest of the equipment, so Strauss nodded to himself, flicked a switch and brought the speaker to his mouth. It didn't matter who was listening, this needed to be said.

"Good afternoon, Capital Wasteland. You're listening to Claws Radio, which has been suffering some unexpected downtime these past few months. Your regular DJ, Jason, isn't here. In fact, he and the rest of the Claws are galavanting 'round the country with the wind at their heels. 'cept me. I'm Conor Strauss, third down the chain of command of the group, and in the absense of my associates, I've taken charge of what's left, which consists of a base, some robots and a few turrets. As I'm sure a few of you know, there was a military strike against the Crusade occupants about a month back. I was a part of that strike, as were many others. The thing is, and let me be honest with ya; I'm not sure whether the damage we did made the situation here in D.C. better, or worse. It seems the whole place has gone to hell, and between the infighting and the fallout from that nuke, lots of people have died. At the risk of sounding like J.H. Eden, I'm going to just say that things will get better. I've never been good at speeches and shit, but I know the Wastes as well as any of you and I probably know how the Crusade operates a lot better, so just trust me when I say things will be alright. Thanks for listening and have a nice day, Capital Wasteland. If you want some music, switch on over Galaxy News right now, Three Dog sounds like he's just finishing up his weather forecast. Peace."

Strauss flicked the switch back to its off-position and placed the speaker on the table, leaning back in his chair and peering up at the dim lights of the Super-Duper Mart. Strauss sighed as his robot helper turned off the equipment. He wasn't sure who, if anyone had just heard that. He doubted that people would be too interested in a station that had been down for months, but he had to get that sort of message off his chest to somebody, even if it was just a mole rat who'd burrowed into an abandoned shack with a working radio. He tapped a few buttons on his Pip-Boy and tuned into GNR, listening to the music playing. "Maybe" by the Ink Spots, he'd heard Three Dog call it before. He'd always liked that song since he first heard it, and it always managed to cheer him up, somehow. Worthington, after finishing shutting down the gear, hovered over and poured Strauss a glass of whiskey. The robot had excellent intuition. He sure felt like he needed it. And so, punctuated by the music, the noise of Worth's dual rotors as he hovered and the sounds of gunfire and lasers outside as the turrets and reprogrammed Sentry Bots defended the base from whatever threatening had gotten near this time, Strauss simply thought to himself in silence for some time.

Radiation King // For the record, El Oso is lacking in cannon for you naysayers out there.

Domingo Velasquez slowly stepped back into the interior of El Oso, "The Bear", and looked around one last time at the newly established wasteland on the edges of the zone that had been wiped out by the Fat Man OMEGA the scavengers in the area had spoke of. The men said that they had "seen a cloud go a mile high above the surrounding area", and that if he had a deathwish, he could go right ahead. Of course, Domingo was completely prepared for this and had hidden within the sealed cockpit of El Oso as the radiation crackled around him with the aid of his Geiger counter. Despite this risk, however, the search for supplies yielded nothing but ash and death, so he had headed for hime. The old, gutted Sherman Tank had shuddered away from the hot zone and headed back for Rivet City, its empty trailer rattling along behind it.

Tuning his set in to the "Claws Radio", he caught the end of Conor's broadcast. He smiled a bit at the thought of better days on the horizon. So he raised the Claws Radio headquarters via a reverse-broadcast, using the same frequency to broadcast his message back from the small antennae on the back of the old, disarmed tank. He picked up the reciever and cleared his throat. "Conor Strauss," he said aloud, his Hispanic accent echoing around the buzzing, humming, clanking interior of the Sherman tank. "I've heard of the Claws. Their exploits are honorable, and I am going to let you know I am willing to pitch in and help your noble venture in any way possible. My name is Domingo Velasquez, and I am the pilot of El Oso. I wish you luck in your ventures, and may good fortune shine on your path." And with that, he hung up the reciever and turned off the radio.

Another few hours passed before the retrofitted tank arrived outside Rivet City, and Velasquez slowly climbed out of the top of the tank. His bullet-riddled jacket clung tightly to the grey T-shirt he had taken to wearing instead of his usual bare-chested-ness. He saw the bridge was out for once, and realized maybe things were going to get better after all- for once, he didn't even have to buzz into Rivet City. And so he quickly passed over the long bridge and into Rivet City's cool interior. He lowered himself into the marketplace and looked about, taking his usual seat at Gary's Galley and enjoying a cold scotch. Yes, He thought, Things are getting better already.

//--Teh Krush19:08, 21 April 2009 (UTC)// Riley is hanging with Conor. K?

Riley Alan was following Conor since the main group split up a few weeks ago. They settled in an old "store", which Conor remarked as the base for a group that Riley had not heard of. He sent Cat out the last day to find ammo, and since Cat was such a good hunter he had made it back alive, and with a few 5.56 clips.

User:Ramsey00:11, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// Do I sense a meet up at Rivit city?

Mathis had traveled with a trustworthy caravan to Rivet city, previously known as the safest place in D.C, now it was a complete warzone. Although recently things had lightened up, the opening of the bridge said that. He looked over to his companion whom he did not know the name of, "Goodbye friend, be careful traveling the wastes, war still lingers in the air." With that Mathis proceeded to the ship-turned-city to rest. Tomorrow his intentions would turn towards the north, towards the still living Crusade. As he walked to rusted bridge, one thing caught his eye. To his left was an old Sherman Tank, like the ones he had read so much about. Strange that he would see one here, and working too. He would study it, but he had the feeling the owner wouldn't like him doing so. Mathis greeted a guard as he passed into the marketplace, heading towards the local bar to get something to drink.

Radiation King // No, sorry... That was me. Dom had one too many burritoes, and his passes just happen to smell like "meet-up at Rivet City".

Dom took another draw from the bottle of scotch, emptying it and placing it on the table in front of him. With the bottle on its way down to the table, Dom's cocked head met a man coming down the main ladder to the marketplace. He didn't seem to be one of the people that had come around in recent times, at least the times that Dom had been there. So before he went to Flak and Shrapnel's to pick up his latest shipment of supplies bound for the Citadel, Dom decided to meet the newcomer. So he picked up a bottle of vodka from Gary's Galley and met the newcomer halfway, along the way hoisting the brown, square bottle up to his face level.

"Ah, hello, newcomer. Come, join me in a toast." The clearly slightly inebriated Dom declared, before heading back to his table and hoisting the bottle. "A toast!" Dom shouted, holding the bottle up again. A few of the other people at the assorted dining tables turned their heads to look at the Hispanic man with the rediculous handlebar moustache and greasy black ponytail swinging his vull bottle of vodka around like a club. "A toast!" Dom repeated again, before adding: "To the continued prosperity of the Capital Wasteland! May the Claws and the Last Legion bring in a new era of prosperity, where the shadow of the Crusade bastards no longer hangs over us!" And in one fell swoop, he tore out the cork of the vodka bottle and drained its contents in one mighty swig, slamming the emptied bottle back onto the table.

Fireman0504

Stefanie gingerly picked her way through the rubble of Bailey Crossroads. Her and Jeeves were winding thier way through an old, bombed out building. Well theres a little somethin somethin Stefanie thought as she smiled to herself. There was some type of unfinished structure out the back door. She followed the ramp down to a deactivated ham radio. Gazing up, she followed the cable of the lift up to the bridge of a crane. Feeling the car sway as she stepped aboard, Stefanie activated the controls. The gate shut as the car went deep down into the ground, passing by many mag-sealed doors. When it stopped, the door before her opened automatically, revealing a crumbled entryway. There were signs of occupation, relatively recently. By Jeeves' calculation it was roughly 16 months ago. Stefanie examined the first room, then walked into a corridor. There were cots set up, and blankets and rations left everywhere. She turned to the left and entered a storage room. The heavy doors were open, but the room was completely empty. Eveyrthing in there had been taken. Shelves lined the walls. Stefanie could guess it was something good. She walked into a generator room to her left. Everything was operational. In fact, it seemed the generator was keeping the systems in this hidden fortress running. She exited the room and walked down the hall. Ignoring the junk-filled room on her right and walking into a room with a strange, egg-shaped, pod. She read the inscription on the side. "U.S. Army Simulation Training, Operation Anchorage." She had no idea what that meant. Jeeves didn't either, but he referred her to "current events." That is, the Chinese occupation of Alaska. Stefanie shrugged and re-entered the room outside the door. She found a host of small tools, as well as a work bench, an oven, and two refridgerators full of food. She was lucky and found a few assorted drugs and meds laying around, which she quickly pocketed. She exited the room and headed back up the hall, noticing a set of stairs on her right. She went up and came into a room. There was some foot lockers and a few beds. On the table she found a note, stamped with a red cog that had a single sword bisecting it. She read it aloud to herself.

"Here this day, July 19 in 2278, Protector Casdin of the Brotherhood of Steel Outcasts, did take refuge during the Siege of Fairfax. On the morn of the glorious 20th, did our Brothers relay news of their victory over the Crusade. So begins that which we've all striven to see, the Great Exodus. May Steel be with us."

So the Crusade could be defeated Stefanie thought to herself. This looked like as good as any place to make a home as long as she stuck around in D.C. "Time to settle in, Jeeves," she said. "Yes, ma'am," the robot responded. She smiled. Such a gentleman he was. Stefanie switched on the radio. Long as she was staying, she might as well stay entertained. She'd scavenge a little more tomorrow. Stefanie layed down on the bed and listened as Jeeves went about his butlerly business.

92.8.250.20717:41, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// not with pistols :( By the way the organisation i was talking about earlier is just the more ordered parts of the horde

Aaron kingly pulled up a chair at garys gally "the usuall gary" 2 bottles of cola and a glass of scotch slid his way.He raised his glass "to rivet city!".Pausing he turned to see a Heavy set stranger who he had not seen before "so stranger who's is that tank outside the city"

"That would be my tank, senor." Domingo slurred slightly, straightening the collar of his jacket as he stumbled to his feet. "I am Domingo Velasquez, last known survivor of Bart's Hollow, Leader of the Seven Sins Mercenary Company, and virtuoso of the wasteland scroungers!" He half-announced, half-drunkenly shouted to all those assembled.

Run4urLife!19:47, 22 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob Vaughton (Oh Yeah, he's back to finish the job he started in Fairfax!) walked with the slow, easy grace of a consummate soldier. Every step made hints at whipcord strength and blurring speed. Even for someone who didn't know who he was (which was pretty much anyone outside of the Enclave and the DC Ruins), it was clear that he wasn't a man to be taken lightly. Even going on 41, he was quicker and stronger than anyone he knew. Any human he knew, anyway. It was his people skills that let him down. Otherwise, he'd be an exemplary member of society. He was gruff, blunt and abrupt. He was surprised people put up with him, even in the dire circumstances where he worked with others. The only people he had ever really "clicked" with were the Brotherhood of Steel Outcasts, but they had left right after the Siege of Fairfax, almost three years ago now. He often thought about how Ranik, Sam, Carter, Hamilton, Ramsey and Jackson were getting on. Probably being hailed as the Brotherhood's greatest heroes. They deserved nothing less.

But they were as good as a million miles away right now. With the Crusade and some splinter group called the Last Legion moving against each other, DC was about to find itself caught between the hammer and the anvil again. And on a scale not seen since that fool Bren Tenkage had led his band of misfit imbeciles against the Crusade. Jacob watched from his vantage point on a ridge above the Last Legion forces as they marched past the Northern DC Ruins, passing not three hundred yards from the National Guard Depot. He knew well that these soldiers would be the end of the Crusade. The Outcasts had defeated the Crusade once, and now this Roarke and his Legion would bury them. That attack on Jerusalem really had broken the back of this once united, leviathan, insurmountable foe. All Jacob had to do now was find a way to get rid of Roarke after they dealt with Thomas and his lot. Otherwise it'd be nothing more than replacing the wolf with the tiger.

Run4urLife!20:03, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// And Roarke prefers the term Political Advocate of the Enamy. Traitor is politically incorrect.
KuHB1aM20:12, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// I'll be playing three different characters. Say hello to Holmes again, everyone. Run4, before you attack Jerusalem, Gilead Point needs to be blown to pieces

Dutch Holmes stood from the ridge, his new aviator sunglasses as ominous as ever. Donning his usual black jacket, jeans, and combat boots, he watched from his camp as the Crusade splinter-faction known as the Last Legion set up camp just past the Northern D.C. ruins. Typical. Gilead Point was where Dutch expected them to attack. Once that was taken, there would no significant force left to oppose them. The Airborne were tremendous fighters, but they lacked something the Legion had x2; numbers. That would be their downfall. Holmes loved the entire scenario. Let the two sides destroy each other, then smash both of them with an Enclave attack. Then hopefully, the Tribals wouldn't be foolish enough to make the Enclave waste resources and time on them. Smiling, Holmes sat back down on his camping stool, ripped open a ration pack, and started chewing. Vulgar. Immediatly spitting the contents back out, Holmes continued to watch the Legion from it's camping site.


--Cerebral plague 20:16, 22 April 2009 (UTC)

Jack was sitting in the house he recently captured. A few Crusade would be deserters were in there, but were taken care of. He was at his little snipers perch, watching as the group of Crusade soldiers were marching towards Jerusalem. There was something odd about these men though, not waving the flag, and had just marched by a house with a waste lander looking out the window. Without Shooting him in the face. These weren't regular Crusade, they were serious. "Perhaps I should shoot?" He had the shot, he could escape before they could reach the house. He was thinking over it, and decided to kill the one right behind the leader. He took aim, compensating for the drop. He fired, and got up. He started to run down the stairs, heading out of the building.

Vegas adict20:24, 22 April 2009 (UTC) 

"you have a TANK!.Where did you get it.Never mind im part of the organisation called the Horde we could use a man of talent like yourself"

Run4urLife!20:35, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// For future reference, the Last Legion are not the Crusade soldiers that we have been dropping like ninepins in the past. They are a highly experienced, and very pissed off force of veterans. Treat them as you would the Airborne Elite, i.e., if you're not a Warrior Weapon, or member of the DC Surgical Assault Unit, they are tough nuts to crack.

"Radley, 3rd Company brought their artillery along, yes? I want those howitzers to shell that building and it's grounds to dust. And I want it done ten minutes ago." Roarke said, annoyed that they hadn't killed that man in the window. So much for assuming a man in a poncho was too mentally disturbed to pose a threat. The prick had shot one of the defectors from another battalion. If it had been a Last Chancer, he'd have had fifth company and the Last Legion's own artillery set up and turn that hill into a hollow.


Jacob clotheslined a man who came running out of a house. Putting a foot to the man's chest, he pointed his gun at the poor sap's head before he realised he knew this guy. Cerebral fucking Jack. That assassin who had fought against the Crusade in Bren's fool war.

"What the hell are you doing here?" Jacob said, almost shouting. He wasn't expecting that. Then, he heard the characteristic puff of a far-off mortar shot. Then the boom of a large-bore howitzer. He hadn't heard sounds like that since Jerusalem. That meant that himself and Jack were in deep shit.

"Move!" Jacob shouted, dragging Jack to his feet and taking off at a sprint as shells screamed overhead.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 20:56, 22 April 2009 (UTC)

To someone who fought the Crusade at Jersulm, seeing Weston like this would have been a shiock. To those who didnt know him, they did'nt care. For that mtter, almost no one else BESIDES the fightes at Jesulm cared. To them, he was just a crazy drunk. To Conor, to Jack, to Jackal, eve to Jacob, he was SOMEONE. The only person outside of the Assualt group was Marshall. At least he cared. Stumbling across the Marketplace, and getting a few glancesfrom the guards, he came up on a Hispanic man who looked like he had some cash.

"hhhheyyy, buddyyy. Wanna spare a hhhero a drinkkkk?"

Run4urLife!21:03, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// Mass saturation by my characters!

"How about a drink among heroes, Weston?" Jackal said loudly, right into Weston's ear. Weston jumped at the rasping Irish accent of everybody's favourite Ghoul wanderer. Jackal slapped Weston on the back, nearly knocking the inebriated young man flat on his face.

"Beer for the boy, and lots of whiskey for me. He had a head start." Jackal shouted to the bartender. Gareth or something. Garibaly? No, Gary! That was his name. Shit, was he going senile or soemething? Damn, that'd be a shame. Anyway, everybody would be better off without the Crusade. He seconded the tank-driving stranger's salute of the Last Legion. He ignored the salute to the Claws. He was't happy with Bren, inviting him down to DC and fecking off without a word. Twat. Anyway, drink!

Solbur21:07, 22 April 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss had smiled as he heard the message, and had decided to pack up his gear. "Riley," he called out to the other sole human resident of the Super-Duper Mart, "Me and Worth are hikin' down to Rivet City, see what's going on down there. You coming?" That had been several hours ago; they'd been heading there since then. (Up to you whether Riley's coming Krush, "they" could easily refer to just Strauss and Worth) And now, after passing the old Jefferson Memorial, they could clearly see the city-ship in the distance. Strauss smiled fondly as his memories of living there flushed back to him. Another thing to be pleased about was the distinct lack of Super Mutants shooting at him as he walked. Guess the Crusade are good for something.

//--Teh Krush21:14, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// I'm inventing the Wonder-Nade here.

Riley stood in a small area of the Super Duper Mart. It had a small makeshift lab, a few chems, and a terminal. Wonder who used this.. he thought. To the left of the table, was a box, and inside the box was a few jugs of molasses, some wonder-glue, and a bottle of dirty water. Beside the box were hollowed out grenades. Now Riley was curious, and poured the three substances into the grenade. He then put a small fuse on it and lit it with his match, and threw it through a window. It exploded into a stick substance that boiled hot under the sun, and would probably stick anything too it like a trap. "Lets try some Nuka-Cola," Riley said and poured half a bottle of Quantum into the grenade, followed by a handful of Abraxos. He then threw this grenade out the window and it exploded with the same sticky black substance, but it was burning this time, "Wonderful." Riley then typed his findings into the terminal for anybody to find after him, and stocked up about 6 of his special grenade, and then started to follow Strauss, "Yeah I'm coming."


--Cerebral plague21:16, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// (By deserters I didn't mean Last Legion by the way)

"Jesus Fucking Christ man! Why the hell did you just tackle me!" Jack was running along with Jacob as the mortar hit the building behind him. "That wasn't necessary! Why the hell would that be necessary! I didn't even shoot your friend, or someone you know! I was just trying to kill some one today, and how the hell did you even know I was in there?" Jack was running along, as another mortar hit the building. How the hell did they even know where the shot came from, there was no glare, and I was hiding in the shadows, you would have to have already known I was there to figure out where to mortar. I got there before they even made camp....

Fireman0504 I'm gonna have Stefanie bump into Conor, Worth and Riley while scavenging

Stefanie woke up and looked around. "Wonder how long I was out?" she said. "13 hour and 28 minutes," Jeeves said, hovering into the room. She smiled a lopsided smile at him. "Thank you Jeeves," she said. "Where are we going today?" the Handy said cheerfully. "I'm gonna go solo today," she said, "too many close calls with all the soldiers in the area." She'd been listening to reports of some force called the Last Legion moving in. She didn't want to risk Jeeves, bless his circuitry. She made her way to the elevator. "I hate to be a bother," Jeeves said, "but I get rather uncomfortable being alone." He sounded almost sad. Stefanie had found him diligently maintaining a house in L'Enfant. Didn't even know about the war. Now he got nervous he'd be left alone again. "Don't worry," she said to him, activating the lift, "I'll be back for you." She smiled as the door closed and the lift brought her back into daylight.

Run4urLife!21:36, 22 April 2009 (UTC) 

"In case you forgot, my human contact is generally short and violent, Jack." JAcob said, shouting to be heard as the mortars hit the building. "As for how I knew you were in there, I heard a sniper rifle, and assumed it was a Crusade Loyalist. The tackle was instinct. I could have hurt you pretty badly, why the hell were you running like a fool?"


Meanwhile, Roarke had called a halt to the bombardment. Maybe that poor wastelander hadn't been the one to take a shot at them. It had been an AP bullet, and completely disintegrated the soldier's head. It could have come from any three directions. Roarke had sent scout kill teams to deal with the other two. At the very least, they'd scare the fool away. Rather than Moore, who saw Wastelanders a a lower form of life, Roarke saw them as a source of support and power. They were still lower-class citizens, but useful nonetheless.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 21:46, 22 April 2009 (UTC)

"And to all the poor bastards that died in Jesrulam, 'eh?"

Weston clanked his beer woth Jackals wishkey, before taking a seat.

"So, Jackal, how've ya been?"

Of course, a cople people stopped and looked at the Ghoul and the, well, Non-ghoul. Sharing a drink. The Crusade would roll over in its grave for that. But, they were in there last legs, so what matter does in make? Thyey foughtr thecrusade on THEIR owhome turf and the motely group of fighters still won. Of course, they all had spilt up, but when they were together they were a nearly untopple force.

KuHB1aM21:46, 22 April 2009 (UTC) 

Hawkins watched as the enemy platoon left the way they had came, parting ways with the men from Hawkins' platoon. Hawkins was truly saddened. It wasn't supposed to be this way. Hawkins could've sworn he had even seen some of those men before, back during war with the EMAA back in NY. Turning away, Hawkins was about to leave himself when the unexpected happened. Tribals. "There's a whole shitload of em'." Harrison said, cocking his shotgun. Hawkins surveyed the group. More tribals then his own men, that was for sure. They were scattered in different buildings and alleys, wielding primitive and low-grade weapons. Hawkins mouthed a whisper to Harrison., not looking away. "Harrison, have Fiorello set up the minigun and and open up as soon as they charge." Hawkins said, unslinging his assault rifle. Tribals were... unpredictable. Even when they had ranged weapons, they still charged you like they were carrying katanas or something. The lead tribal, clad in a yao guai fur coat and wielding a massive warhammer, roared something incoherent. "Fucking natives." Harrison said, motioning for Fiorello to finish up quickly. The massive A3 gunner gave an ok signal, and hefted his massive mini-gun. The lead tribal roared again, and was met with other roars of approval from the many tribals. They charged, whirling their weapons. Fiorello just turned in a circle, his minigun opening fire. In a circular motion, he cut down the first wave with ease, 5mm rounds tearing through the crowd of natives. The remainder that didn't get cut down were met with gunfire and swords by the platoon. Each soldier of Hawkins' squads were equipped with either combat shotguns, G36Cs, officer swords, and desert eagles with extra .357 clips. More than enough fire power, Hawkins had said. Slamming the butt of his rifle into the first tribal, he shot a trio of bullets into the native, and then kicked his neck sideways, snapping it in an awkward position. Of course, the next thing to fight him, as luck would have it, was the massive tribal leader, who brought his warhammer down on Hawkin's rifle. The weapon snapped in two, and forced Hawkins back, making him fall on the ground. Drawing his sword, he blocked the hammer at the last second as it came down to his head. The sword was sturdy, but it held as the tribal brought the hammer down again and again. Finally, exhuased, Hawkins dropped the sword, tired from blocking all of the blows. Of course, however, Harrison fired two shells of buckshot, killing the massive tribal. He fell over Hawkins, blood spattering all over his body. "Jesus he's heavy!" Hawkins said, struggling to push off the brute, drew his .357 from his holster and fired it twice at the next tribal to try and skewer or crush him, the rounds ripping through his face and causing his brains to explode in blood and meat.


--Cerebral plague22:01, 22 April 2009 (UTC)// You could of made him nicer before I shot one of his men in the head

"Well, first of all I just shot some one in the face, and the guy right next to him had a pair of binoculars, and he looked over at my direction first, and started yelling. Which is odd, as armor peircing bullets tell you if he got shot in the front or the back. I assumed that he by chance looked at the one house I'm in. So, I immediately started running, as I knew he would start mortaring. If I hadn't I would of been blown to bits by Mortar fire right now." Jack kept running as he realized Jacob was

Domingo looked hard at the man who was advertising himself as a fellow mercenary through bleary eyes swimming in a third full bottle of vodka. "No, friend, I am sorry. I'm freelancing right now... Maybve another time though?"

And then Weston's voice mumbled through the buzzing in his ears and the low voices of the people around him. "Hero, you say? Such a man de... Deserves more than just one round... He deserves... Several rounds!" Domingo laughed loudly as he turned the "hero" towards the bar, only to find that another man had appeared in his place. And this one smelled like buzzard bait- ghoul, or someone who had rolled in Brahmin shit for weeks. "Ah, we are among many heroes today! Everyone, a drink for the returning heroes!" Domingo shouted, even louder, as he drained Bottle No. 3 of vodka.

He took a seat next to Jackal and Weston at the bar. "So then, you're re... Re... Returning - yeah, that's it- returning heroes from the war against the Crusade Bastards? Good job, good job. What're your names, then, heroes? No doubt we'll have heard of your exploits by way of the radio! Three Dog has quite a way with finding these morsels of information... No doubt I've heard your names, but still. The drink and all, you know."


--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 00:16, 23 April 2009 (UTC)

"Three dog, Bah! You picks names that people will know even before he says it. Like Jacob Vaughton. Yeah, i met him. And Celbral Jack. Met him to. But deoes Three Dog care about ME? No. Should he? Why Not? I went from being a normal wastelander who joined up with a group of craziesand took down the biggest fort on the East Coast. And Do i heven hear a mention from Three Dog? Nope."


--Cerebral plague00:17, 23 April 2009 (UTC)// (Yes Weston, Because all the highly paid, sneaky assassins are really movie stars in Public)

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 00:24, 23 April 2009 (UTC)

(well, someone had to hear of you. A guy with a M79 really is'nt that common.)

//--Teh Krush01:49, 23 April 2009 (UTC)// Solbur or Fireman post :'(
--Cerebral plague01:56, 23 April 2009 (UTC)// What, Weston and I aren't good enough for you?
User:Ramsey02:27, 23 April 2009 (UTC)// I'm changing characters. Just pretend Mathis was a nobody.

Aaron Ramsey coughed as he downed his last shot of whiskey, another day spent, another day wasted. He'd been here for almost three years now and still no sign of Jay, he'd recently considered accepting the fact and returning home, but he didn't think he had the will to do so. After leaving unexpectedly and everybody expecting him to at least return with his dear brother, coming back empty handed would be an embarrassment. He downed another shot, these things would wait, for now he was going to enjoy himself. "Bartender, what's the name of that missy over yonder?" He pointed his thumb to an attractive woman across the bar, she was obviously drunk. The bartender stared at him for a moment, "You haven't been around here too much have you? That's one of the meanest bitches in the whole damn wasteland. She'll chew your cock up and spit it all over your face, unless your into that sort of shit." The bartender left Aaron with a shocked face and half a glass. And I thought Megaton women were bad... Aaron rose from his seat and started to leave the bar. From behind him he heard a cheer from some drunk, but it was what he said afterwards that caught Aaron. He mentioned Jacob Vaughton. Yes, Aaron had heard of this legend, but he also heard of who Vaughton had worked with. One of the names was Ramsey. Aaron joined their conversation.

"Yes, Vaughton, quite a legend isn't he? I'm Aaron, and who might you gents be?" He caught the attention of the group.

Fireman0504

Stefanie wound her way through the Metro tunnels. It really was a boring walk, now that the Crusade had destroyed every living thing this side of the Potomac. Stefanie didn't mind. Then she didn't have to watch her back while looting or scavenging. She busted into a medical box on the wall. Looking inside she took the Stimpak, Blood Pack, and RadAway. She was going over to Falls Church today. She'd heard from some other scavengers that there were a few choice office buildings over there. To be honest, they were probably picked clean, but then again, the whole of D.C. was picked over a dozen times. There was always something new to get ahold of. Stefanie listened to the gate creak as she went up the stairs into the street. She peeked above the wall. Nope, no sign of anything out here. A a few days back she'd had a close call with a patrol of Crusaders entering D.C. They were just the Combat Armored troops and there were only three. The green, inexperienced, probably conscripted men had no chance against a fighter like Stefanie, but she did suffer a few cuts and bruises. She had taken their equipment and sold it to a trader that'd passed by yesterday. It slowly seemed like the wastse were going back to how she remembered them. Just then, she heard some footsteps. She ducked into a doorway and pressed her back flat against it. She flexed the fingerson her Power Fist in anticipation. The footsteps got closer.

Twentyfists11:17, 23 April 2009 (UTC) 

Silas popped out behind Weston. "Three Dog never talks 'bout me neither, boy. He jus' don't like the people don't b'lieve in his 'good fight.' Don't worry 'bout it."


--Cerebral plague 12:45, 23 April 2009 (UTC)

Jack was still running with Jacob. Jacob was faster then him, and was obviously less fatigued. So, Jack was surprised that Jacob stopped first. Jack huddled (What? couldn't think of anything else) to a stop, and looked at Jacob. "Why'd you stop man?" Jacob pointed over there, at the building. He started walking to it. He said something about "Something's In there" and started walking towards it.

Vegas adict // Im changing characters here

Paladin Marcus Andrews sat behind the bar in rivet city with his assistant and second in command Knight Captain Alexander Michell "you best be right bout this Michell last time we came to DC we ended up lossing most of our forces in the west" Alex nodded "sure as sure sir the DC crusades dieing sir and we have a duty to make sure there well and truely dead" Marcus nodded "hey is that Weston over there" Alex paused to look "yup should we say hello or sir as you put get drunk".

Marcus grinned his XO had no sense of humor "il see you back at camp later" He walked over to weston and saw that silas and Jackal were with him. "well boys whats been happening since i left?"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 19:27, 23 April 2009 (UTC)

Westton looked the Brotherhood of Stel soldier in the eys. He left them. How he got out of Jersualam, no one knew. Or, just Weston.

"Fuck you, boyscout."

Weston took a large swig of his beer before turning to the newcomer.

"hhhey, i'm weston. Weston, AKA Henhmen. Nice to met ya."

Once gian, Weston ook another large swig of his beer before turnin to Slias.

"Welcome back Slias, round of beers on you?"

Vegas adict20:11, 23 April 2009 (UTC)// dont blaim him for leaving you i had no choice i was my grandparents i only had a computer at about 7:00 GMT.

Alex grabbed westons shoulder "don't insult me BOY i on my own could kill you".Marcus laughed "let the boy go alex" he turned to silas "want a glass of Balma silas?"

Run4urLife!20:17, 23 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal eased his machete back into the sheath and watched as Alex stepped away from Weston. That prick (Jackal would use a stronger word, but its unsuitable for the internetz) needed to have some manners put on him. Jackal considered battering him in the jax (bathroom for you non-longo speakers) to teach him a lesson. Maybe drown him in the toilet bowl and ressuscitate him.

"Well, look what the cat dragged in, Alex and Marcus. My God, last time I saw yee was in that attack on Jerusalem. Thought you lot might have been dead. I had dibs on yer arms." Jackal laughed.

Vegas adict20:20, 23 April 2009 (UTC) 

Marcus grinned "what would you do with power-armored arms jackal usefull as they are"

Run4urLife!20:24, 23 April 2009 (UTC) 

"They'd go great with the rest of my trophy rack." Jackal said calmly. Alex glared at him. Jackal was loving how easy it was to wind this bollock up. He downed more whiskey, and then slammed back a tumbler of Balma that Alex handed to him, with a smug grin on his face. That was some strong stuff. Jackal was lucky he was a Ghoul, otherwise he'd be suffering one bitch of a hangover after drinking that. He really wanted to show off, and throw a knife across the room or something, but Harkness would skin the lot of them if he did, so he kept his knives in their little sheaths, sewn into his armor.

//--Teh Krush20:27, 23 April 2009 (UTC)// Since I need Solbur to post so that I can advance Riley, I'll just add another character so I'm always in the action. Meet, again, Micheal Vain.

Micheal stepped onto the boat, he hated boats, especially ones with police. He moved down to the Muddy Rudder to see some faggot yelling at some other faggot. And a ghoulie waving his machete all over the place. Not as bad as yesterday, Micheal thought.

Vegas adict20:31, 23 April 2009 (UTC) 

Marcus pulled out his own glass of balma "barkeep 2 botles of balma please and i know you have some as i sold you some" 2 botles slid down the table.Marcus poured them into the glass and passed them round "Drink up" Marcus drouned his own glass and turned to alex frouning at him "what boy don't want a drink or a smoke or even beter some AC" He smiled alex was easy to wind up.

He turned on his seat to see a new person enter the bar "whos that?"

Solbur20:41, 23 April 2009 (UTC)// Sorry for infrequent posting, I borrowed CoD 5 off my friend yesterday and I think I'm developing an addiction o_o

Strauss paused to glance around. This was the first time he'd seen this part of the ruins without a visible Super Mutant. He took a deep breath and glanced at Riley. "Man, it's quiet, huh? And not too quiet, for once." He glanced up at one of the several vantage points overlooking the nearby city-ship that were normally occupied by Frankensteins. "Hang on a sec, I'mma go see if I can't scav any ammo from that there camp." He began carefully climbing up the rubble towards the remains of the camp.

Radiation King // Wimp, I don't even play CoD5 that much.

Domingo started on his fourth bottle of vodka as he turned back to the arguing group. He found that it had now expanded quite a lot, and that the inebriation was fast approaching its peak. A fight would erupt soon if he didn't jump in at a strategic moment with something important to say... Might as well go now?

He shifted in his seat, stood and faced the group of arguing men. He slammed a heavy, veiny fist down on the table. "Gentlemen, gentlemen, please, there's no need for this argument. We're all friends here, for now... Please, let us drink to the success of the fight against the Crusade instead of beating the tar out of eachother."

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 21:09, 23 April 2009 (UTC)

Weston looked at the Hispanic. Dominic? Domino? It was something or other. Raising his own beer, he did something that resmbled a salute before cloaasping. Staggering to get back up, he fell agian, before finally regaining his footin.

"Yeah, sure. To the fight against the Crusade....would take a Kings Ransom to get me back in it."

Run4urLife!21:10, 23 April 2009 (UTC) 

Meanwhile, in the car park of Wheaton Armory Roarke stood over the bisected body of a raider, and heaved his Field Ripper around at the next one, the upward angled blow cleaving him in half from groin to chest. Then Roarke had to kick the body off the whirring teeth as it juddered and twitched on the blade. Then, he pulled off his party trick. He thrusted the Ripper. For a weapon that wasn't designed to thrust, it was incredibly effective at it, tearing a large hole through another Raider. Fools, heretics, fighting a superior foe as if they were able to win. If nothing else, this proved that Raiders could interbreed with vegetables. He then kicked the last Raider to the ground and rammed his Field Ripper down into the man's chest.

"Captain Raze, I want this building stripped of everything not bolted down. If there are any weapons left, we're getting our paws on 'em." Roarke shouted to a shotgun-toting man to his left. He signalled for the rest of the Army Group to move up, and begin setting up camp around the bunker. Away from the radiation hotspots, of course. The last thing they wanted was for someone to die from Rad Poisoning or worse, turn into a Ghoul.


--Cerebral plague 22:21, 23 April 2009 (UTC)

Jack and Jacob were near a house, picking at the door. "I don't know what you were talking about Jacob, I didn't hear anything." Jack then finally picked it, as he grabbed onto the knob. Jacob readied his gun, before kicking in the door. "Jacob, I just unlocked it, why did you do that?" Jacob grinned for a second, before going back to the cold hard expression he nearly always used. Jack looked inside. There were dead ghouls inside, not even feral. Some of the bodies were decapitated, and the rest were mangled and shot up with bullets. "Wonder which Crusade did this" Jack said as he stepped inside.

User:Ramsey22:23, 23 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron obviously wasn't going to get much information out of these guys, they were all drunk too the bone. If he stayed much longer he was sure a fight would form. He wanted to avoid that. "Good drinking with you fellas, but I gotta hit the road. Peace." With that Aaron left, not but getting a small glance from any of the men. They probably had already forgot he was there, typical. Aaron left Rivet City, it was too crowded to sleep in, especially in these times. He would sleep in the same office he'd been sleeping in for the past year and a half, good enough for him. One last look at the floating town, and then he continued into the wastes. He hurried, it's never good to out at night.

Twentyfists01:48, 24 April 2009 (UTC) 

Silas raised his glass of Balma to Aaron as he left, then turned back to Weston. "Amen to that, mah friend," he said in a speech punctuated by drunken gurgles and high-pitched squeaks. "Ah *hic* think that 't's total bullshit thatcha din't git paid. Stay outta them jobs, *hic* they'll be th' death a'you."

Si, senor, those jobs will be the death of you... If the wilderness doesn't kill you first... Then- then *hic* the actual... Actual bad guys may get to you first!" Domingo hiccuped again, placing his tenth empty bottle on the bar and checking his watch with bleary, bloodshot eyes.

"Ah, it is time I should be picking up my shipment and leaving. I will see you around, I guess?" The mercenary nodded either way, before making his way to Flak and Shrapnel's, picking up the crates of weapons they had supplied on an ancient dolly, and making ihs way carefully up the stairs, back across the bridge, over to his tank and away from Rivet.

//--Teh Krush23:25, 24 April 2009 (UTC)// Sorry, can't do dual narrative good, so Micheal is an NPC now. Lol. I'll post as Riley soon.
KuHB1aM14:04, 25 April 2009 (UTC)// Time to start blowing stuff up again.

Thomas finished his orders, and then stepped out from Gilead Point's lobby. It had been decided. Thomas, with the majority of his forces, would attempt to persuade Adam out of his crazed rampage. They would re-unite both sides, turn on the wasters and those damnable tribesman, and crush them, then re-establish an iron-grip of western and northern D.C. If this failed, Thomas would simply attempt a suicidal attack in order to get himself killed. That way, he couldn't be at balme for Moore's foolish mistakes in the coming days. Thomas watched from the trenches, standing above them and observing. The men marching before him were a sad lot. Regardless, most of them were New York veterans from 1st Legion, and the remainder were what was left of the traitorous 2nd Legion. Those few loyalists from 2nd Legion had earned Thomas' respect in not having defected to Adam's new Last Legion. They were truly the example of an ideal soldier. Immediatly marching to them, Thomas watched the sun as it was finally covered up completely by the rain which was now falling.

Hawkins watched Wheaton Armory from his perch on the hill. Behind him, Harrison and the platoon were waiting, completely silent. Hawkins pulled up his binoculars. Watching the massive amounts of troops, Hawkins couldn't help but feel nervous. Finally, his eyes met his suspected target. Adam Kowalski. "Harrison," Hawkins whispered, "get me that sniper rifle from Anderson." Harrison complied, bringing forth the rifle. It was completely suicidal, yes. But if Hawkins did kill him, they could end the entire conflict and re-unite both sides. "Harrison, get the platoon ready to start sprinting on a mile run, yes?" Hawkins said sarcastically, and loaded the rifle. Adjusting the scope, his crosshars met Adam's distinct set of power armor, the sights resting on his head.

--Cerebral plague14:16, 25 April 2009 (UTC)// Hawkins hasn't adjusted for the drop, he's a beginner sniper isn't he?
KuHB1aM14:37, 25 April 2009 (UTC)// He's a vet, but he's barely had a day's worth of combat with long range weapons. I'm going to have him miss the shot, because he can't kill Run4's character anyway. That, and I also forgot to include the drop, lol

Fireman0504

Stefanie had to be losing her marbles. She stepped out from the doorway and no one was there. She sighed as she felt her body relax. She reached into her pocket and popped in a Buffout. No reason at all, other than her addiction. She wanted to kick it, because when there was no Buffout around, she felt like shit. But now, Buffout was in huge supply after finding that drug store. She had enough to last for weeks. Months even. Wow, she thought to herself all alone and I think about my drugs. I need some social interaction. Jeeves was nice and all, but he was so butlerly. Most of his responses were "Yes Ma'am, No Ma'am." Stefanie decided she'd head for Rivet city. Maybe cash in some of the day's find for some caps. Visit Cantelli's for some Buffout, and see what was shaking at the Muddy Rudder. Gary's was good for food, but Stefanie liked to lay low. Old habit from her slave days. And that Sister guy was walking around there. Slaving bastard. Stefanie had levelled with him weeks ago. He said one word to, about, or around her, she'd stomp his nose out the back of his head, rip his head off, rip his arm off, and use his arm to bat his head off the flight deck like a baseball into the bay. She chuckled to herself. That was the Buffout talking. Or was it? Maybe she'd do that anyway when she got there. She sat down to eat some lunch first. MMM, Pork N' Beans!

//--Teh Krush16:24, 25 April 2009 (UTC)// No, you meet up wif us, we stop u from going to rivet citey! Lol. And, if you brought Jeeves Riley would reprogram its butlerness lol.

Riley heard something to his left, around the large building, so he sent Cat to investigate. He heard Cat growl and then jump on somebody and a small shriek. It sounded like somebody Riley knew. When Riley turned the corner he found Pork n' Beans splattered everywhere and Cat laying on top of a struggling Stefanie McRae. "If you'd just stop eating Pork n' Beans around me maybe this wouldn't happen.." Riley said with a laugh.

Solbur16:37, 25 April 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss grinned to himself as he opened an ammunition box to reveal it was filled with several dozen 5mm rounds. Should fetch a pretty penny at Flak and Shrapnel's, he thought. He looked out from the vantage point to notice the distinct lack of Riley or Cat in the visible vicinity. Stuffing the box in Worthington's storage compartment, he began to climb down the rubble-ridden pathway, almost tripping over several times due to the hindrance of his Power Armor. As he managed to get back on the ground, he heard Riley's voice coming from around the corner of a nearby large building, so he went around to investigate. He then burst out laughing.

Fireman0504

Stefanie pushed Cat off of her and got to her feet. She looked up to see both Riley and Conor Strauss laughing their posteriors off. If there'd been mutants around they'd come running with how loud they were laughing, but with no mutants, Stefanie was free to express her discontent to Cat. "Bad Cat, BAD! Very BAD!" she said, shaking her finger at Cat. The pooch looked at her confusedly and then began licking the Pork N' Beans off the ground. Stefanie shook her head and looked up at Riley. "You now owe me some Pork N' Beans!" she said loudly. She smiled. It was good to see these two again. "You boys out for a stroll?" she said, putting her hands on her hips. Between the laughter Strauss managed to tell her they were headed for Rivet City. Stefanie winked and pointed at the two, before grabbing Riley in a headlock. "That means you can buy me lunch when we get there, eh Rilo?" she said, grinning. It was nice to have some human interaction again.

Run4urLife!17:25, 25 April 2009 (UTC)// Eh, KuHB1aM, I changed Kowalski's name again. He is now Nathaniel Roarke. Sorry bout that.

Vrrrr... the growl of a diesel engine, the clunking of loose metal and jangling of poorly-attached treads could be heard about two hundred yards south of Stefanie, Riley and Cat's position. The angry sounding vehicle soon rolled into view- a dilapidated, turret-less Sherman Tank with with a scrap-metal trailer crudely attached to the rear by a crudely attatched trailer hitch. A pair of floodlights on top of the tank flickered to life, settling on top of Stefanie. Soon, a man's head popped out from between the headlights, shadowed by the backwash of the floodlights. A Hispanic voice caled out, "Hey, who's there?"

Fireman0504

Stefanie paused for a second, then dropped Riley, who fell to the ground with a thud, then rolled behind some rubble. Stefanie then scampered behind some rubble as well, while Strauss and Worthington moved toward another building. "You first!" Sefanie shouted back as Cat began growling. Stefanie was getting upset. All these setbacks. Cat eating her Pork N' Beans, this guy with his goofy vehicle, it was getting dark and Rivet City would be closing soon. She peeked up from behind her cover. The guy was yelling something in some language she didn't understand. The only thing she could make out was that he sounded drunk? "I can't understand what the hell you are saying," Stefanie slowly annunciated. She heard the engines turn off and then footsteps coming toward her. Her fingers flexed in her Power Fist. She was in a bad mood now.

Domingo turned his head back and forth across the top of the tank, looking about briefly to see if anyone else was around before he pulled himself out of the tank and stumbled off the side, none-too-elegantly faceplanting into the hard-packed dirt of the Wasteland's floor. Taking a few seconds to lift himself up, he pushed himself to his feet and shook his head. In perfect english, he responded: "Sorry, I'm a little bit inebriated at the moment. Who are you, and where are you going?"

Fireman0504

Stefanie started chuckling. "I can tell that Mister. I'm Stefanie McRae. We were headed to Rivet City. Cat ate my Pork N' Beans," she said, pointing to the dog that was emerging. Strauss, Worthington and Riley were all getting up now. The drunk man looked at the dog and then at Stefanie, then at the dog, then back at Stefanie, then once more at the dog before saying, "That's not a cat." The group started laughing as it dawned on the man that Cat was the dog's name. Inebriated indeed. "And who might you be?" Stefanie asked.

Run4urLife!21:15, 25 April 2009 (UTC) 

Roarke was pitched backwards by the impact of the bullet. Either the shooter wasn't a confident sniper, or they were aiming for his head and hadn't compensated for a drop in the bullet's trajectory. Roarke lay still for a second, taking a few deep breaths to make sure he didn't have any injuries his adrenaline was trying to hide. He signalled to the nearby soldiers that he was ok, and stood back up. His own snipers were already returning fire. Three of them recorded kills. Only the Crusade or BoS would have had the backbone to take a shot like that. Given that he was rapidly approaching Crusade territory, Moore was trying to have him eliminated so as to avoid a war he couldn't win. By killing Roarke and letting hundreds, if not thousands (Roarke had yet to complete a head count) of bloodthirsty soldiers loose on the Wastelands.

He waved a medic away. His armor had stopped the shot. Thankfully. At least the lad that had shot at them earlier wasn't still following them. He'd have used an AP round and taken off Roarke's head. But the Colonel had more important things to consider. One of his patrols had brought in a CCI agent. The poor spook had probably spent enough time stripped to his underwear with his feet in a bucket if ice-water. The interrogation probably wouldn't take long. And if the man was unco-operative, Roarke would just have to cut off one of his feet, give him a single crutch, and force him to march with them until he broke.

//--Teh Krush21:21, 25 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Hello, my name is R-I-L-E-Y. Riley. Repeat?" Riley said to the foreign man, Oh, I guess he's smart, shit he thought, "And yeah, my dog is named Cat,".

Domingo hiccuped a bit as he turned slowly towards Riley. "You're... You're a strange one, Riley." He then stumbled as he turned back towards Cat, who was standing off in a shaded portion of the area where the Sherman was parked. He looked briefly at the dog and its odd-looking backpack before he turned back from the dog and back towards Stefanie.

"Well it seems fate or some similar set of circumstances has bound us together. I just came from Rivet City, and I was going to drop a weapons shipment at Megaton... But I can turn around for a quick detour." He gestured back towards El Oso. "I reckon if you sit on top, you'll fit just fine..." A couple of shouts from the ruins briefly drew his attention. Most of them are explitives, which only means one thing.

"Raiders," Domingo hissed as he quickly ran over to El Oso and removed the wires from the batteries powering the floodlights, plunging the group into total darkness. "In the trailer, quickly." The Hispanic wheelman whispered harshly as he pulled his .32 pistol from his jacket and crept towards the ruins.

KuHB1aM02:09, 26 April 2009 (UTC)// Don't worry, run4, it's fine.

Thomas cursed Roarke's name several times, punched his messenger, and sat down in the trenches. Fuck! Who had authorized the men to open fire? It was hopeless now! They'd have to fight the enemy in an open, fucked-up battle. Worse, it would be their own flesh and blood. He looked towards his messnger. The unfortunate soul had been the one with whom Thomas had relieved his anger. Tossing a bottle cap to him, Thomas gave another set of orders to him for relay to CCI, then set about the business of attempting a crude set of negotiations. If it failed, maybe he could call reinforcements from New York. No... that wouldn't work. It would take days, maybe weeks, for any type of help to arrive from the north. Frustrated, Thomas leaned against a trench wall, slamming his fist into the mud and stnading in the rain.

Fireman0504

Stefanie quickly hopped up on top of the Sherman, as did the rest of the group. Domingo hopped in and Stefanie heard the engine growl as the tank lurched forward. Stefanie looked toward the shadows. The raiders mustn't've been around long, the ruins had been nearly totally clear for the last month. Regardless, the tank swung back around and headed for Rivet City. She looked back at the trailer where Worthington and Cat were, then back at Riley and Strauss, who were readying ranged weapons. Stefanie scampered along the hitch to where the weapons shipment was and looked for a ranged weapon. A Power Fist was not going to do much good if a firefight broke out from the tank. She'd left her Scoped .44 with Jeeves to travel lighter. She popped a Buffout as she dug out a hunting rifle and a few rounds of .32 ammo. She loaded the clip and sat tight, waiting for anything or anyone to appear from the darkness. She looked at a minigun next to her and shook her head. She had no clue how to properly operate that thing. Strauss looked at her quizzically, judging her confusion, then shrugged as she noticed him. Great, now they think I'm a drugged up idiot who lives for Pork N' Beans she thought. Maybe she just should've stayed home with Jeeves and ridden the storm out.

User:Ramsey23:05, 26 April 2009 (UTC) 

Gunshots. Aaron cursed. For once in the past few weeks, he was actually getting some good, well-deserved rest, and this happens. Raiders he guessed, he'd seen a bunch of them around here recently. Aaron had considered relocating, but his current home was so isolated. Nobody knew of it, it was out of the way from any wasteland creatures to linger into, and it had a good supply of food. He rose, shoeing away a familiar rat that had been living with him, and he grabbed his Ak-47. He's had the same rifle from when he left Austin, luckily it used the same ammo as the rifles around these parts. Aaron looked to the window, seeing the thin rays of light shine through the makeshift barricade. He peered out of one of them, taking a few seconds to adjust to the light. Below him was the same Sherman tank he saw in front of Rivet city not but a few hours ago, except this time it was being chased by raiders. There were about three, maybe four people inside of the tank, two of them shooting. The raiders were casing them, running faster than the normal human. Aaron shook his head, he thought of the amount of drugs those anarchists inject each day, it made them nearly superhuman. Disgusted by these people, Aaron jutted his rifle out the gap between two boards. He aimed down the sights on one Raider readying a missile launcher and shot. The first shot hit him in the shoulder, causing him to lose grasp of the large weapon. Aaron ended it by firing another shot into the poor soul's head. His weapon was surprisingly accurate for what model it was, but Aaron has spent quite some time tinkering with it, making it 'More effective'. He smiled and continued to fire. Two raiders fell dead, one laid bleeding out of a very serious wound. Unlike his forgiving brother, Aaron did not care for the lives of strangers. The only people he really cared for was his family, and one of them was missing right now.

The tank riders looked at the source of the shooting, that led to Aaron. He kicked some of the boards out and showed himself. "There's a safer route to Rivet City, just take your next right and keep going until you hit the downed bridge! I'll meet you guys there!" He shouted from the window, pointing his arms to the right. Aaron didn't take the time to hear a response, he just grabbed his things and left for the downed bridge. So much for that home...

Fireman0504

Stefanie ducked as shots whizzed by her head as she sat in the trailer. She nozed her hunting rifle over the rail of the trailer and fired a couple of shots at the approaching Raiders. One shot hit out of the five she fired as she emptied her clip. She hit the raider in the shoulder, but to her dismay, he got back up and kept coming. She cursed. The raiders' fire pattered across the hull of the tank. She fired another clip off. The shosts all missed. The bouncing of the tank, combined with her lack of awesome shooting ability made it very tough to achieve a hit. She popped in a Buffout and fired off another clip. She stood up and looked ahead of the tank as the raiders began breaking off pursuit. Rivet City was thankfully within huge view. The large looming aircraft carrier so very inviting. Stefanie was looking forward to a drink at the Muddy Rudder. The Market was closeed for the night, but the Rudder was always open. The Sherman ground to a halt and Stefanie got out, putting the hunting rifle back in the trailer. She put her Power Fist back on as a figure emerged from the darkness.

//--Teh Krush01:03, 27 April 2009 (UTC)// I.. must.... MARY SUE!!

Riley was much better with his telekinesis right now, he could lift one of them at a time as long as Riley didn't move. But that was a setback, so Riley didn't bother trying, instead he just jammed the weapons of his enemies. Riley then began to move debris from a building on top of the raiders.

(moved convo to talk page)

Solbur01:27, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss was spraying glowing red death as fast as he could tap the trigger of his Laser Rifle in the general direction of the Raiders. Bastards wanted his robot, his armour, his weapons, this guy's tank. And probably Stefanie's body. And Cat. And that random dude up there's cool haircut. They weren't getting any of it it. Not by a long shot. To Hell with ammunition conservation! One of them seemed to pause to whack his gun a bit, apparently checking for a jam, so Strauss took the liberty of incinerating his face when the distraction presented itself. He glanced over at Riley, who seemed to be in deep concentration, and shrugged. He's probably yelling at them in their heads or somethin', he thought as he dropped his rifle for a moment and prepared a grenade. "Hey, look, here's a freebie for you thieving bastards! Yeeaaaaaah!"

//--Teh Krush01:32, 27 April 2009 (UTC)// Now time for the grand finale.

As Strauss's grenade exploded, a large bang could be heard on top of the building next to them, a giant rock was being rolled off the side of it. Riley's nose was bleeding, but nobody or him seemed to notice. The rock then fell off the building and landed in the crowd of raiders. (you decide how many are left k? lol.)

//--Teh Krush01:50, 27 April 2009 (UTC)// Post noobs post!
User:Ramsey02:15, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron grasped the wall as the explosions rocked the ruined building, apparently these guys didn't hear what Aaron had said not but 5 minutes ago. Staggering to a window, he watched as a large bolder crushed a good amount of raiders on the ground level. Two or three stragglers tried to escape, only to be taken out by Aaron's bullets. He looked around, it seemed clear enough. The young fighter scaled down from the third story he was on, meeting up with the tank people as they were looting the raiders, as well as killing off survivors. He recognized one of them, the tank driver, from Rivet City. The guy still seemed a bit tipsy, but much better then from the last Aaron saw of him. Hoisting his rifle on his back, Aaron went to greet his companions. He approached the tank driver, "Ran into a bit of trouble I see, damn good thing you had that tank. They might have stolen my hair." He looked around. The man had three followers, one skinny-lookin' girl, probably an addict, and two frustrated white guys. "Quite a group here, where you guys headed?"

Fireman0504 NOTE: Stefanie is not meth-addict skinny. She has toned muscle from her pit-fighting career, which still goes on in fight bars

Stefanie dropped over the side of the trailer. She looked at the new guy who'd just emerged from the building. She placed the Huning Rifle back in the trailer as he approached. Behind them, the form of Rivet City loomed. She looked at Riley. "Hey, your nose is bleeding, "she said. He grinned lopsidedly and wiped the blood from his nose. That falling rock had really saved the day. She looked at the man who'd just approached the group. "We're headed into Rivet City," she said cheerfully, "at least I am." She flexed her bicep as she fitted her Power Fist back onto her hand. She wiggled all of her fingers to fit it properly. The man in front of them had put his gun away, so he obviously was not an enemy. Leastwise not now. Stefanie extended a hand. "Stefanie McRae," she said, winking, "and who might you be?"

//--Teh Krush02:39, 27 April 2009 (UTC)// Lol. Stefanie still duzzn't know that Riley is awesome and made the rock fell, and that is why is nose bled? Noob!

Fireman0504 She knows. She's just smart enough not to mention it in front of a newcomer.

//--Teh Krush02:44, 27 April 2009 (UTC)// Since when did she know.. Riley didn't tell her! Riley didn't use it or telepathy around her in the DC War RP, and hasn't used it until now in this RP.. hmm. YOUR TELEPATHIC!
User:Ramsey02:47, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron chuckled a little, he wasn't sure if this woman was trying to show off or what, but he did underestimate her. Now closer, he took back his earlier thought of her being an addict. Aaron bowed his head, "Aaron Edward Ramsey, Ma'am, no part of any organization or group, just searching for someone." He raised his head, "Pleasure to meet you." Aaron quickly glanced to his right, observing the faded figure of Rivet City. Upon looking back, he noted one of the men to Stefanie's left, a man with a bleeding nose. Aaron didn't recall any real fighting going on with the raiders, and nobody got hit or anything. He stared at the man for a few seconds, thinking. Afterward he turned back to Stefanie, "Why exactly are you lot headed to Rivet City?"

//--Teh Krush02:57, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Riley wiped his bleeding nose.. and again. Finally it stopped. Headaches were gone, but now he was having random nosebleeds every time he attempted to use his ability further then he could.. "I'm Riley," he said to the new person that had appeared from the building, "Getting supplies."

Fireman0504 He used it around her at the end of the D.C. Uprising. Plus it's been a month since then. Im' sure they'd talked since then. :)

Stefanie looked at the man. "So cordial," she said to him, "it's nice to meet you." She said, smiling. She turned to take a look at Rivet City. "I was going in to trade, then I ran across these white devils and them Raiders. Now the Market is closed, so I'll prolly hit the Muddy Rudder, then shack up in the common room for the night. I don't know what these two are up to." she schuckled, giving Riley a playful shove. "Thanks for helping us out. If you're not runnin with a crowd, I'm ure you'd be welcome to run with ours, though we're kinda scattered all over D.C." Stefanie was trying to be careful not to reveal too much info. She figured she'd better stop talking soon, before she did overstep her talking bounds. You couldn't just trust everybody out here. This Ramsey seemed good enough though. "You wanna come into Rivet city?" she said, "I'll buy you a drink."

User:Ramsey03:37, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron crooked his head. What did she mean by 'we're kinda scattered all over D.C'? He thought these guys were just some travelers, not some organization. With all the war going on here recently, he wouldn't be surprised if these guys were a part of it. And that's the last thing Aaron needed, a war on his hands. But he was hungry, and it was seldom that Aaron passed up a drink. Against everything he mind was telling him, he accepted the invitation. "Sounds great, and I've really got nowhere else to go, my old home just got blown up." Aaron pointed to a 6th story window, now just a crater, where his hovel used to be. Aaron stretched, he still had barley woken up. He looked to Stefanie, then to the rest. They don't look like an organization at war, but looks can be deceiving...

From the tank he heard his tipsy comrade yell something at them, most likely something about getting ti Rivet City. Aaron went with the flow and agreed, "I'm with him, we should get to the city, never know what comes out at night." Sudden memories of the monstrosities at Austin flashed through his mind, he had to take a moment to breath. Luckily nobody noticed, weakness was something never to be shown in the wasteland. Jay had told Aaron that, Jay had told Aaron everything. Slowly, Aaron walked to the tank, deep in thought.

Fireman0504

Stefanie sat back up on the tank. Rivet City was in view. It'd only be a couple minutes. They did have to get out of the streets before nightfall. This newcomer, Aaron Ramsey, seemed like the quiet type. Troubled even. Maybe he was just weary. "So where ya from?" she said to him. "Austin," Ramsey replied. "Where is that?" Stefanie asked. Ramsey looked at her as if she'd just crawled out of a hole. (Which she did if you read an earlier post. Haha.) "Seriously," she said, "where is it?" "It's a few thousand miles southwest of here," Ramsey said. Stefanie nodded. It was time to stop asking questions for now. "You a local?" Ramsey said to her. "Me?" she said surprised, "I'm not, I'm from Zanadu, up in Baltimore. I was from here originally, then I got sold." Ramsey looked at her sympathetically. "You're a slave then?" Stefanie lowered her gaze to the ground. "Used to be," she said, "they sold me from D.C. after I killed my first master when I was seventeen. He tried to rape me. The guy who bought me put me in the pit fights in Zanadu. It's a slaver town. Full of fight pits, brawl bars, and of course The Cell. Spent the last five years killin' and cripplin' men and women that they sent me up against. I still fight now, but I do it for a living. Can't be more honest than the blood, sweat, and tears put into it. Gets me caps and prestige in Zanadu. I'm 22 now and I'm pretty much feared in that town. Nothin' says 'don't mess with me' like snappin' a guy's neck in front of half the city. My last master was killed in a slaving raid when I was 21. We had a bet; if I outlived him, I'd be freed. That's what happened. It was kind of sad though, because even though he was my master, he was pretty good to me. Didn't beat me, or hurt me, or try to rape me. Taught me a ton about fighting and shooting. He respected me. He just needed me to make him caps, that was the deal. I got a healthy cut of course, but slaves in Zanadu can't do much with caps. I was champion on five circuits and fought twice in The Cell." Ramsey simply nodded, listening. "Sorry," she said, "didn't mean to bore you." Stefanie looked back at the ground. She thought for a second that she'd spilled way too much info on herself. Oh well, she was close enough to be able to handle herself if he tried something, though, she figured he wouldn't.

The tank ground forward and closed the distance to Rivet City's ramp in a few minutes. The group climbed down and headed up the gangway. "Store's closed," Stefanie grumbled, "stupid raiders." The little group of people walked across the bridge to the ship. The night guard nodded a welcome and Stefanie looked over to see Strauss stop the drunken Domingo from falling off the deck. They went inside. "Muddy Rudder anyone?" Stefanie said, "first round is on me."

Domingo, still wearing his leather tank driver's helmet, stumbled across the gangway to Rivet City, once havint to be steadied by Strauss to keep himself from taking a plunge over the rusty railing into the radiation-permeated Potomac below. Nodding a quiet thanks, Domingo turned towards Stefanie. "Never one to turn down a drink, last one there buys the first round!" He shouted, making a drunken lope (it couldn't really be called a run) towards the Stairwell.

//--Teh Krush11:39, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Howbout first?" Riley said when Domingo was out of ear range, since Riley didn't really feel like running right now anyways.

Vegas adict18:05, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Marcus Andrews sat in the muddy ruder with his XO Alexander.The crusade were dieing and in his view that could only be a good thing.He paused to look at the note Alex had given him regarding what was left of there forces.It was definetly not good they had left there Opressors in new york and out of the 50 reinforcements from new york only 5 of them were in power armor.

He looked up from his drink to see Strauss a Girl and that tank driver enter the room "hello boys drinks on me"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 19:56, 27 April 2009 (UTC)

Weston looked up at the name of Strauss, before his eyes go wider.

"Strat? Where'd you go man? " Weston said in a druken tone. However, he had manged to regain his blance and lose some of his, well, drunkness.

Stumbling on over to Struass, he noticed both Riley and Stefine.

"Hey guys! Long time no see? Whos the other two guys with ya?"

//--Teh Krush22:34, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Oh, great, one of the assholes from the cave, Riley thought to himself, "Hel-" Riley said but was cut off by a random drunk screaming jibberish. Then just as Riley tried to say it again, the drunk screamed again and then threw a bottle of vodka at Stefanie. Stefanie was outraged at the vodka all over her clothes, and whacked the man in the face with her Power-Fist before he could throw his Whiskey. The Security then came and beat up the drunk before throwing him off the boat. (Can you have Jeeves just randomly fins your location right about now? I wanna add weapons to him!)

Solbur22:46, 27 April 2009 (UTC)// I think Jeeves was intended to be a supporting character (y'know, like, a butler) rather than somebody who fights. 'course, that's just conjecture.

"Rivet City justice for ya, baby!" Strauss whooped as a Power Fist and then a police baton came crashing down on the drunk's head, which, in turn, sent him crashing to the floor. Two uniformed Security officers mumbled something to eachother before picking the man up and carrying him upstairs, presumably for deposition in the Potomac. "I'd hate to be him tomorrow morning. Shit, anyone smoking in here? 'Cause you know what vodka is like, one little spark near Stefanie and she is--" Strauss was silenced by a terrifying glare from the clearly-not-impressed former slave.


--Cerebral plague23:15, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jack was heading back to Rivet city. He and Jacob split up to further avoid the Crusade, and he was reaching the building. Seeing a tank outside, smelling like some baked potatoes strips he had eaten before, which had been a delicacy in pre-war times apparently. Going into Rivit City, he headed down the stairs. The shops were all closed, so he figured he might as well rent a room. He walked around, looking for the hotel. Accidentally, he walked into the local bar. Right before he walked out, he noticed a few familiar faces.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 23:41, 27 April 2009 (UTC)

Weston reagianed his blance after a guard kncoekd into him in order to stop the yelling Drunk. Turning his head back to the group, Weston grinned.

"So, how ya'll been? Have'nt seen you guys since...well, Jersulam!"

Weston had taken a seat at one of the stools, Weston looked around the bar. Nearly empty, save for a couple people he did'nt know. Just this little renuion of people...and a guy who smelt like crap. looking up towards the entrace, he saw a face that he recongized after a second.

"Jack! Your here! Were just missing Jacob and this will be a real party!"

//--Teh Krush23:59, 27 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Your missing Holmes," Riley added, taking a sip of his whiskey.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 00:11, 28 April 2009 (UTC)

"Who, blind guy? Well, i did'nt really like him. He could'nt take a joke very well."

--Cerebral plague00:23, 28 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Weston, if you want to call a guy a dick, call him a dick. By the way, how much beer have you drunk exactly? Aren't you a minor?" Weston then tried to flip off Jack, but held up the wrong finger.

User:Ramsey01:30, 28 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron sat on a stool as these people conversed on old times, it seemed to be somewhat of a reunion to them. Of course, Aaron hadn't been recognized by any of them considering he'd been searching the desolate of wastes for Jay in the past 2 and a half years. He heard one of them mention Jacob, Aaron wondered if he meant Jacob Vaughton. Jacob was Aaron's only tie to his lost brother. He had heard of the Brotherhood Outcast's battle against the Crusade in Fairfax, and from what records show, a Defender Ramsey was in that battle. Aaron had no doubt that it was Jay, it had to be. After this battle, the Outcasts headed West. Aaron often wondered if his sibling left with them, but he had to be sure. Jacob meant something because he was said to have fought in the same battle, alongside Aaron's beloved brother. He would find out soon of his brother's whereabouts, soon enough he hoped. Aaron downed a glass of whiskey, he felt excluded from the group, all of them talking about previous times together and the such. He'd stay with them, for the time being.

Fireman0504 Sorry Krushster, I got plans for Jeeves

Stefanie was pissed. She was covered in Vodka, and now Strauss was cracking jokes. To be clear, she wasn't pissed at Strauss, she wanted to make more of a mess of the drunk who'd been thrown out. She took a shot of whiskey and a Buffout. She grinned at Strauss, "Where do you think they took that drunk?" she said, "I wanna go use him as a rug." Strauss and Stefanie and Riley chuckled. Stefanie noticed Aaron sitting by himself. "Hey Loner," she called, "come on and meet some folks, have a drink." Aaron shook his head. He was clearly thinking of other things. Stefanie turned back to the group. "Hey there Weston! How's D.C. been treatin ya?" Before Weston could answer the door to the Rudder burst open again. "YEW FUGGIN' BATCH!" a slurry voice said loudly. Stefanie turned, smiling. That drunk had somehow gotten back in. This was going to be fun. Weston tried to grab her shoulder but wasn't quick enough. She levelled the man with a left-handed punch with her brass knuckles, then stomped hard on the back of his head, smashing his teeth all over the floor. She dragged him over to the bar and ordered two drinks. The first she splashed on his prone body. Then she stepped up on his chest and stood on him drinking the the other one. She recalled stunts like this against slavers in the bars at Zanadu. Add some humiliation to the defeat. She laughed and looked over at Strauss. "Told ya," she chuckled, shrugging. He shook his head laughing. "Who wants a round?" Stefanie shouted to the group. She couldn't understand what they said, so she assumed it was a yes. She looked down at the drunk she was still standing on. "You are rude and don't get one," she said smuggly. He just winced and barely struggled on the verge of unconciousness. "Order up everyone," she said, "it's on me!"

Vegas adict17:48, 28 April 2009 (UTC) 

Marcus laughed as rhe drunk hit the floor."Alexander drag that man out" he pulled up his chair and pulled out his Balma "if you want something stronger drink this" he passed the bottle along.

Domingo looked towards Stefanie, a half-level smile spreading across his glowing face. "I'll order up, then!" He slurred, calling the barkeep over and calling in several bottles of vodka for himself and anyone else who may want them."

--Cerebral plague23:57, 28 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Give me two! I haven't gotten drunk in over two months!" Jack walked over, and picked up a bottle of Vodka. He then started to start drinking it as fast as he could.

//--Teh Krush00:59, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Riley was on his last drink, hes had too much. He then began to open his last can of Pork n' Beans, which, surprisingly, Cat didn't try to claw at and lick off of everybody. Once he was done, he seen Jack start to open one, and Cat jumped on Jack and his Pork n' Beans splattered on everybody around him.. which was Stefanie, Weston, and him.

--Cerebral plague 02:01, 29 April 2009 (UTC)

Jack had something jump on his back, he didn't really know what it was. However, instincts came to him as he immediately drew his knife, and tried to cut what ever was on hims throat. He stopped right before realizing it was Ryley's dog, and lowered the knife. He got up, and put the dog off him, and watched as the dog licked the pork and beans off his poncho.

Fireman0504

Stefanie looked around. She was a bit tipsy. She stepped down off of the drunk guy she was standing on, who was now unconcious after she had stomped on his head a couple times. She now had more Pork N' Beans on her. She slid over to the bar next to Jack. Looking back, she watched as the two Rivet City Security Guards dragged the now unconscious and somewhat bloody man out. Again. This time she was confident he was not coming back. She ordered up a shot of whiskey for herself and a bowl of Pork N' Beans. Cat had them and now Stefanie needed some. She popped in a Buffout and looked at Riley. "Keep Cat away from my supper," she said, winking. She dumped a bag of caps on the table to pay for all her comrades' drinks. The bartender passed her a bowl of Pork N' Beans and her shot. Took the shot and began eating her beans, then gave Cat a little look as he approached. "Riley, I swear if he jumps up, I'll make YOU my next rug," Riley chuckled and called Cat, who came back. She finished up and stood up, dizzily grabbing the bar. "I think I'm gonna head up to the common room and to bed," she said. "Night all, you guys gonna be here in the morning?" Without waiting for an answer she headed up to the common room for some sleep.

Setting up for the battling part of the RP... though the socializing and barfighting is a good time because that's Stefanie's home environment...

User:Ramsey03:35, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron finished his last shot, that was... 7, he thinks. Although it takes quite a lot of drink to get Aaron drunk, but 7 shots of Vodka was enough to get him a bit careless. Looking around, he had noticed Stefanie had left for bed. Aaron turned to the clock, it was only 11:21, Guess it was her bedtime... Meh, she was too kinky anyway, there ought to be some other poon in this dump. Aaron rose from his chair, stumbling only a little. He looked back to Riley, the man seemed silent, depressed even. Across the bar the Tank driver, whom he had still not gotten the name of, was busy gambling with some unfriendly faces. Strauss and Jack were in mid conversation with a duo of former(or present)soldiers. Aaron didn't spot Weston, but he wasn't really looking. The tipsy Austinite walked past Riley's dog- or cat- or whatever he wanted the damn thing to be. He scratched it's head as it was licking up some Pork & Beans, "Good Dog- I mean, Cat.... Ah fuck it, Good animal." He heard Riley chuckle from his stool, Aaron mumbled something and moved on. Just as he was going to give in and get some sleep, a certain woman, Trinnie, entered the bar. Aaron had been with her before, twice by his count, but she truly never got old. He approached her. It was time Aaron had some fun.

Run4urLife!06:14, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob, having arrived with Jack, was stood back, arms folded. Mostly, it was to take up less space as he leaned against the wall of the muddy rudder. He was so still that in spite of his size, people didn't seem to notice him until they were right next to him, which led to many drunks jumping back and falling over as they realised there was a large man in a duster with an assault rifle over his back standing less than two feet from them. He watched everyone in the bar, even Brock, the bouncer. Stefanie had been getting quite drunk, but she had just lef for the common room for some sleep. He almost felt sorry for the fella who had followed her up, talking to her and standing real close. Security would either find him screaming and tied to a bed, or screaming and tied to a grenade.

He scratched Cat's ears as the dog sauntered over to him. In spite of his dislike for the vast majority of the human race, he liked dogs. Couldn't care less for cats, the way radiation had affected them turned them into big mean-spirited things the size of a mule. He didn't really want to think of what that mountain lion mutant thing would have done had he not introduced it to the business end of a shotgun. But dogs, they were great. Feral in most cases, but otherwise, great. He sat down at the bar, next to Jackal. He didn't like drinking. His fast metabolism made the stuff go right to his head, and that led to accusations of being a lightweight, in spite of him being able to drink for longer and recover much faster (in fact, he had no idea what a hangover felt like, he always slept through them) than anyone he had ever wound up drinking in the vicinity of. He drank a little bottle of whiskey, and then one of burboun. He needed to catch up to everyone else.

Domingo was working his way through his third bottle of vodka and was now pretty clearly inebriated, as his face was beet red and he was supporting himself by using the table as a counterweight for his seat. He looked across the table at the three shady types in front of him. Who are these guys? He blearily thought to himself, as one started talking about something. He mentioned "shipment" and somehow immediately understood what he meant.

With a drunken roar, he rolled the whole table- vodka, food, cutlery and people included- over onto the floor and pinned it on top of the shady guys, managing to extricate their purpose with a few shouts: They had indeed meant to buy the weapons shipment off them to supply an anti-Ghoul militia in the area, no doubt working with the crusade. Too drunk to perform any other acts (or even really hold his gun), Domingo stumbled to his feet and also headed for the common room. Leaving his vodka on the bar.

//--Teh Krush11:46, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Radiation King has just opened a entrance point! Yay.

Karen and her squad were sitting in the ruined parking lot outside of Rivet City, "Some Crusade ones were just receiving a 'package' in there," one squadmate said, "Yeah, and we are here to destroy it or take it for ourselves," the other squadmate said. "The package is in the common room, the sellers are in the Muddy Rudder, a bar. We're going in to take the package, don't kill unless you need too. Put on your Rivet City security uniforms now." Karen said to her squad, and about five minutes later their Black-Ops armor was in a box beside a trashcan, "Lets move."


Riley laughed at the table being thrown at them, and wondered where everybody went. About 10 seconds later Riley downed ANOTHER vodka, and then passed out. He had a short dream of burning to death, wonder what that meant. (No, just a coincidence, not gonna happen)

Fireman0504

Stefanie rolled overas the door burst open and Domingo stumbled in. He looked drunkenly over to the right. There was a man tied to the bed with four socks and a pillow case. One sock was tied in his mouth, gagging him. Stefanie looked over at him and shrugged, then looked at Domingo. "He wanted to play," she smirked, "I'm just saving him for later." The man shook his head rapidly and mumbled through the gag. Stefanie stood up and helped Domingo to another bed, tucking him in. "Just sleep it off pal." she chuckled. He mumbled something as she tucked him in. She looked back over at the tied up guy. "I'll get to you later," she said, "I'd do it now but... well... I'm tired." she grinned. She layed back down in her bed and rolled over.

I'll be working for the next twelve hours.

Vegas adict18:27, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

MArcus stood up from the bar "michell keep an eye out for the others im going to the room's" he walked past the stairway and made his way to the botom deck.As he aproached the room a voice called out "Password" Marcus checked it in his mind "chocolate" the door opened and he walked in.

Act 2[]

//--Teh Krush19:04, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// I'm guessing Strauss is wide open right now, still in the bar. Gonna have him carry me upstairs. :D

Riley woke up from his dream, and, he didn't feel as drunk anymore and seen Strauss had carried him all the way up to the Common Room. And, somehow, Cat had managed to get a hold of the twenty cans of Pork n' Beans that were in his backpack.. as everything was covered in it.

Solbur19:10, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Damnit, you posted that while I was typing this. Can you set that like, half an hour before my post? >_>

"... You did? That's awesome!" Strauss whooped drunkenly, throwing a fist into the air. "Did I tell... tell ya about the time me, Jack and a few others were getting chased by Crusaders and dogs and shit? I musta killed like, five hundred people that day! Hah!" He paused to take a swig from the bottle of vodka in his hands. "Yeah, you did, ten minutes ago," One of the soldiers he and Jack had been speaking to remarked. Strauss paused. Ten minutes had passed? Odd. He turned away from the group, almost falling over in the process, to face his ever-vigilant robot, which was hovering boredly until it noticed that attention was being directed its way. "Worthington, how... much have I drank? D'ya know?" Strauss asked, concern and alcohol lining his voice. "Consulting recent observational memory..." Worthington responded, traling off. The two soldiers and Jack were looking in his direction now. Worth seemed to hold it off for as long as possible. "... one bottle, Master, and approximately another half if my guesstimation of the volume of the one in your hand proves correct." Strauss could have sworn there was a certain gloating smugness to his robot's voice. A fit of sniggering broke out behind him. "...Count that again?" Strauss said, bewildered. "One and a half bottles, Master." The reply was too fast for him to have actually done a proper analysis and the smugness was so much more apparent. Jack and the two soldiers broke down into laughter. Confused, Strauss took a step forwards, and almost tripped over a stool as he did.

Run4urLife!19:18, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob was starting to lose the liking he held for that particular dog. Getting Pork 'n' Beans everywhere. A-fucking-gain. Jacob wiped some beans off his shoulder, and cleaned the bean-coated parts of his duster off with some dirty water. He needed to find one of those spiffy leather ones like Skyler wore (he doesn't know Skyler's dead). Blood, guts, pork, beans, everything just wiped off the stuff. He was not going to try and make one himself, given that he had struggled to sew all the holsters into this one. He had discovered the hard way that sewing is harder than it looks, sewing his duster to his trousers on more than one occassion.

He watched as everyone else got wasted, as he just sat there, staring into his drink. GNR was on, and Three Dog was playing some song called "Thrill is Gone", by someone called, something King. Blues. It suited Jacob's mood. He stood up and wandered up through the bridge tower, ignoring the people as they walked by. He stepped out onto the flight deck, and spread his arms out to the side as the wind hit him. It felt strange, standing on this flight deck, without Super Mutants taking pot-shots at him. It felt good.

Calonord19:26, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Cromartie was exhausted from all his walking, “this has to be it” he thought, looking at the large rusty air craft carrier. This was his first time he saw a boat of that size, there was nothing like that in the United Kingdom where he was, the boat he travelled from wasn’t even half the size. Cromartie made his was up the metal tower, connecting to the carrier, slowly approaching the door. There was a guard posted outside, wearing black shiny combat armour, also wearing a security helmet.

Rivet City Security Guard: “We want no trouble new comer”.

Cromartie: “I wont”.

Cromartie pushed the rusty metal door open, his eyes noticed the sign saying “ Muddy Rudder Bar”, he followed these sign down the stairs, he journey made him thirsty and he needed a rest, also thinking that maybe he could get some information on the surrounding area. Cromartie opened to door slowly trying not to get any attention in the bar, pulling up a stall he sat down and asked for a drink.

Im not good at speech grammar, hope this is good

Domingo rolled in his sleep on the cot, somehow managing to gather the pillow in the straps tying the tank captain's helmet to his head and rolling it over on top of himself. Awakened by the sudden pressure atop his head, the tank driver-drunkard was jerked awake and briefly struggled underneath the cot, eventually dragging pillow and helmet off his head and onto the floor. Velasquez checked his watch and noted it was about three-thirty in the morning, a long time since he had first showed up. Shrugging, the latino pushed himself off the cot and headed for the Muddy Rudder, hoping to pick up a quick breakfast from the small establishment.

Run4urLife!19:43, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal had noticed the newcomer arriving at the bar. Not a local accent. English, if memory served. How the hell did an Englisman get to DC? And more impotantly, how stupid was this guy, sitting next to an angry-looking Ghoul with the Tricolour (Irish Flag) printed on his shoulder pad? Jackal was in no mood to gt angry at him for no reason, so he just sat there, watching the little Englishman. No sense taking risks. After all, "The Empire on Which the Sun Never Sets" was just a fancy way of saying God didn't trust them in the dark. (I'm joking here).


Jacob leaned on the pew in front of him in Rivet City's church. He sighed, as he looked up at a picture of the Crucifiction. He wondered if there was a heaven (not that he'd be headed for it), ever since Fairfax. Actually, ever since Old Olney, when that Deathclaw had nearly impaled him. He was thinking about the Outcasts now. They'd come in really handy with this war between the Crusade and the Last Legion spilling over into every part of the Capitol Wastes.

//--Teh Krush19:48, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Riley looked at Cat, "I vow never to eat Pork n' Beans around you, anymore," he said. Riley was wondering what he would eat, maybe some Salisbury Steak or something.. He then fell back to sleep.


Karen and her team had infiltrated Rivet City, the security guards were dumb enough to believe that Karen was one of them. "Idiots," she said out loud, "Let's back into this room, get our stealth-boys out maybe?" the second squadmate said, and they did that. Then, just for the heck of it, Karen grabbed the first person she seen, (not one of her squadmates) and pulled him to her and burned the guy to death in horrific blue flames.

Calonord19:50, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Cromartie was drinking his drink, he noticed a Ghoul looking at him. He didn’t stare much at the ghoul, as he thought it might be rude, sipping his drink. Cromartie was thinking about his past, all the hatred, and savage ways, he leaned over to the Ghoul and asked him.

Cromartie: “Excuse me, can you tell me about the surrounding area.”……

Waiting for the ghoul to reply, he didn’t look pleased at Cromartie.

Run4urLife!19:57, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob jumped. Had he just heard a scream from down the corridor? Definitely. Or was that just the burboun talking? He sat down and listened a little more intently. Then he saw a sober person rush past, toward that room that was always empty. He got up and followed, slowly, so as not to get a headrush, which, coupled with the amount he had just drunk (he counted three bottles, and a few beers Strauss had insisted on buying him), could prove catastrophic in the neatly packed seats of the church.

He stepped around a corner, his M1911 drawn, and watched as the woman walked away from the room, shrugging. She looked at him and said something about ashes and nothing else. Jacob shook his head. That wasn't right. The last time he had heard a scream like that was . . . when he had lit a raider up like a lantern. Those were the death screams of a burning man. Jacob went to investigate. As he opened the door, he did indeed see nothing but ash. So he closed it, and slammed the isolation bolt home. Now that the door could only be opened from the outside, anything that may have been in there was staying in there.

Unless they're telekinetic and can open the door that way. If they're not, someone will open it at some point anyway.


Jackal looked at the stranger. Ponce. Asking about the area.

"Well, its a big place. There are some really nice folks over in a place called Evergreen Mills. They love it when you walk right in and slap 'em on the back of the head. It's like some kind of tribal greeting. Same up in Paradise Falls." Jackal muttered.

I kind of G2G sorry guys--Calonord 19:58, 29 April 2009 (UTC)

//--Teh Krush20:08, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// This is about ten mins later.

Karen was melting the door, hard, but possible. It slowly turned red, and then blue, and finally white hot. A gaping hole started to emerge in the middle where her hands were, and she could pull the bar off the front, and get out. "Move, I'll go to the Common Room where the package is, and you two go to the Muddy Rudder, find the seller."

Run4urLife!20:18, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob strode back into the Muddy Rudder and sat down next to Jackal, on the far side from some stranger who was asking about the friendly people of Paradise Falls and Evergreen Mills. Jacob was about to take a pop at the apparent Raider sympathizer, until he heard Jackal talking about how much they liked it when you shouted at them from a long way off, and how they fired their guns as a form of greeting. Jacob had to make a conscious effort not to smile his crooked smile. He looked over at Strauss who was now standing on a table, talking and miming the escape from Jerusalem to a growing group of women and children. Then he looked around the room again, spoting a stranger, with dreadlocks and a strange smile on his face. Jacob nodded to him. He could swear he had heard that man introduce himself as a Ramsey to some strangers earlier.

Domingo was wandering past the empty room Jacob had just sealed when he noticed the scent of something burning. Looking around, he noticed nothing amiss, but the blood suddenly rushed to his head and he was forced to lean over. He placed his hand against the door and steadied himself for a second, only to encounter, in a very painful manner, the results of Kate's handiwork- the destabilized door tipped over and Domingo plunged through right after it. The double *thud* of Domingo and the door echoed all the way to the Muddy Rudder.

Coming to after about thirty seconds, Domingo found himself face-down in a pile of ashes. Sputtering as he twisted around, pushing himself off the ground and brushing the ashes off his face, Domingo immediately ran for the Muddy Rudder.

//--Teh Krush20:55, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// I burned a hole through that door!
Radiation King // I realize that, Domingo stopped on his way past because he got hit with a bout of poor balance, ahd to steady himself and fell through the hole in the door. Taking the door with him, of course, for comedic value.
Run4urLife!21:17, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Whereabouts is Gilead? I don't want to jump to it and have an army pop out of nowhere to attack it.

Colonel Roarke had given marching orders three quarters of an hour ago. The 7th Hell Zulus were up and ready, and the rest of the Last Legion were about halfway through taking down their tents and loading them back on the trucks and pack Brahmin. He observed his army as it grew again, as several units of Crusaders had arrived in the night to join them. He was whirling his Officer Sword through his hand, spinning and rotating it, trying to stave off boredom.They were beginning the march on Gilead now. And about time too. Now that the supply units had caught up, they could go gung-ho for the place. And when they arrived, it would rain blood.

"Lets go!" He shouted as the campfires were put out and the last tents were packed and stowed. "We march on Gilead Point. There, we will strike the first blow against the Crusade. We will shake the ground with our fury. Let Fear be our harbinger, may death walk as our servant and let sorrow stagger in our wake. We will leave nothing but widows and orphans behind."

In spite of the brutality implied in that last sentence, the soldiers following him cheered. They wanted to bring the Crusade down as much as he did. However, wanting to do something and doing something were two different things. He had felt it himself, the revulsion towards killing those he had once called brothers.

Calonord21:19, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Cromartie still drinking from his drink, he nearly finished it. He pulled out a wod of cash and handed it to the bartender.

Cromartie: "Another one please".

Cromartie looked around, he enjoyed being in the bar, everyone was doing there own thing. No fights or arguements, Cromartie could see him getting use to this.

--Cerebral plague21:40, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jack got up, and started walking towards the door. It was 4:00 A.M., and he was going to sleep. When walking towards the door, Domingo rushed into the room, clearly exhausted. Jack walked past him, as he started yelling about something. He was personally to hung over to give a shit. All he wanted to do was go to his room, and sleep. Going down the hallway, he noticed an odd shimmer...

KuHB1aM21:44, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Captain Thomas stood watch from the rained down trenches, his binoculars in hand. "They're marching now, aren't they?" Captain Reust said, his hand resting on the ball of the hilt of his officer sword as the rain continued to pour. Thomas sighed. "Yep. Nothing we can do to stop them now. They'll smash and pillage until we're all dead and burning at the stake, just like at Yonkers last week." Thomas said, still eyeing the enemy from a distance through the rain that had grown heavier. Reust slapped Thomas on the shoulder. "We both knew it was coming. There was nothing you could do to prevent it." Reust said resigningly, and walked back towards Gilead Point's lobby area.

Run4urLife!21:56, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Yonkers? World War Z reference?

Roarke watched through the rain. His binoculars could pick out the men on the walls. The artillery would be done setting up in about five minutes. He flexed his fingers around the hilt of his sword, sheathed at his side, then reached back and drew his field ripper. He performed a few stretches and swings with the heavy weapon. It weighed about as much as a Super Sledge, but Roarke was used to the weight and balance of the immense weapon. For safety, he didn't turn it on. Eventually, man and weapon became one, as if the ripper was a part of his arm, an extension of himself. Of course, he was careful to stay out of the range of Gilead's arc of fire.

A runner charged up to tell him that the sappers had finished their preparations. Roarke smiled. Even with the slippery mud, which would require resetting of the guns after each firing, the big guns would give them the advantage.

"Fire!" Roarke yelled as he waved his ripper in the air. The big guns roared in response. Lobbing high explosive shells over the walls, and battering them with shells. The walls would fall eventually.

KuHB1aM22:11, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Lol, I didn't think anyone would catch that. I wasn't counting on walls, just trenches, but I can compensate.

The trenches, as misfortune would have it, were behind the walls rendering the occupants useless until, heaven forbid, the walls fall to the enemy. Thomas looked above him as the wall segment in front of him exploded in hundreds of concrete rocks. Damned artillery. Immediatly, Thomas waved a platoon forward as quickly as possible. They needed to fill the gap to prevent a major breach. "Get on the sides of the fucking breach, dammit!" Thomas screamed angrily, drawing his pistol. Soldiers gathered on other side of the wall opening, their guns and helmets the only thing poking out from the breach. A crew of two replaced a machinegun as quickly as possible behind the breach, as the enemy began to pick off soldiers on the walls and move up the hill.

Run4urLife!22:18, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Make Thomas escape. If he's gonna die, Jackal's gonna be the one to kill him.

Roarke watched as a breach formed. Then, as laid out in the fireplan, the artillery shelling the inner courtyards began concentrating on the breach. The wall began to crumble away as the constant shelling began to strain them ever more. Roarke smiled. He and the Last Chancers would have no inhibitions with regards to killing those bastards behind the walls. He would wait until the breach was mostly cleared and the local militia performed the forlorn hope attack. But, now was not the time for that. He decided to allow his etiquette get the better of him. He lifted up the bullhorn lying next to him and raised it to his mouth.

"Soldiers of Gilead, I give you this one chance for surrender. I beseech you, do not turn a deaf ear to this offer." Roarke shouted down the bullhhorn. He knew the Airborne would never surrender after such an offer. And that was exactly what he wanted.

User:Ramsey22:29, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron exhaled, he didn't get anywhere with Trinnie, but he truly didn't want to. He puffed out smoke from his century-old cigarettes. He had been trying to quit, but he had not. Growing up in Austin, you quickly realize how fast life can be ended. What are the chances of him living longer than 40 anyways? He already decided to go back to Austin at December this year, there was no hope for his lost brother. Aaron sighed as he even thought of Jay, the idea that he could be dead, rotting in a hole somewhere... it disgusted Aaron. It disgusted him to a point that he had even considered ending it now, saving him from a similar fate. But he knew better, he knew that he couldn't abandon Jenn like that, and that's the opposite of what his brother would want him to do. No, he would hold out for now. Aaron's attention was faulted by the arrival of a person, hopefully a friend. The man greeted Aaron, his voice sounded hardened and battle-worn. But most importantly, he introduced himself as Jacob. "Jacob? Vaughton?" Aaron was surprised to find this man of legend here, "Aaron Ramsey, pleased to meet you." They shook hands, Vaughton having somewhat of a stunned look on his face. Just as Aaron was about to speak, Domingo burst into the bar. Aaron looked to Jacob, "We'll talk later, for now, let's check whats going on."

With that, Aaron and Jacob approached Domingo as he ranted.

KuHB1aM22:32, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// I presume after your massive waster cannon fodder charge, you'll attack?

"You can go to hell, Roarke!!!" Thomas screamed back, using his own bullhorn. His soldiers cheered him, and their guns fired off into the air as an act of defiance. "So be it." The voice replied. Thomas poked his head out of the growing breach. He watched with laughter as a wave of wasters armed with nothing but old hunting rifles and lead pipes charged him in basic similiar brahmin outfits. What was Roarke doing, trying to waste resources? Thomas signaled for the machineguns covering the breach to hold until they could see the whites of the enemy's eyes, then raised a fist. As the waster militia charged inward up the hill, weary and tired, they were cut down by mass fire, not even getting the chance to raise weapons in defense. Thomas waited as another wave came up, and drew his sword, already bloodied from the dead wasters at his feet.

Run4urLife!22:40, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Goin offline, will begin the attack proper sometime tomorrow

Apparently, word of Jacob's exploits with the Outcasts had reached Austin through Ramsey. This guy had the same mannerisms, but clearly wasn't a blood relative anyway. Unless Ramsey's father was incredibly gullible. He and the Austinite moved up the stairs with Domingo raving about something like a shimmer, like heat haze. Jacob knew that only Stealth Fields made that shimmer. He noticed it just as one barged into the room. Jacob opened fire, but missed. Damn beer goggles! They damaged more than your sense of taste in women apparently! Whoever it was deactivated the Stealth Field, because it was apparently of no use any more. The man raised his hands, and Domingo and Aaron were launche backwards. Jacob looked at the man, who returned an equally puzzled look. Then the man picked up a garden gnome and threw it at Jacob.

"Ow, what? Jesus, is that all you can do? But still Jesus, you could have someone's eye out like that!" Jacob shouted, distracting the man long enough to shoot him in the legs, blowing out his kneecaps.


Roarke watched as the forlorn hope attack on the breach faltered. He ordered for the guns to fire into the breach this time. Thomas wouldn't be getting away this time.

//--Teh Krush22:54, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Noooooooo! The other two aren't Psyc-Ops! I have to kindof delete Radiations post and edit Runs.. grr!

The first Black-Op fell to the ground, and in a his dying breaths he drew his pistol and started firing on Jacob. He then died as Jacob jumped and crushed his skull. The second Black-Op then came at Jacob from behind, smashing a glass of vodka in his eyes and drawing a knife, which he then used to stab Jacob right into the back of his knee-cap. (Ohh thats gotta hurtzorz!)

--Cerebral plague23:03, 29 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jack was walking down a corridor, when he saw Jacob being stabbed threw the knee. Knowing that this was in fact not friendly bar behavior, he drew his ballistic knife. Firing at the man's neck, he walked over and removed the knife from Jacobs knee, and stabbed the already dead man's heart with it. Just to be sure of course!

Run4urLife!23:08, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Woohoo! Updates installed with no need to reset. Not sure why . . . Anyway, I got some more time online now. Had to add one more, because I want this post

Jacob spun on his bad leg as another BlackOp appeared from his Stealth Field (although, all things considered, he'd probably have two bad legs now), and delivered a wild, blindly swung punch at his attacker. Unfortunately, Jackal had just jumped the said attacker and was vigorously stamping on his head and chest as he struggled to regain his feet. The punch hit Jackal in the back of the head, launcing him forwards, to land in a heap on top of the pool table.

Jacob wiped the last of the vodka out of his eyes. He was pissed at that (I know from experience that vodka in the eyes hurts). As the Black-Op got back to his feet, Jacob punched him twice in the chest and twice in the face, breaking a few of his ribs, and his nose, respectively. Then, as the BlackOp regained his footing, he performed a dramatic display of his skill, waving his hands and such. As he finished in a relaxed fighting stance, with his knife pointed at JAcob's heart, all Jacob could do was sigh.

Then he drew a Sawn-Off Shotgun and blasted the poor fucker in the face, splattering his brains all over the spectators.

//--Teh Krush23:21, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// I know this makes Riley seem like some kind of precog, but he isn't, lets just say it is a brother-sister link?

Riley sat on the cot face upwards but awake, he didn't want to risk Stefanie tying him up or something like that. He just had a dream that the whole ship was about to explode or something, with blue flames, but, how would that be possible?


Karen entered the Common Room (yes, Riley and Karen are in the same room) and moved into the back area. There she found a safe, and inside, a note. Fucking assholes, Karen thought, as the note read "Looking for the shipment? Sorry B! I took it for myself! A, if it's you, run before the buyer finds out." Oh well, Karen thought to herself, and she then realized that there were gunshots coming from the lower areas of the ship, and then she thought, Oh, looks like I need ANOTHER new team.

Radiation King // I hope the shipment you mentioned isn't my tank, because otherwise you have a pissed-off latino with free passes to every gun store in the Capital Wasteland tracking your ass.

Domingo looked over at Jacob, seeing the mercenary had everything under control. "Sir," Domingo piped up as he rubbed the lump on his head garnered from slamming into a wall a short distance away. "I'm gonna go ahead and check on my tank. All the fighting has me a bit worried about the security of El Oso." ANd with that, the big latino sprinted out of the Muddy Rudder, past the common room, out onto the flight deck and towards the entrance.

//--Teh Krush23:31, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// No, the shipment was mentioned earlier, the Crusade were buying a huge amount of weapons from somebody in the Muddy Rudder.
Radiation King // Most likely the guys Domingo dropped a table on?
//--Teh Krush23:43, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// ya
Run4urLife!23:45, 29 April 2009 (UTC)// Jacob is not a mercenary! *facepalm*
Radiation King // remember though, Domingo is just a simple wastelander and probably hasn't encountered a Warrior Weapon. His superior weapon skills could probably just be considered 'mercenary tricks' by Dom. Again, Dom is very realist.

Fireman0504 See what I mean? I'm away at work and you guys advance the storyline a ton! Dang! I missed out.

Stefanie rolled over in bed and opened a single eye, looking at Riley, who was now sitting up. She shook her head slowly as he gazed at her. Someone was in the room. The man tied to the bed next to her shivered in fear, his muffled sounds barely squeaking through the sock in his mouth. Riley slowly shook his head back. Cat layed on the floor, emmitting a long slow growl. Stefanie could smell a peculiar odor, like something burning. She heard the sounds of fighting down in the Muddy Rudder. This wasn't normal fighting. It sounded serious, guns and all. She wanted to get down there to help her friends. She NEEDED to. She couldn't, Riley was talking to her. Telling her she needed to stay put. Finally she couldn't take it, she leapt from the bed and sprinted to the door, opening it. Riley slowly got up as she left. The door shut behind her and she headed to the stairwell, passing Domingo along the way and skipping the last bunch of stairs. She skidded to a stop at the top of the Muddy Rudder's stairs and looked down at the carnage. "What the fuck went on here?" she said, "Riley's creeped out upstairs and all this shit, what the hell just happened?" Stefanie had pretty well recovered from her drunkeness and was now confused. She jumped on the back of the first hostile person she saw, who was grappling with Weston. She rode him to the ground, punching him in the back of the head until he lost conciousness. She stood up and luned into a drunken bargoer, throwing him into a wall. She turned as guns started blazing all over the Muddy Rudder, and crouched as she seeked out another hostile target.

Calonord09:12, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// My articles are short because im kind of alone, independent

Cromartie watched the fight, he didn’t want to be involved because he was the “new guy”. He didn’t want to make Enemies, as he is new to this country and area. The fight was different compared to the ones back at the Raider Lands, more serious looking.

//--Teh Krush11:30, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Short post.

Karen moaned lightly at the note, and then burned it too ashes. She then slowly escaped to the Muddy Rudder to check on her squadmates, and finish what they started.


Riley got up and started to follow Stefanie slowly.

User:Ramsey13:00, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Going offline after this

Aaron watched as Jacob took down another one of these soldiers, them an truly was brutal. His glace was broken by a fist to Aaron's face by a thin, yet muscular looking man. Aaron stumbled to a table, upholstering his .357 Revolver in the possess. The man loaded the shotgun in his hands, but he was too slow. Aaron put two holes in him, one in the neck and one in the shoulder. The BlackOP, who he was fighting, fell to his knees gurgling blood. Aaron shot him again in the head, just to end his misery. Afterward, he looked over to Jacob, who was busy reloading his weapon.

"I just saw Domingo run out to his tank, I think we should follow him. Rivet city isn't seeming like the best place to be right now."

Vegas adict16:08, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// i won't be on much today

Alex ran into the room screaming his head off "theres a group of psychos in the bar".Sudenly marcus sat bolt upright "get the men up and ready.Contact those EMAA aseholes and tell them they best have those reinforcements here soon.Head up to the purifier with the men il catch up with you."

Radiation King // Is it alright that I get into a fight with Karen, TK?
//--Teh Krush19:43, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Sure, just make sure she gets away.. make your character have some burns.
--Cerebral plague19:44, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// I have a question, how do you want us to injure her? Also, I'm going to have her set Jacks poncho on fire
//--Teh Krush19:46, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Spray her with water and shoot at her a bit, just make sure it's when she is near the exit.. FYI, she uses BLUE flames (way hotter then red)
--Cerebral plague19:50, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Got it, I'll have Jack jump off the ship into the water
Radiation King // Alright, I guess it is good that Domingo is wearing his flame-retardant pants now.

Domingo was still sprinting for the walkway when he noticed a mysterious woman in Enclave BlackOps armor in the staircase. Pressing his back to the wall outside the Staircase, Domingo poked his head through the doorway and watched as a small piece of paper spontaneously burst into flames in the woman's hands. Reacting in a manner mostly fuelled by his heavy drinking, lack of sleep and questionable sanity, Domingo pulled out his .32 pistol and fired all 5 shots into the stairwell. Three shots went wide and pinged into the couch, wall and file cabinet on the left side of the stairwell, one embedding itself in the door behind Karen and the fifth pinging off the floor at Karen's feet. Domingo, ignoring the fact that his bullets all completely missed, lumbered into the stairwell.

"So you're the one that's responsible for the Enclave here." Domingo stated, leaving no room for response as he threw a heavy left cross at Karen's face.

//--Teh Krush20:29, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Omg, your so slow! Jk. Karen is making her way to the entrance, shes already left the common room, so I edited the above post.

Karen was taken by surprise, she didn't expect that her cloaking would turn off at this point, Damn it, need to reenable that stealthboy next time, she thought. As she burnt the paper, she evolved it into a small white fireball. "Come an' get me!" she yelled at the man, as she threw her first fireball at him. She then drew she Cryolator (yes, a ICE gun) and started firing.


Cerebral plague20:41, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jack was running through out the ship, searching for more hidden enemies. He had his Chinese assault rifle in his hand, and had just kicked in a door. Walking into a room, he heard gunfire. Quickly exiting it, he came upon a woman near a staircase, and the tank driver. Apparently she had some sort of modified flamer with her, as she shot fireballs from her hand. Jack aimed and fired, spraying the wall with bullets. It was too late however, as she already went for cover. Soon, Jack was getting fireballs thrown at him, and tried to duck for cover. The tank driver was already in a room, blind firing on the women. Jack looked out, just for a second before she pulled out an Ice Gun and started firing.

Run4urLife!20:46, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Aww man, this is so wrong." Jackal muttered to himself as he sprinted up the hallway and blindsided the girl, slamming her into the wall and then to the floor. She rolled over and kicked at him, but he jumped back out of the way. Bad choice, he realised a as she fired at him with that ice gun thing. The bitch was trying to turn him into a freaking ice cube! Noway was he going to turn into something that floats in your drink!

And so, seeing discretion was the better part of valour, Jackal dived down the stairs, rolling as he landed to dissipate the impact. Then he pulled his own gun, firing the SMG and shotgun parts simultaneously. That forced the ice queen back into cover. Jackal whooped and moved back along the stairs to get into a position to fire at her again.

//--Teh Krush20:53, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// First half of Runs post was funny. NOW, time for a heroes scene (with many more people)

Karen was in cover wielding her Cryolator, when she realized she could kill them all very easily without even firing her gun.. or hands. She dropped the Cryolator and put both her hands on the floor, heating it, for what she was trying to do was suck all the oxygen out of the room. After all the walls were purple and red, and the 3 men were on the floor, out of breath, she ran out onto the bridge. But this one, Jack she heard, was able to follow her, so she blasted him off the bridge with blue fire into the radiated water.

--Cerebral plague20:59, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// I thought you said we were on a stair case?
//--Teh Krush21:01, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// The main staircase leads to the bridge..
--Cerebral plague21:02, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Yes, but you said you would take out all the oxygen in the room.....
Run4urLife!21:02, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// You do realise she'd suffer from the oxygen depravation as well, right?

Jackal was up and going after that bitch. Whatever that party trick of hers was, he was about to show one of his own. The Flying Burrito. As she ran from him, he jumped, gaining massive height and distance (or so his drunken brain thought), and dropped, heels first, into the backs of her knees. As expected, her feet were launched out from under her and she dropped right down on her head. Right, he thought. Time to pretend to be a gypsy at a wedding he thought as she got to her feet. He threw a savage jab, catching her off-guard, slamming her to the brige. She kicked out again. This time, Jackal failed to dodge and dropped, his leg gone numb from the pressure-point strike.

He rolled over and swung his freshly drawn machete, striking sparks off the steel bridge where her neck had been a split second before. They were both out of breath, but she could run. She dropped off the bridge, into the water, as he pulled a deagle and crawled to the edge. She was long gone or already had a stealthboy active. Either way, he couldn't see her any more. He cursed, loud and foul at that. Then he crawled back towards the ship. He'd be feeling this in the morning.

//--Teh Krush21:07, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Oh shuzzup Cerebral, ur in watar! And yes Run, she did..

Karen swam to the shore and brushed herself off, she could see the Jack person swimming towards a ladder on the ship, she shot her Cryolator and missed a few times, but froze the ladder and made it fall back into the water. But it was too late, he was up already, time to move.

--Cerebral plague21:14, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jack, after climbing the ladder sat down for a second. He was drenched in radioactive water, and his poncho was ruined. Looking at the women running away, he yelled "FUCK YOU"! He then preceded to assemble his repeater. He looked through the scope, adjusted for the incredible drop, and fired. The woman fell down, it looked like he hit her leg. "Let's go Enclave hunting". The other members of the group rushed up to the en trace, and started to follow.

Solbur21:16, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

.357 rounds pelted the ground around Karen's feet. "Hey! Get the fuck back here!" Strauss bellowed from the bridge, aiming his D'Eagle lopsidedly and one-handedly, his Power Armor compensating for the recoil. After the gun began to click in protest, he ejected the empty magazine and threw it in her direction. "Bitch!" He yelled. Worthington was much more coherently, albeit silently, peppering her with plasma bolts. Strauss heard Jack mention something about hunting, so after struggling to reload his pistol he followed.

//--Teh Krush21:20, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Grrr! Karen shall escape!

Karen clutched her left foot, and pulled out a .44, "Bastards!" she screamed, and threw it away. After injecting her foot with a stimpak and wrapping a bandage around it, she activated her last stealth-boy and started to run away into the morning sun.

Run4urLife!21:38, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal hobbled along on a makeshift crutch, donated by Seagrave Holmes. His leg was still, to all intents and purposes, dead. It was the feeling you got when you hit your hand really hard with a heavy hammer. Numb, yet somehow throbbing with pain nonetheless. And he had an itch. Which the numbness prevented from going away when scratched. This was doing nothing to lighten Jackal's mood as he limped back into the Muddy Rudder, just in time to see Jacob staring down anyone that came close. That guy made Jackal's skin crawl. As much as a Ghouls skin could.


Meanwhile, as the sun rose over Gilead, the Last Legion, specifically, the Last Chancers, AKA 7th Hell Zulu Company, moved up the hill, firing constantly to keep the defenders in the breach pinned down. Roarke, leading them spotted Thomas in the middle of the group, ordering that they fire. A genius plan struck him. If he let Thomas live and run crying back to HighCom, he'd spread more discord than word of Roarke's advance ever could.

"Thomas is mine. Beyond that, let the heads roll, lads!" Roarke bellowed to his troops.

He rushed the breach, his feild ripper rending the first Airborne soldier in half. Then, Thomas moved on him.

"Don't do this, Nate." Thomas shouted.

"This is beyond either of us, Freddy. I'm sorry, but this can't end any other way." Roarke sighed. Thomas thrust his sword at him. That exact same thrust Roarke had taught him. Roarke blocked the thrust and reversed the rotation of the ripper chain, sending Thomas reeling. Then he stepped through, slamming the side of the ripper into Thomas' head. Thomas fell, stunned as Roarke towered over him, the eyes of his T-51b armor glowed a menacing red.

KuHB1aM21:52, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

"You can go fuck yourself twice over, Roarke." Thomas said, and drew his Desert Eagle as Nate brought the ripper down ontop of him, shearing into the handgun and slicing it in half with ease. However, that was all the time Thomas needed. Rolling away, he paused to get up on his feet as gunfire from behind attempted to pierce his own power armor. He turned back to Nate as he reached for his sword, moving back again to engage him. "You've allowed some twisted, perverted version of the same code we both pledged allegiance to to turn you into the monster you are now! What happened to you, Nate? What went wrong?!" Thomas said with indignation and resignment. "You are turning on the very men you fought beside little less than a year ago!" Thomas roared, and once again engaged Nate, twirling his sword as he parried the massive weight of the field ripper, which was quickly wearing through Thomas' sword.

Domingo ran right after Karen the whole way, clomping through the oxygen-dried hallway gasping like a fish about to be strung out in a sushi bar, before making a break for the bridge. He arrived just in time to see Karen plunge into the water. Still sprinting full bore, Domingo leaped over the railing and, temporarily forgetting that little natural law called gravity, flailed his arms and legs back and forth as if attempting to run forward on thin air. That obviously didn't work out too well, as Domingo soon pitched over forward, narrowly missed the flight deck and fell headfirst into the water. Floundering for a second beneath the irradiated seas as his overladen jacket dragged him to the bottom, Domingo tore the leather encumberance off and kicked for shore, dragging the jacket behind him. He pulled ashore just in time to see Karen take off running and activate her Stealth Boy. Staring blearily ahead, Domingo spotted the outline of the woman crossing the sun and immediately went for El Oso. Starting the old tank, Domingo rolled it forward as fast as the vehicle would move while still encumbered with its payload of weapons bound for Megaton and followed the shadow, using his floodlights to spot the footpraints left behind by the fleeing woman.

Run4urLife!22:01, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Nothing went wrong with me. It went wrong on me. The empire I swore to defend is falling apart, and I was stuck in a dead-end dropout frontier, wasting the best soldiers in the Crusade up in the frozen North." Roarke roared. The wounds on his spirit were still fresh, and he struggled not to cut Thomas in half as he rained blows down on his guard. Roarke then spun back the other way and bisected an Airborne Templar coming at his back. He carried on the swing,rounding back on Thomas, knocking his sword away. Thomas then pulled one of Roarke's own tricks on him. He kicked into Roarke's knee, staggering him.

Roarke roared and bulled into Thomas as he regained his footing. He slammed his head into Thomas', their helmets cracking together like two charging Brahmin. They swept their swords around again, Roarke reversing the rotation of his ripper chain again, almost disarming Thomas.

"Time to end this, little brother." Roarke snarled as he stepped forward and swung again.

//--Teh Krush22:02, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Can I come back later and blow up your tank? Also, Karen has left the RP.. You'll see her again soon maybe.

Fireman0504

Stefanie ran pst Strauss, who was blazing away from the bridge, with his weapon. She was trying to catch up to the rest of the roup as they followed the now-moving tank. The odd woman was making her getaway, though a whole lot of people had been killed in the process. Everyone Stefanie knew was still there and accounted for, though that ghoul was hobbling along on a crutch. Stefanie slowly jogged to a stop, trying to catch her breath. Always one step behind, she was. God damn it. She popped in a Buffout and looked around. She didn't see Riley anywhere. Strauss was putting his weapon away and the others seemed to be gathering at the bottom of the ramp. Stefanie walked over to join them.

Run4urLife!22:20, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob looked at Stefanie and nodded to her. They all watched helplessly as Domingo's tank lumbered off, sweeping back and forth with it's floodlights. Jacob sighed and raised his scoped .44 revolver, but the bitch had disappeared from view before he could get a clear shot.

Jackal wasn't happy at all. His leg was starting to wake up, after he injected another Stimpak into it. He looked around at the gathered crew, all watching Domingo speeding off as fast as a Pre-War tank minus turret could go. Which was about walking speed. Unlike a running soldier, it wouldn't get tired. Jackal scratched his head, looking at Strauss and Worth. Strauss had removed his helmet and was looking quite flushed fromthe fighting. Jacob was looking frustrated, bandages wrapped around his knee. There was no bone or connective tissue damage, but it still hurt like fuck, going by the look on his face.

User:Ramsey22:24, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron cursed. "What the fuck just happened?" he bluntly spat. He was pissed, but confused at the same time. They killed about two of the mysterious visitors, the last one slipped right out of their fingers. Drawing a cigarette from his pocket, Aaron began to smoke away. His left arm was bleeding from a far too large piece of glass that sliced him and he his left eye was beginning to blacken. Turning back to the group, the whole gang was gathered here. Stefanie was approaching them now. Maybe he was with the wrong group. He'd been with these guys one night and he was already nearly killed, but they were his only small link to Jay, where ever he may be.

Domingo stormed off with his tank, leaving the rest on foot. Aaron would follow his companions for now, but he had a bad feeling that something very bad was going to go down.

Radiation King // Why is everyone so worried about Domingo and his tank? It's not like he's leaving... And I'll take your question into consideration, Krush, but don't look forward to it. If anyone destroys El Oso, it'll probably be El Oso itself, going by the following material.

Domingo continued scanning the path ahead of him, watching the floodlights scan across the hard-packed dust futilelyin search of Karen's footprints. Even setting out, he knew he was fucked trying to find his stealthy escapee, but he might as well have given it a try.

Eventually, the pillar of black smoke that definitely wasn't exhaust from the engine forced Domingo to stop and go after the fire extinguisher stored in the former gunnnery compartment. Opening the engine grates from the exterior of the tanks with a pair of crucible tongs salvaged from the wreckage of Early Dawn Elementary School by the GNR plaza, Domingo gave the interior a healthy spraying out with the fire extinguisher and then spat on the old powerhouse for good measure before replacing the grates.

ANother half hour passed before El Oso and Domingo futilely crawled back to Rivet City, Domingo looking disheartened through the pilot's small viewport on the front. He stuck his head through the entry hatch, hauled his torso out and again flopped face-first onto the tarmac. Brushing himself off as he stood, he proceeded to angrily throw his tank captain's skullcap onto the ground and stomp on it, throwing a hail of curses loud and wild enough to bring Jericho to his knees in surrender, until his face glowed beet red and the helmet was thoroughly beaten to a pulp. Having calmed down enough to speak coherently, Domingo, now entirely sober by the adrenaline rush that had taken his system, shrugged at the assorted group.

"We've lost her," Domingo said in astonishment, half-admitting the fact to himself and half telling the group of his failure. "Just give me another hour to fix El Oso and her engine problems, and I'll find her this time."

//--Teh Krush23:11, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Riley read her mind earlier, thats how he knows her first name. Also, short post, I just wanted Riley to be outside with you people.

Riley ran outside to the bridge. "What happened? Did Karen escape??" he said.

Cerebral plague23:45, 30 April 2009 (UTC) 

"Riley, first of all, a Enclave woman that could shoot fire from her hands and had an Ice Gun just came through, killed a few people, and left with the Tank driver over their trying to chase after her. Of course with a vehicle that can move three miles per hour. I also have to buy a new poncho, and treat the second or third degree burns on me. Now, I have a question for you Riley. Who the fucking hell's Karen?"

//--Teh Krush23:48, 30 April 2009 (UTC)// Short postszorz.

"Karen.. she's that woman that just left!"

Cerebral plague00:06, 1 May 2009 (UTC)// Same Here

"Ah yes, I forgot that your a mind reading psychopath. Anyway, I'm going to go get drunk, then try to find some one that can fix a third degree burn in the morning." Jack then started walking to the entrance, and paused to look at the guard who's body was scorched.

Fireman0504

Sefanie smiled at Jacob as he nodded to her. She was happy he was finally warming up, at least a little to her. Normally he stared right past. Oh well. Domingo had thrown a temper tantrum, Aaron was confused, and Jack was irrate over his burned poncho and was headed back to the Rudder to get drunk again. Stefanie cocked her head to the side. Hadn't drunkenness left them vulnerable to their current situation ain the first place? Stefanie shrugged. Booze did sound like a good idea. Riley showed up and mentioned someone bamed "Karen." Jackal hobbled about, adding his oh-so colorful view on the situation. Simply that his leg was fuckin' hurt and he wanted a drink. In his own old-man, ghouly way, Stefanie had to admit Jackal was kind of a cutie. Speaking of cuties, the guy Stefanie left tied in the common room crossed her mind. She wondered if he was still there. She decided to go take a peek, then hit the Muddy Rudder, then, if security hadn't found him, likely with the huge cleanup, she'd play with him a little. First thing first though, Stefanie headed back in for some more booze.

Calonord09:52, 1 May 2009 (UTC) Cromartie will be back again!! 

Cromartie walked slowly and left the Rudder Bar….

Everyone gets some kind of feeling he will be back.

//--Teh Krush11:35, 1 May 2009 (UTC)// Sumbody post

Fireman0504

Stefanie sat back down at the bar in the Muddy Rudder. She looked around and watched the security forces milling around. They were cleaniing up bodies and getting things back in order. Belle Bonnie looked at Stefanie from across the bar. "I've seen some fights in my day." she said, "but I think that tops them all." Stefanie looked back at her. Jack had just walked in. "Ge that guy some vodka, and get me a shot of whiskey." Belle looked slightly annoyed, but she was constantly being a bitch to customers, so Stefanie did't really care about being a bitch to her. Most of the patrons had left, either to the infirmary or to be loked in in their own rooms, or they were killed in the fighting and were being dumped off the boat to become Mirelurk food. Stefanie downed her shot and ordered another. She was slightly disappointed that security had released her "prisoner" in the Common Room, but ah well. She ordered another shot of whiskey.

Domingo walked back into the Muddy Rudder and took a seat next to Stefanie. Although he was completely sober now, his face and hands were smothered in sticky grease and oil, and his face was half-obscured by a stolen Raider Arclite helmet, which he used as a welding mask. He ordered up a bottle of vodka and swivelled towards Stefanie on the barstool.

"Tank's broekn down," he admitted, "it'll take at least a week to fix before I can get to Megaton. Looks like I'll be stuck here for a while."

Run4urLife!21:26, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"What needs repairing? I was a machinist before the War. And I've got a degree in engineering. I'll take a look if you don't mind. That is when my leg wakes up." Jackal said as he sat down next to Domingo. He was eating what could only be described as the ultimate sandwich (in Post War terms anyway). It was Yao Guai meat, with a bit of Mirelurk claw meat stuffed between a pair of chargrilled Brahmin steaks. He commented on that bitch's trick with heating the floor had come in handy for cooking this stuff. People began to grimace as it dawned on them that he had used the superheated corridor floor as a frying pan.

Solbur21:35, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"And I used to be a mechanic in the Vault I crawled out of, so I could probably throw a spanner in the works, as it were." Strauss chimed in as he lowered himself into a seat. He'd said that in a rather low tone of voice, as he knew what sort of reception former Dwellers got in most settlements. He knew from his time living here that Rivet City was no exception and had learnt to keep his mouth shut pretty quickly after he first arrived there all those years ago. His thoughts drifted off to where the fellow Dwellers of 94 were now as his eyes followed some small Post-War flying insect as it circled a light dangling from the ceiling.

"Any way you can help would be great, guys." Domingo said, starting into his vodka. As he downed the first few gulps and placed the bottle on the table, he turned towards Jackal. "The bolts for the cooling fan stripped out on the way back, and the whole engine is at risk of exploding if we don't replace the fan and the bolts, or find a new and more effective cooling system. Any high octane fuel you would happen across would help as well."

Then he turned to Conor. "As for you, the cam shafts in the engine have become jammed with grease and they're operating at half of their original efficiency. A lot of the moving components fused in the engine's excess heat as well, so that could be a problem. See what you can do."

Domingo looked down at himself. "As for me, I'll go out and look for replacement bolts and scrap metal I could salvage to replace the treads, they're coming loose in a bad way and I'll need to repair them before they fall off. Along with the drive wheels, those are becoming damaged as well."

Fireman0504

Stefanie looked at Domingo. He was covered in grease, oil and sweat. He'd sobered up, but now looked like he could use a drink again. "It's not such a bad place to be stuck," Stefanie said. "We're safe from most threats. Though, anyone with some of them whirly birds is about the only thing that can get here. That and super secret stealth boys." Stefanie shrugged, before tossing some caps down for Domingos vodka. "You know what the others are gonna do? I was gonna sleep, then trade in the mornin', then head back to my little underground house over in Bailey. I actually got quite a bit of salvaged scrap stockpiled there. You lot are welcome to pop in and take what you want. No charge!" Stefanie winked and patted Domingo on the back.

"Guards say war's breakin' out all over the Capital Wasteland again though. Somethin' about a last Crusade or somethin'. Seein ' as it's almost mornin' I'm thinkin' I'll drink the rest of the night, trade, then try to get back to Bailey in the mornin' anyway. Hopefully, the war'll be not so spread yet tomorrow to where I can get in and hunker down. I've met them Crusaders before. They're tough sons of bitches, so I'm gonna try to avoid them. What chance does a professional bar fighter have against an entire army right? Eh, once everythin's settled down, I'm goin' back to Zanadu. Prolly to take up fightin' again, I'm ready for my wanderin' days to be over for a while." Stefanie didn't know if Domingo was even listening, but that's how she got when she had a few drinks in her, super talkative. Oh well. She popped in another Buffout as some more of the crowd began trickling through the door. She greeted them with a wave and a smile. Some looked mad, some indefferent, some in dire need of booze. "So what's the plan?" Stefanie called out as she, Domingo, and Jack turned around on their stools.

Run4urLife!21:53, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Ordinarily, I'd say let the Crusade and the Last Legion beat the snot out of each other, but we at least need to keep an eye on them in case Tenkage and his band of merry morons show up again and make things worse. Again. I reckon shadowing Roarke is out of the question, after the poncho wearing genius here took a shot at him. His soldiers would be on high alert for anyone after that." Jacob sighed, indicating Jack as he mentioned the poncho.

"I say we let em beat the shit outta each other, and then swoop in with more of your ninja friends and beat the life out of anyone that's still breathin." Jackal said. He flexed his fingers around the hilt of his machete. "I want Frederick Thomas dead by my hands. We have a history together. Let the rest of em pick each other apart I say. Then I'd like to settle down in Underworld after that."

Fireman0504

Stefanie cocked her head. "Who's Tenkage?" she said, puzzled. "and what morons will he show up with to ruin the day? Not that it hasn't already been ruined." she mumbled, opening a can of Pork N' Beans, then looking at Riley and Cat, to ensure her threat still stood, should Cat jump up. "I like Jackal's scavenging plan. We kill the dead and wounded, and we reap the spoils of war. You've seen their tech, we could be rich rich folks, or at least well-equipt folks. Not that you aren't Mr. V." she looked at Jacob, who she knew had dozens of hideouts scattered everywhere, with more weapons than you could shake a repellant stick at. "Where's the main fighting happenin?" she said, downing another shot of whiskey, "and are the yahoos who spoiled my beauty sleep gonna show up and gum up the works again?"

Domingo looked forward into the bar's display case as if looking straight through the hull of Rivet City, out to the horizon. "After I get El Oso fixed... I don't know. I'll probably keep wandering. Maybe I will head west again. Maybe I'll check things out to the north, or head down to Florida. I've heard there're promising trade posts down there." Domingo smiled at Jackal and Stefanie's qualmst about the Crusade.

"I was never fond of them myself. Then again, when you're a mercenary, you get paid by someone who hates someone else, anyways, so I figured I might as well not like them as well. They never really treated me special, but they never attacked me either. We never really got along though, so I guess I've been looking for an excuse to get up and shoot them at my earliest convenience." Mulling the thought of a head-on engagement with the Crusade over for a second, he turned back to Jackal: "You've got my support, friends. No matter what happens with the Crusade, I'll be following right behind you."

Considering his support of Jackal's scav team, he turned towards the flesh-rotten fighter and nodded. "Sounds like a good plan. If I can ever get El Oso fixed, then you can dump your stuff on me and get it where it's going. Fee waived, of course."

Solbur22:25, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss simply at there in silent contemplation after that. At first he was wondering how the hell he was going to help Dowhatsisface. He'd never worked on a vehicle before; let alone a tank; let alone something with a freakin' internal combustion engine. That sort of setup was dated at the time of the war. It baffled him how the strange tank driver had managed to get it into working order, let alone find fuel for it.

Then, as the conversation around him drifted to the future, he began to think about his own. When the hell where the Claws coming back? Directly after he joined the rest of them had sauntered off to Cali and had been gone for over a month. They'd probably gotten themselves killed on the journey there, he pessimistically speculated. What would he do until they were back? Fight the Good Fight? As if some divine force was waiting for the right moment, the radio across the bar from him which was formerly playing a GNR broadcast degraded into bursts of static. He groaned quietly, brushed a speck of mud from his helmet's visor and looked over to the others.

Piping up as the conversation fell on the Crusade, Strass broke his self-imposed silence. "I'm game for anything involving wiping those bigot bastards off the planet," he proclaimed.

//--Teh Krush22:30, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Tenkage.. Tenkage.. Bren Tenkage.." Riley said to himself, "He leads the Claws, which are a merc group, they are stationed in the ol' Super Duper Mart,". He then grabbed some whiskey and poured it into his mouth slowly, "Did somebody say that girl, Karen, could throw fire?" Everybody looked at him strangely, as nobody had said it, but somebody thought it.

User:Ramsey22:31, 1 May 2009 (UTC)// I'll be offline for a bit

Aaron waved away the barkeep as she offered him a beer. He was sober and would like to stay that way, for now at least. Aaron looked around, people had already gone back to their normal card games and conversations, acting like the whole fight never happened. Exhausted, Aaron rose from the rusty stool and walked up to Domingo, who was in conversation about the Crusade and such with some of the others, but he didn't hear much. Aaron nudged the man's shoulder, "Hey man, whenever you need to get some scrap metal, tell me. I'm dying to get some fresh air." He looked around for a second, thinking, "Until then, I'll be on the deck. Peace." With that, Aaron left to group. Whenever he had come to Rivet city, he always found the deck to be the most peaceful and quiet. At least recently, without the overwhelming Super Mutant threat.

Solbur22:39, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"What?" Strauss said, staring blankly at Riley. "How can you "throw" fire? That's physically impossible. Your hand would go straight through it and come out with some severe burns. She must have had some form of modified Flamer grafted into her combat suit, but she wasn't throwing shit, Rile."

Run4urLife!22:45, 1 May 2009 (UTC)// I can safely say it wasn't one of my people. Jacob, for the Psionic Null thing, and Jackal's too old and complex to be read. I blame Weston, simply because he is not here to defend himself. XD

Fireman0504

"Bren Tenkage huh?" Stefanie set her shot glass down and took another one. "Never heard of him or The Claws. Don't you mean Talon Company. I've heard of them. Found one of those bastards snoopin' around my lift. Needless to say I strung him up, from the girders. He was alive then, but I had no way of feeding him. Pretty sure he's dead now. I dunno. He was one of the guys you're talkin' about?" Riley shook his head slowly as Stefanie went back to eating her Pork N' Beans and took another shot of whiskey. Stefanie watched as Aaron left. Going up for air or something. She smirked. He seemed like a good kid. Too good for this part of the country. Stefanie then chuckled again because this thought made her seem like a jaded old woman, when she was in fact still an attractive young woman, though being a slave, wanderer, scavenger, and pit fighting champion she had a lot of life experience. Oh well. She went back to thinking about the Talons, er Claws, er whoever they were, and how the small group didn't need another faction showing up to screw things up.

//--Teh Krush23:06, 1 May 2009 (UTC)// Strauss has made Riley get a bit angry..

"Then how can I lift things without even touching them!?" he said, "Thats physically impossible.." he then lifted his whiskey to his mouth, without his hand. "Maybe she can make fire the same way I can lift my whiskey??"

Solbur23:10, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"You can do magic, though, remember?" Strauss pointed out, giving a lopsided grin to signify that he wasn't being serious. Riley did have a point, though. Not much made sense in the modern world. "But honestly. Where'd you get the idea she was "throwing" fire in the first place? It makes a lot more sense that she was using a weapon. Exerting force with your mind is one thing, but sparking flames out of nowhere is just crazy."

Run4urLife!23:19, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"It's quite simple, really." Jackal said, his inner engineering nerd bursting out. "It's oxygen saturation. All she needs is a concentrated solution of Hydrogen Peroxide, a pressurized can and some way to siphon off the oxygen at high pressure. Oxygen saturation causes spontaneous combustion in a lot of cases. One moron I worked with used an oxygen tank to blow dust off his suit. His sleeve caught fire when he walked out the door."

Jackal then realised that he was talking to a group of people, who, apparently other than Jacob, had no idea what he was saying. Of course, Jacob could be just as puzzled as anyone else, because reading him was like reading Mirelurk Language. Impossible, mainly because Mirelurks had no written language, but Jackal was not in the mood to think straight.

Solbur23:23, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Aaand of course, she must perform this complicated process naturally, right, Riley?" Strauss asked rhetorically, his tone dripping with sarcasm. He had no idea what the Ghoul gunslinger had just said, and was too tired and tipsy to really be paying attention to it anyway, so he was in a sort of nodding-along mood. "So she had Hydrogen Peroxide sprayers in the wrists of her sleeves or something. Hey, you never know."

Run4urLife!23:29, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"No, Conor, she had a container of Peroxide. If she just sprayed the Peroxide around, she'd just bleach our hair and give us alkaline burns. You need a valve to keep the oxygen flowing, but not the peroxide. That's what starts the fires. I'd show you what Oxygen saturation does, but these people are mighty protective of their oxygen cylinders." Jackal said.

Jackal then leaned on the bar. Everything had gotten a whole lot more complicated ever since his run-in with Tenkage. Bregrod, that boat, shit, he'd never told Jacob about the boat wreck in his safehouse! Anyway, there had been all that business with Thomas and shit. Jackal sighed. His brain was addled. He needed sleep. And a lot of it.

Fireman0504

"Peroxides and saturations and sleeves... why don't we just shoot the bitch in the face?" Stefanie commented whimsically. Her comparatively simple mind was working in overdrive and still not comprehending what these geniuses were talking about. Suddenly she felt really small again, almost lower than them. She reached across the bar and grabbed the hot plate, her hand recoiling at the very tingling of the burn, so fast that she didn't feel a thing. Least her reflexes were still good, even though she was drunk off her rocker. The group was still discussing the abilites of the mystery woman when Stefanie poured four shots and did them all simultaneously. She staggered to her feet, looking for something more to eat.

Run4urLife!23:44, 1 May 2009 (UTC) 

"That would have worked, if she hadn't tried to turn me into a drink cooler with that Ice Gun of hers." Jackal murmured. Stefanie was the kind of person they needed around to keep things in perspective. Only Jacob was as blunt, abrupt and practical as she was. The Wastelands would have been free of Frederick Thomas long ago if Jackal had forgone Ghoulifying him and just shot him dead. Jackal was almost ashamed at himself for that. He wouldn't make the same mistake this time. If he ever met Thomas again, he'd cut him open like a dog, and put a cartridge of buckshot in his head. Jackal also admired her ability to take multiple shots at once. All she had to do now was do that while dangling upside-down from a stair railing and she'd have mastered one of Jackal's own party tricks.

//--Teh Krush00:25, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Wonder why she'd have an Ice Gun and a Flamer anyway.." Riley said, as there really was no point, as the two counter eachother. "I need another drink," he said, and then ordered another whiskey.

Fireman0504

Stefanie walked over to the table where Brock, the Muddy Rudder bouncer was sitting, eating his YumYum Devilled eggs. Stefanie reached down and grabbed one. She ate it quickly and reached for another. Brock grabbed her arm. "Put it down and this goes no further," he said. "Let me have it and I won't humliate you in front of everyone here that you supposedly 'intimidate'," she snapped back. He tried to stand up but she pushed him back into his seat. Suddenly Jackal grabbed her arm. "Come on there firecracker," the ghoul said, "take another shot over with us." Stefanie grudgingly accepted the offer and walked back to where the group was, to a waiting shot of whiskey. She downed it and ordered another, along with some YumYum Devilled eggs of her own. Eating them, she listened as intently as she could to what they were discussing about moving against the Crusade, and dealing with the flame throwing lady, and fixing the tank. Stefanie's mind was too clouded to think straight, but she was getting kind of itchy. She needed some excitement. Maybe she'd challenge someone to a fight up on the deck. Eh, this wasn't that type of place. If she were in Zanadu again they could just go into a cage and do it. She needed a thrill. She popped a Buffout in her anxiety and took another shot of whiskey.

Run4urLife!11:37, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal leaned on the bar, counting his misfortunes. He was sitting in a dingy bar, with an ex-slave cage dancer, or was it cage fighter? He guessed the latter, after all the girl was handy with a power fist. He was in the presence of a Vault Engineer, a tank-driving arms dealer, an assassin, who had yet to name himself, and Jacob Vaughton, a certifiable card-carrying psychopathic mass-murderer was less than ten feet away. Knowing what he knew, Jackal was glad he wasn't a stranger, otherwise, he'd be shitting bricks, planks and bullets. At least his gear didn't need any major repairs. The fact that he was a Ghoul detracted from his happiness somewhat, but he hated wallowing in his own self-pity, so he pushed that thought away the second it came to him.

Jacob was back to leaning on the wall, watching everyone moving around or sitting still. Playing cards, drinking, arm wrestling, etc etc. All very calm compared to the chaos going on less than ten minutes ago. Again, Jacob was so still, he almost seemed to blend into the wall. He started cleaning and sharpening his knives, one by one. He spotted a small child trying to count the knives, and then give up after a while. Jacob didn't bother changing expression. That kid wasn't the first, or the oldest, to lose count of Jacob's knives as he pulled them out of his sleeves, boots, armor plates, and one out of each side of his collar. More than any one man could ever conceivably need. And in spite of that, Jacob knew he had killed at least two people with each and every one of the blades.


This is quite a bit behind the other posts, chronologically

Roarke took another swing at Thomas, his Field Ripperknocking his off balance again and again, as the officer sword struggled to hold up to the roaring chain of the blade. Then, in a surprising act of compassion, Roarke stepped away from Thomas. He handed his Field Ripper to a Last Chancer, and drew his own Officer Sword. The two of them lunged back at each other, blades ringing off each other as they moved with renewed vigour. In the early morning darkness, the blades struck sparks off each other, sending fat orange sparks flying through the air. He pulled Thomas off balance with a parry, and slammed his elbow into Thomas' face, cracking his head back and sending him staggering. Just as he was about to lunge forward and make a potentially lethal thrust, Thomas regined enough of his senses to land a kick that nearly floored Roarke.

So Freddy still had some fight left in him. Leaving him for dead without killing him was starting to look more and more difficult. At least there were soldiers on both sides inside the breack, with Last Legion veterans pushing the Airborne back. Years of experience in almost constant battle had brought the 7th Hell Zulu Company up to their level, and even in BRA, they were going toe-to-toe with the best the Crusade had to offer. Roarke was as proud of them now as he had ever been.

Domingo looked around the room before noticing what he needed. Somewhere down the bar, buzzing incessantly inside its metal casing, was a Pre-War desk fan, the kind that cheap people used on hot summer days to put a breeze right in their face and keep them cool. For now, though, Domingo had other ideas. Slipping off the barstool to his feet, Domingo casually walked over and snatched the desk fan right off the table. He was about halfway to the door of the rudder when Brock shouted, "Put the fan down, thief!"

Domingo, paying the moronic bouncer no heed, continued on his course through the door. He was about hatwo steps away when he suddenly felt the uncomfortable feeling of the cold steel muzzle of a gun being pressed to the back of his skull. Wasting no time with banter, Domingo kicked out with his left leg, catching Brock in the gut and spinning him around, where Domingo turned and planted a headbutt at the base of Brock's neck, flooring him hard. Domingo then retreated back to El Oso with his prize, a 200-year-old desk fan.

Boy did that sound rediculous.

KuHB1aM12:18, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// Srry I didn't post in awhile

"Serves you right, Roarke!" Thomas said, and twirled his sword once again, removing his helmet and wiping away the blood that formed behind from his nose. Rubbing it gently, he slammed into one of Roarke's bodyguards, slicing through his BRA armor and cutting the neckline material, blood speweing out in a controlled arc. However, before THomas could move to combat the next threat, he turned once again as Nate came to wield the ripper again, slamming it into Thomas' sword. The chainsaw created sparks as it once again competed for supremacy; Nate's brute power and skill versus Thomas' swordsmanship.

Run4urLife!13:06, 2 May 2009 (UTC)}// He passed his ripper on to another soldier, they're both using officer's swords now

Roarke swepte his sword up in an undercut swipe, then reversed his grip on the hilt and lunged it downwards at Thomas, nearly impaling him. He was really pressing the advantage now, and by the loooks of it, Thomas was starting to feel the pressure. Roarke grinned inside his helmet, but still didn't want to get cocky about it. Getting overconfident tended to lead to severe injury and death.

"See Freddy, this is why I was decorated as a Master Swordsman and you weren't." Roarke shouted as he disarmed Thomas, forcing him to dive to the side to recover his sword. Roarke then pressed the advatage yet again, striking at Thomas before he could rise. Thomas, now fightin on one knee, was in dire strait. Until Roarke turned to cut down one of Thomas' own Praetorian bodyguards. Roarke stepped away from Thomas, and kicked the Praetorian's dropped sword up into his free hand.

Roarke smiled as he whirled both blades in his grip. His T-51b's plates were all shaved down a little to allow greater agility and movement in close quarters. Thomas gulped at the sight of the two blades spinning at angles his armor would never allow. Roarke just advanced, striking from every possible angle, pushing Thomas back again and again.

//--Teh Krush20:05, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley was full of beer again, and fell unconscious waiting for somebody to carry him up to the Common Room again.

Solbur20:08, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Jeez. I'm dead and so's Riley by the looks of things. I'm heading up to the Common Room. Night, guys. Or morning, rather." Strauss gestured for Worthington to follow him before picking up Riley in his arms (again) and slinging the psychic over his shoulder. After a few minute's walking, he'd managed to get them both to the room, and, after dumping Riley onto a bed and paying no heed to another man tied to one with socks, started taking off his Power Armor and settled into another bed afterwards.

//--Teh Krush20:16, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// Stefanie tied 2 dudes to beds?? Lol. Also, my post is the next day.

Riley woke up in the Common Room, to the radio being turned on to the Enclave broadcast.. "Dude, shut that shit off," Riley said to whoever turned on the Enclave radio, "I said, turn that shit off." he said again, this time through telepathy, and the man shut it off and fell down, "He must've been drunk," Riley commented before getting up, and seen Stefanie playing with another man tied to a bed with socks.

Solbur20:23, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// No, to my knowledge she only tied one. The "another man" bit referred to Strauss acknowledging himself and Riley as men, and noticing yet another male individual who hapened to be tied to a bed with socks. But yeah.
//--Teh Krush20:24, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// I mean, in one of Firemans posts, the security untied Stefanies prisoner.. w.e.
Solbur20:43, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss was snoring loudly with one arm hanging off the side of his old naval cot. Cat wandered over and started licking his hand. Then the dog started sniffing around his bag on the floor for the scent of Pork 'n' Beans, but ran off when Worthington began to spool rounds into his minigun.

//--Teh Krush21:05, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// OH NO YOU DIDN'T!!!

Riley ran over to Worthington and deactivated him before any 5mm bullets could fly at his dog.

Solbur21:10, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// No, oh no YOU didn't!!!

Strauss woke up suddenly and rugby tackled Riley before he could deactivate his robot, but told Worthington not to shoot the dog.

--Cerebral plague21:11, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack had just woken up. It seemed that next door, a mini gun was starting up, but it was probably just his imagination. Getting up, he walked next door, and looked inside the room. "I'm going to go loot some Crusade shit, who want's to join me?"

//--Teh Krush21:13, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// I have a surprise planned for our looting.

"Me!" Riley said, after pushing Strauss off of him.

Run4urLife!21:19, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

"We're in." Jackal said behind him. Jacob was standing next to the Ghoul, nodding in agreement. He flexed his hands. They all needed to get out of here. Jacob had just come down from the roof, or deck, he wasn't sure which to call it. Talking to Aaron Ramsey, who had just arrived (not leaving the Ramseys behind, can do the conversation in flashback) behind them. Jacob flexed his hands again, watching the others for their reactions.

//--Teh Krush21:25, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// This post takes place two hours later, just add your character in at any time.

Riley was shooting some raiders, as was just about everybody else, they were all following Cerebral since he had said something about Crusade loot around here. Then, suddenly, they heard something they hadn't heard for a while.. Super Mutants. But, these ones were big, they had Gatling Lasers and some sort of Laser Shotty. Shit, Riley thought.

Solbur21:40, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

"What the hell?" Strauss asked, his confused tone shining through despite the mechanical edge his helmet gave his voice. He was truly baffled. They looked as though they were halfway through becoming Behemoths, having similar faces and the same sort of hunch, but not being as big. Before he could say anything, he saw the Gatling Laser fire up. "HOLY FUCK! Get down!" He yelled as he dived into cover, pulling out his Laser Rifle.

Radiation King // Just saw X-Men Origins, that was a great damn movie. Also, this ha snothing to do with the following.

Domingo rolled El Oso up and over the low rise behind the super mutants, coaxing the newly repaired (and upgraded!) tank along at a steady 20 miles per hour. He eventually rammed right into one of the first mutants, knocking it flat on its head and rolling on over.

Run4urLife!22:47, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob vaulted over the side of El Oso and booted a Super Mutant in the chest. One of the big ones. Unfortunately, it just tanked through the blow and sent him sprawling. Then, he landed a good half-dozen punches before it could blink. It blinked, and that was about it, until Jacob landed lucky number seven, hearing the glorious crack of bone. Then it responded with it's own boxing technique, launching Jacob backwards, and bringing its Gatling Laser to bear again.

Jacob rolled away, swearing as he went. He pulled out Mother's Woe and fired a three shot burst into the Mutant's chest. It burst apart in a glare of blood, guts and igniting incendiary material. At least Jacob's HEIAP ammunition worked on these shits.

Solbur22:53, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

"The cavalry has arrived!" Strauss cheered as El Oso rolled up with Jacob in tow. Those modifications he and Jackal had done to the tank earlier in the morning were coming in handy (yes they did shut up kk thanks), as was the Super-Ninja who was now laying into the mutants. Slinging his rifle and picking up Impact, he charged at one that was focused on Jacob and swung the hammer heavily into its back. An audible boom resonated throughout the area, and the Super Mutant yelled something about its back hurting incoherently while looking around confusedly. Strauss was surprised he hadn't shattered its spine in one hit - no, that's your inflated ego talking, Conor - but it didn't really matter, as Jacob proceeded to shoot it in the face with that explosive ammunition of his, spattering Strauss in smouldering brains and flesh.

//--Teh Krush22:55, 2 May 2009 (UTC)// This is the reason I wanted the Overlords here. Short post.

Riley picked up one of the dead "Mini-Behemoths" Laser Shottys.

Solbur22:58, 2 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss did the exact same thing, tossing it over to Worthington who caught it in his manipulators and deposited it in his storage compartment. He'd have to dismantle it later and see whether there was any improvements to the basic AER9 it had that he could transplant over to his own rifle. The fact that it seemed to have two separate Microfusion Cells looked mighty interesting.

Radiation King // Good idea. One had a laser chaingun, correct?

Domingo climbed out of the top hatch of El Oso and looked at the untouched third Super Mutant, the one he had plowed over with the tank's new front-end ram (really a snowplow reinforced with steel and studded with rusty iron spikes). Looking at the gun port next to the pilot's seat, where a coaxial .50-caliber machine gun would usually be attached, Dom called out to Jackal.

"Jackal!" Domingo shouted. "See if you can find the wrench in the tool kit on the top of the tank, I'm going to mount this laser chaingun inside and we're going to need to remove the gun cap to fit it." After all, with El Oso and its new top speed of 35 miles per hour, its front-end ram and 25-ton girth, who would mess with the tank after it had a fucking laser chaingun bolted to the front?

Run4urLife!00:13, 3 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal muttered incoherently about having a Masters Degree and having to do a simpleton's grunt work as he went about his job mirthlessly. Fuckin humans. No respect for Ghouls. Jakcl was 230 years old, for Gods sake. So this guy had no respect for his elders either! Jackal calmed down and began to take a little bit of joy from the manual work of loosening bolts and readying the welding plant in the crew compartment. He was also sporting a dashing new aviator's cap, complete with chinstraps hanging out of the sides (Like the ones Super Mutant Masters wear), and the idea of looking like a zombie pilot amused him no end.

Domingo looked at the entry to the crew compartment, holding the square backpack to the laser chaingun and pondering how he was going to get it through the round hole in the top of the tank. At a mental impasse, Domingo spent a few minutes pondering how the pack was going to fit through before he eventually decided to just lower it through the patched hole where the cannon had originally been machined off. He carefully retracted the locked-on patches of ramshackel iron armor, slinked through, carrying the chaingun and the pack, and crawled forward to the pilot's compartment where Jackal had already arrived with the welding apparatus.

"Thank you Jackal," Domingo said, "Now can you help me figure out how to boost the power on this gun?"

Fireman0504

Stefanie crouched behind the tank. She was lacking in any sort of ranged weaponry capable of dealing with these new breeds of Super Mutant. She felt pretty useless at the moment. She also felt pretty hung over. Two hours of sleep in the Common Room didn't do it. Stefanie popped in a Buffout as she spied an Overlord carrying a gatling laser in from the side. She jumped up over a pile of rubble bringing her Power Fist down and smashing the weapon. She ducked under a backhand swing from the mutie and punched it's knee. No give. She rolled to the side to avoid a hammer blow that smashed the ground and punched the mutie in the lumbar. She punched twice, dropping the mutant to a knee before avoiding another backhand blow. She ran up the kneeling mutie's back, her metal spiked boots digging into it's skin while giving her traction on it's back. She slammed her Power Fist into the back of it's head and neck repeatedly until it finally collapsed onto it's face. She smashed and smashed, punching and stomping the back of it's head until it stopped thrashing beneath her. With it's head a smashed gooey mess on the ground, she looked up, receiving a nod from Jacob Vaughton. She smiled as they moved on. She still wondered where they were going.

User:Ramsey02:38, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// These Super Mutants are the new ones from Broken Steel, correct?

"What the hell were those things? They looked like Super Mutants," Aaron paused for a moment, "But much, much bigger." He reloaded his assault rifle, putting in his last magazine. He knew that he should've bought more ammo at Rivet city, but he was a bit low on caps at the time, and still is. The exhausted wastelander rose from behind his cover, walking over to Domingo's tank. Jackal and him were busy configuring with a new menacing addition to the vehicle. He approached Stefanie, who was looking more and more out of it by the second. "You alright? You look like death... no offense." He would wait for her response to offer medical help. Over his life in Austin, Aaron had acquired quite the talent in medical expertise. He gritted his teeth as he thought of his time as a Union field medic, all of the wounded, the dead. To this day, he still has not seen anything, or anybody, as savage as the Southern Enclave. He vividly remembers one battle when they raided an "experimental hospital". The horrors seen there, they haunted his every dream. He had tried to save a small girl, most likely around 8 or 9, whom had been severely mutated and engineered on. It seemed that she was in the miste of being turned into another horrible creation. Her eyes, her beautiful eyes, had been cut open in the matter that her eyelids and the skin around the eyes had been removed. She had stitches keeping them from closing, along with around her mouth. When he did come to her rescue, he already knew the outcome. There was no hope for her, she was going to die. But her eyes, those beautiful eyes, looked at Aaron with such grace, such hope that she was going to live. Aaron couldn't bear to remember much more than that, only that the little girl had died.

Aaron seemed to trail off in thought, not listening to his companions. He turned back to Stefanie, not sure if she had said something at all. "Say what now? I-I wasn't paying attention."

Fireman0504

Stefanie wretched and threw up. She shouldn't get drunk twice in one night. Aaron was standing there, but her kind of wasn't pying attention. She staggered over behind the tank and wretched again. She really wasn't feeling right. Hopefully there wouldn't be too many more encounters with these Overlord Super Mutants "She walked back over to Aaron, who was staring at the ground. "Ramsey, AARON!," she said, snapping her fingers. He snapped up. "You got somethin' for nausea?" she said. He shook his head. Stefanie started walking over to find Strauss. There was no telling what Worthington was carrying. Hopefully he had something. Maybe she could convince Jacob to swing through Bailey so she could get Jeeves and some of her supplies. She needed somehing as she popped a Buffout to steady herself. She stretched her arms up and flexed her muscles, trying to feel better.

Run4urLife!18:21, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

Meanwhile, Jacob was sitting up on the back of El Oso, surveying the carnage, a group of Super Mutants that were Behemoths in the making, on a par with Deathclaws in terms of sheer power, but with heavy weapons. Jacob sighed. By killing off the weaker mutants, the Crusade had, in fact, strengthened them as a whole, leaving only the strongest, craziest and most cunning alive. Maybe the Last Legion would do a better job of killing off these overgrown rodents.

Jackal sat looking at the pack that came with the Gatling Laser. There had to be some way to keep that in place so it didn't bounce across the crew compartment and kill someone. He motioned to Jacob to gie him a hand with it. After running through the instructions quickly, Jackal picked up the arc welder and pulled on his arclight helmet. After a few moments of tack welding, he took to welding the frame surrounding the backpack to the bodywork of El Oso properly. That should simplify things a little.

Vegas adict18:27, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// Here we go again

Alexis Ashton bashed his way through the dirt and stoped as he saw a tank travling along.he then turned to see more mutants chasing after him.Ah crap he thought he started running towards the tank "HELP ME im out of ammo and being chased by mutants!"

--Cerebral plague18:56, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack got up and started running at the man. It seemed he looked relieved for a second, before being clotheslined by Jack to the ground. Jack, then using the last of his grenade launcher ammo, fired at the several super mutants running after Alex. Taking out his Chinese Assualt rifle, he fired into the mutants who had survived the blast, killing them quickly. "That's for the Enclave Base, jack ass."

Vegas adict19:29, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis pulled himself up "jack you idiot im not the one who knew what was going to happen" he dusted himself off and searched the mutants he grabbed some ammo for his .44 and turned back to jack. "so can i tag along with you?"

Radiation King // Alexis is a girl's name! LOLOLOLOL!

Domingo looked over at Jackal expertly weld the pack's frame into the wall of El Oso and replace the components. Domingo did the honors of plugging in the last few wires before sliding into the pilot's seat and looking at the controls, starting the tank up with the various mechanical methods required (I don't know how to start a tank, okay D':) and turning it away from the assorted members of the group. He zoned in on a lumbering Super Mutant, well inside the range of the Laser Chaingun.

"Target ahead, bearting two-five-zero, liningg you up for a shot. Go ahead and fire the chaingun when ready, Jackal." Domingo said, still adjusting the tank as the Overlord finally caught the scent of burning fossil fuel and turned in the general direction of the formidable new tank.

Vegas adict19:50, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// and a boys name

"sweet jesus that thing is working"

Solbur20:00, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss flipped down his helmet's eyescope and lifted his Laser Rifle, pressing the stock firmly against the shoulder of his armour as he took aim on the spot of flesh between an unsuspecting Frankenstein's eyes. He continued to move alongside Domingo's tank at quite a pace, the braces in his Power Armor's arms allowing him to maintain his aim despite pretty much running. While one of the Super Mutants came to focus on the tank, yelling something about it and drawing his target's attention away, he fired. It screamed and clutched its face, shouting something about "EYE HURT!". What the fuck are these things eating for breakfast? Titanium? Regardless, he followed up with two successive shots that brought it down as the barrels of the tank's new Gatling Laser began to rotate.

Vegas adict20:11, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis ran alongside the tank taking pot-shots with his .44 magnum the servo-motors in his wrist piece acounting for the backlash one of the bullets hit the mutie in the chest.He caught up with strauss "nice to see you again strauss reminisant of the first time we met isn't this"

Solbur20:15, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Alex! Seven fucking years, man!" Strauss laughed as his old acquaintance greeted him, lowering his rifle momentarily to slap Alex on the back lightly. He smiled to himself underneath his helmet as he recalled the times when he was first adapting to the Wasteland. His smile was wiped away when he recalled the incident with the Enclave. "I'll talk to you later, man. In the meanwhile, there's Uglies to toast!" He said as he peppered one of the Mutants Alex had shot (but not killed) with laserfire, sending its hulking carcass crashing to the floor.

Run4urLife!20:24, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob fired his M72 at the next Mutant to show it's ugly face. Sadly, it was a standard Super Mutant Master. Nonetheless, Jacob felt that indescribable pang of satisfaction as it's head disintegrated. The next shot he cracked off caught an Overlord, tearing a large chunk out of the muscle on the sides of it's neck. And it was still alive, somehow. Jacob grimaced as he fired a second shot, the 2mm bullet punching through the Mutant's head and igniting on the inside, blowing out the back of it's skull. So a hypervelocity HEIAP bullet still did the job. Jacob leaned back on the top of El Oso and took more pot-shots at the Super Mutants, killing some in two or three shots, some in four. And a few in five. These things were fucking tough. Well, actually, he only killed one for each different number of shots, but he was so used to killing Super Mutants in one that it felt like a lot more.

Vegas adict20:31, 4 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis grinned at strauss "Lets go mutie killing!" he shot at one of the muties with his .44 the servos in his wrist reducing the backlash.He jumped on top of the tank and fidled with the obselete stubber."ah-hah" he sprayed another of the muties with bullets

//--Teh Krush20:56, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// Riley needs a rest, I'm getting in the tank wif u!

Riley climbed onto the tank.

--Cerebral plague21:08, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// That's a pretty small tank

"I believe the point where the Crusade fought their splinter group or something, I'm not really sure, is up ahead. I'm going to go scout out, and come back in a few minutes to see if there all done blowing each others brains out. Lastly, how the fuck can you guys fit so many people in such a small tank?"

//--Teh Krush21:10, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// My dude is sitting on it. He needs to concentrate if he wants to throw boulders at people!
Run4urLife!21:24, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// CP, I assume you mean that skirmish near the Potomac, because the battle at Gilead is still going on. If we're near that business at the Potomac, or Wheaton Armory, our characters can now hear the artillery firing at Gliead's walls. If we're walking into Gilead, then we're in serious trouble
--Cerebral plague21:29, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// I had assumed that a fight in which the Last Legion had breached the walls yesterday had already ended. Well, were going to the Potomac then
Run4urLife!22:07, 4 May 2009 (UTC)// Gilead's a fortified military base/settlement thing, presumably quite large with several buildings for Loyalists to hold out in. It could take a week to clear it without levelling the buildings


Act 3[]

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 00:18, 5 May 2009 (UTC) (I'm....back)

Weston, now being sober and having a headache, moved along the D.C Ruins. Someone was kind enough to leave a note that they left Rivet City in search of loot. What they forgot to mention, however, was that it was Crusade loot. Following some rather obvouis tank-tread paths, he soon found the group's postion. Of course, he had to sprint in order to catch up with them, before hopping aboard the tank.


"Hey fellas, where we going?

Solbur00:28, 5 May 2009 (UTC)// Where you been Weston?

"Well, look what the metaphorical cat dragged in. We're headin' some place up north, north-west I think, along the Potomac. Gonna go hunt us some Crusaders, scav some gear and technology, all that jazz." Strauss responded, moving alongside the tank (which was now going at walking pace) casually. There was nowhere near enough room for another person on the tank, let alone somebody in Power Armor, so Strauss was the one who had to walk. God damn logic.

//--TehK00:30, 5 May 2009 (UTC) 

"If you were a bit smaller I'd have Cat lift you,"

--Cerebral plague01:10, 5 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack was looking through his Sniper Scope. It seemed that the whole place was a battle ground, most of the dead were in BRA's(Snicker), although on a count it turned out that those with power armor outnumber the dead men wearing BRAs (Snicker once more) slightly. He got up, and started to head back to the group.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 01:16, 5 May 2009 (UTC) (Aww, g2g to agian. My renwned activy here has been renswed!)

User:Ramsey01:44, 5 May 2009 (UTC)// Guess I'll just have to walk...........

Aaron looked at the tank, filled to it's limit with people. It is true that he wanted the rest it offered, but he was doomed to walking with tired legs. Jack had taken point and was scouting out the area, looking for the Crusade. Aaron wasn't sure about engaging the Crusade, especially not when they are at war. His companions held the claim that they were only going to scavenge, but Aaron knew better. These guys obviously had some sort of previous feud with the extremist faction, the type of thing that could only spell trouble for Aaron, who was, as of now, neutral to the Crusade. He had seen the effects of being on their KOS list and it's not pretty. They would send people after you in your sleep, murdering you while you dream. That was something Aaron defiantly wanted to avoid, he has had enough of that in Austin.

He looked over to Stefanie, who was busy hurling the remains of her last dinner. Sighing, he slowed down and waited for her to catch up. "Here, take some of this," Aaron pulled out a bottle of Kaopectate and placed it in her hands, "It'll lessen the nausea, but it's been known to be quite addictive, so..." Aaron really didn't know how to put this considering it was a junkie he was talking to, "Just be careful with the amounts. I know about your addiction already, I could see it in your eyes."

Firman0504

Stefanie took the bottle and chuckled. "In my eyes huh? I'd've figured you could see it with all the Buffout I take?" She gave him a friendly slap on the back before taking a dose of Kaopectate. "Picked up some baggage in Zanadu. Got this habit, got my past, who knows what else I got. Only fortunate thing is all this damn radiation kills most disease that comes along. Only time I ever felt like I was doing somethin' good was cage fightin'. Then I'm only doin' what's good for me. I've crippled people, killed people. To make a living. Thats the cold facts out here though. Everyone does it." Aaron was looking at her woefully. He had to be thinking of what a bleak outlook she had. Stefanie looked over to where the group was filling another Super Mutant with holes. "If you look at it close, we're all the same. It's how we carry ourselves between all the drug addiction, the fighting, the killing, the buyin' and sellin' of humans. I can stand here and have this conversation with you now, because outside the cage, I understand. I understand notions of 'peace' and the value of human life. I understand that Jackal in there is just as good as Strauss over there. That being a ghoul makes him no less human. That's the difference." Stefanie was starting to feel better. "Ignorance precipitates violence out here. That's the way it is now." Stefanie turned to Aaron and gave the bottle back. "Who are you looking for? Jacob said something about 'Outcasts.' If that's the case, I have something that may help you."

--Calonord13:30, 5 May 2009 (UTC)// Whats happening in the RP, where is everyone at
Vegas adict19:39, 5 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis sat on top of the tank squezed between Alex(Rily but alexis knows him as alex) and a harsh looking man(Jacob) looking down at the walkers."if you want il swap with you Conner"

Radiation King // So let me get this straight... You all expect to be able to fit on top of a Pre-War Sherman tank, without sitting on the heating grates... When there's a trailer literally permanently attached to the back...

"Si, where are we going?" Domingo popped his head through the driver's hatch to see a crowd of people had gathered on top of a tank normally capable of seating four people...

"And you all realize there's a trailer directly behind you... Right?"

Vegas adict19:49, 5 May 2009 (UTC)// AH

Alexis looked behind him to see the trailer "ahh il ride in there.Conner get up"


--Cerebral plague19:53, 5 May 2009 (UTC)// Yes, it seemed that

Jack came back, and noticed the amount of people on a tank. He soon forgot about that, and started to tell people about the loot there. It seemed that Stefanie was drooling for a second, before coming back to her senses. They then headed off, with the tank slightly less loaded with people.

Run4urLife!21:02, 5 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob crouched and picked up an SCM Officer Sword from the edge of the battleground. The place was a graveyard. There were some fresh graves dotted around, presumably those of the Last Legion Soldiers, while the Airborne Loyalists had been left to the crows and the Feral Ghouls, which Jacob scattered by firing a P90 M-Heavy in the air, and then into any of the Ferals that didn't scatter. He scratched his chin as he looked around the battlefield. It looked like the trenches had after Fairfax. He shuddered. This was only a skirmish.

"Happy Christmas." Jacob called to Stefanie as he tossed another SCM Sword to her, and then another to Ramsey. He was strategically ignoring the newcomer. Mostly because Jack, who was essentially Little Jacob, was pissed with him for some reason. Jackal picked up his own SCM Sword, one of those fancy-ass Praetorian models, with the ivory-style handle and the double-tempered blade. Seeing that there were superior varieties dotted around, Jacob not-so-subtly tossed the sword he had picked up first and went searching for a Praetorian sword.


--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 22:15, 5 May 2009 (UTC)

Weston was sitting atop the Sherman tank, Assualt rifle slung over his back. In his hand was a Nuka-Cola. His robot took one too many bullets during the route to Rivet City, after running into some Raiders. Looking around him, he noticed that Jacob was walking around a small battlefield, as was Jackal. In fact, the whole scence struck him as odd. Once, he manged to get a outdoor movie theater going. The movie that was problay the last one the people watching saw was a movie based on World War 2. There was a scene where the soldiers were riding atop a tank alike this one. Expect, they were laughing, talking. They also were'nt moving through a Wasteland. Finshing off the Nuka-Cola, he threw it off the tank watching it smash agiasnt a runied wall. Checking his ammo, he had at least 10 clips, not inceluding the one already chambred. When that ran out, he could switch over to his SMG, which was plenty of ammo. When all of those ran out, well, he had his friends to cover his back.

"Hey, whats Christmas?"

--Cerebral plague22:19, 5 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack heard Weston say something, he wasn't sure. "What Weston?" Weston took a moment to reply, "What's Christmas?" He seemed curious about it, and Jack suddenly remembered what it was. "I read a book once, long time ago. A picture book, for children I believe. Anyway, Christmas is a holiday celebrated by a group of people, some sort of religion. It has to do with their Messiah being born, and a fat guy in a red suit. Sounds silly, no?"

Domingo plucked Jacob's sword out of the air as he combed the remains of the battlefield for anything worth the trouble of searching. He withdrew a small foil package from one of the pockets of his leather jacket and unwrapped it, revealing a perfectly preserved granola bar. He bit down into it as, with his free hand, he tied the SCM Sword to his belt. If Jacob wasn't going to settle for inferior technology, Domingo would content himself with whatever he could salvage. This meant more pay for him, when the goods made it to Megaton, anyways. Hell, those people hadn't even managed to get to the fresh water yet. They would pay top dollar for any guns they could get, considering all they had for a guard was a man who stands on a fucking bridge above the entrance all day.

By the end of the search, Domingo had dragged five Laser Rifles, eight Laser Pistols, three SCM Officer Swords, two intact suits of T-45 Power Armor, one suit of Combat armor and enough bullets to keep the Megaton residents going for a week, all of which was currently being stowed in the back of the trailer, sorted away neatly in field-procured Enclave supply crates. Satisfied with his work, Domingo leaned against the trailer and clenched a cigar inbetween his jaws. Clipping the tinfoil-covered end off, Domingo carefully struck a match and felt the smoke cover his lungs.

When he heard Foster talk from on top of the tank, Domingo looked over to the man and pulled the cigar out from betwen his teeth. "Christmas," He attempted to explain, "was an old religious holiday based on the burning of Jesus Christ by Arab soldiers after he began preaching Taoism to the people of Iran. We used to celebrate it by passing around fancifully wrapped, expensive gifts and eating massive feasts at dinnertime."

He smiled a bit. "Don't you see why we don't celebrate it anymore? It's wildly impractical."

Fireman0504

Stefanie examined the sword, swinging slowly in wide arcs. Swords were never her thing. Fortunately, this was more of a large machete than a sword, though by the looks of it, it was made more for thrusting than slicing. It was still much better quality than most of her stuff. She slung the sheath across her back and slid the sword in it. Stefanie looked down at a dead Crusader wearing a Power Fist. More her style. She placed her foot on the dead man's arm and pulled, removing the Power Fist from his stiff grip. She threw it onto her pile of things. Hopefully someone would help her move her keep into the trailer so she could get it safely back to her bunker. If she had Jeeves here he'd be happy to carry it. She was making out fairly nicely. She did leave the Power Armor to the others. Despite making a profit from slavers in Zanadu, there was no way she'd be selling those egotistical morons Power Armor. She half listened as the others dicussed some long-forgotten holiday. Eh, she reached down and picked up a Combat Helmet. She ran her eyes over it briefly before tossing it on her pile. She really needed some help stowing this stuff.

User:Ramsey02:51, 6 May 2009 (UTC)// Run, did you say Jack was mad at Aaron? And Domingo, your guy reminds me of the Post-Nuke comic. :]

Aaron propped himself against a crate of ammunition, 5.56 he believed. Domingo sure was carrying some precious cargo, it'd be no surprise if some greedy raiders were tracing them right now. The rest were in some conversation about religion, Christmas to be exact. He had read about it, not interested. Buddhism though, he'd always curious of it ever since visiting the Tibetan Temple in South Austin. Unlike Jay, Aaron was not very faithful. He had thought about it at times, but ultimately ignored religions. Maybe once he was older. Right now, he was more interested in what Stefanie was talking about. She was busy swinging her new sword around. Aaron disliked the things, reminded him too much of the Biosoldiers in Austin. He continued with their earlier conversation, "Stefanie, I know what you mean by human values. I've killed. I've killed men, women, and children even. I'm not proud of it, but I do it out of survival. I've never been to Zanadu, but where I was born, this place seems like a fucking paradise. But growing up in the damnedest pit of hell and then comin' here, it just kinda stuns you to the point that you just don't want to kill out of pure jealousy. Why is it fair that these people can live peacefully here while I'm always terrified, fighting and starving, knowing that any second you could be decapitated or captured?" Aaron scuffed, shook his head, and pulled out a cigarette. The smoke he inhaled in the tobacco calmed him, "Heh, guess I'd be a hypocrite if I called you an addict, eh?"

Aaron pulled the cigarette from his mouth, blowing out little rings of smoke, a trick he learned from a certain Miles Parker. "So, you said something about the Outcasts? You see, I came here in search of my older brother, Jay Ramsey. 11 years ago he left Austin with a band of Brotherhood of Steel guys headed east. I won't go over the details now, but the point is that I want to know if he still lives. In Austin, we already declared him dead, but that's not something I can so easily accept." Aaron exhaled, he'd been tired of saying that same paragraph, "Please, just tell me what you know."

Fireman0504

Stefanie sighed. "Your brother was cast out of the Brotherhood of Steel. He is among those brothers known as Outcasts. I've taken up residence in whatis apparently an abandoned outpost of theirs. My Mr. Handy Jeeves uncovered records of their departure to the West Coast. Your brother's name is Jay, correct? If so, his name was among the survivor's list following the battle in the city of Fairfax to the west of D.C. If he 's still alive, I think he went with them back west. Accordin' to records left at the bunker that is." Stefanie flexed her fingers with her Power Fist. "That's what I know. Sorry if it's not enough. Jacob knew the Outcasts well. You should talk to him." Stefanie gazed over to where Vaughton was picking through loot. Stefanie turned back to all the other loot scattered everywhere and went back to picking through it as she popped another Buffout.

Run4urLife!06:04, 6 May 2009 (UTC)// Nah, Jack was PO'd at Alexis, so Jacob's ignoring him coz "Little Jacob" is annoyed at him. Also, it's not the nicotine kick from smoking that calms you (That actually has the opposite effect), it's the deep breathing you do when you smoke. O_o
User:Ramsey12:51, 6 May 2009 (UTC)// Oh okay. And dammit Run, you and your smoking facts....
Vegas adict17:24, 6 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis looked through the pile of dead plenty of power armor and a load of fancy ass swords he picked up some more ammo and scrap for his armor.

//--TehK19:50, 6 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley finally woke up, and found that he was in the trailer suddenly. Strange. And Cat was missing! "Where the fuck is my dog!!" Riley yelled, and found that Cat was biting at Stefanies power-fist. "Better not go off on him." Riley told her, laughing.

//--TehK20:31, 6 May 2009 (UTC)// Damn you, ok, removing convo and editing post!
Run4urLife!20:30, 6 May 2009 (UTC)// Hah, Teh Krush. Fail.

Fireman0504

Stefanie circled slowly around Cat in a fighting stance. She'd fought animals in the pits as well as people. The slavers called it a "creature feature." She looked up as Riley shouted to her. "I'm gonna sock your dog right in the suck hole!" she said to Riley, "he's after my Pork N' Beans again!" Cat growled lightly at Stefanie who looked back at him. "Cat come!" she heard Riley shout. Cat backed up and happily trotted to Riley. "You lucky pooch!" Stefanie said. They had managed to get her share of the loot loaded into the trailer, but now they were making a stop for a little break. She hoped Domingo's contraption would hold up enough to get her stuff to her bunker, or "safe spot," as she called it. She still didn't know how she was gonna get everything back to Zanadu. That was a matter for another day. She popped in a Buffout and plopped down on the ground. She needed to take a load off. Most of the others had ridden on the tank, but she was too slow. To the south, a heard of Brahmin passed by. Wonder if it'd be easy to ride one of those? she thought to herself, chuckling.

--Cerebral plague20:47, 6 May 2009 (UTC)// Yes, he seem's to be failing more frequently lately

Jack was dragging dead bodies over to the Trailer. He would half to strip the armor off them later, then let the raiders take care of them. Well, not the raiders, as Jack was against Necrophilia. Deciding that he would either make a large pit, probably from a mini nuke, or just burn the bodies after they died. It seemed that the Crusaders had already moved on, leaving most of their dead behind.

Solbur20:49, 6 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss sifted through the pile of corpses and abandoned munitions. His first priority was .357 ammunition for his Desert Eagle, which he found in copious abundance. In the process, he recovered several grenades of various kinds and a few nifty-looking swords. He balanced one in his hand momentarily, pondering its applications, before putting it away. He deposited the majority of his loot in Worthington's storage compartment, which was rather packed, and dusted his hands off. Finally, he removed one of the fallen Crusader's gasmasks and peered at it. Wonder what those glowing goggles are powered by.

After that, he began to help Jack load the bodies into the trailer.

//--TehK20:53, 6 May 2009 (UTC)// Hmm, time to introduce a lost friend.. yes, these are in the CW, just not as much as in Austin.

A crowd of Sweepers were storming through D.C., they had managed to escape the Enclave before they could be brainwashed. They smelt humans, and they saw tracks, and began to follow the tracks. (They are not near the tank yet)

Run4urLife!21:02, 6 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal sat in the trailer of the tank. What was Domingo doing with four oxygen cylinders here. Then, a thought struck Jackal. He knew how to make a thermal lance. And now he had the materials. He detached the barrel from a DKS Sniper Rifle, and began to stuff it full of iron filings. He then welded a small metal shield to one end and hooked the Oxygen tanks to that end. He had to jury-rig the splitter, but if he only used one tank, the valve would freeze and the lance would be useless, so it was worth the risk.

"Hey, Domingo, I think I just found a way for you to cut a hole in El Oso to make that escape hatch." Jackal shouted. Domingo looked at him, a strange look in his eyes. Apparently, he had been joking when he talked about cutting a hole in the side of his beloved jalopy.

"Well, that's ten minutes of my life I'm never getting back." Jackal sighed. He had set the pressure on the tanks and got the small torch, the hand-held acetalyne torch ready for setting it up and all.

(There is a point to this. A thermal lance can cut clean through steel, concrete, stone, and Sweepers)

Radiation King // Oh Run4, you devious bastard.

Domingo sighed as he looked at Jackal. "Just put it up on top of the tank, set it directly behind the plow. Maybe we'll find a use for it."

Domingo couldn't hear the Sweepers closing on the tank, and he also couldn't see them due to limited (read as: almost nothing) visibility from the pilot's slot. The tank pilot did, however, see some lights in the distance. Slowing the tank to a stop, Domingo poked his head through the pilot's hatch and looked towards the group assembled on the ground. "Stefanie!" Domingo shouted from his post. "Is that your fortress, up ahead in the rubble?"

Fireman0504 Be aware: Stefanie has all sorts of scavenged gadgets and gizmos down there. Nothing outrageously rare or powerful, but possibly useful. She is one to pick up all the "shiny things." Haha.

Stefanie climbed up on the tank to get a better look. "Does it look like a whole in the ground?" She noticed the obvious shape of a crane rising up above some girders. The cable extended down to her lift. It was indeed her "fortress." Stefanie chuckled. It had never been called a fortress before. Her Safe Spot was deep below and she smiled, knowing how happy Jeeves would be to see her. She wondered if he'd prepared supper for just her or for her company too.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 23:49, 6 May 2009 (UTC)

"I hope theres food.."

Weston got off the tank and slung his Assualt rifle over his shoulder. Lifting the brow of a combat helemtt from his first engament with the Crusade, He looked at it. He had painted several things upon it, such as kill tallys, which now stands at 12, and some slogans such as "Born to kill" or a "Don't trad on me"=. The last one he found on a pre-war book, something about a 'Reavltion' or a 'revolutin' or something of that matter.

KuHB1aM00:07, 7 May 2009 (UTC)// Getting back into the game. Someone refresh me? I presume your not looting Gilead Point. They've hardly begun. KuHB1aM 00:07, 7 May 2009 (UTC)
--Cerebral plague21:39, 8 May 2009 (UTC)// We're looting a location, no idea which. The gang who was drunk a few hours later, are looting it and hiding in Stefanie's place while a bunch of mutants try to break in I assume.

Jack was sitting down, minding his own business when he spoke. "We should loot the Claws HQ."

Vegas adict08:16, 9 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis was sat on a rock fidling with a piece of his armor when he heared jack talk about looting the claws HQ."huh why would you do that theres no good loot and aparantly theres turets guarding it"

Run4urLife!08:42, 9 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Then we raze it to the ground. If at all possible we should salt the earth too. The turrets will be no problem. After all, they were put up by employees of Bren Tenkage." Jacob sneered. Apparently, he still rather disliked Bren and the Claws. Although, the sentiment was shared by the entire Capitol Wasteland, so he wasn't the only one thinking it.

"I'm in. And I call first dibs on the loot." Jackal piped in, sitting down at the back of the room, reading a copy of Pugilism Illustrated.

Fireman0504

Stefanie listened as the group discussed looting the Claws HQ. She still didn't know who these guys were. Apparently the wasteland had a vendetta against them though. If the rest of the group disliked them that was good enough for her. "I'm in," she said. "You guys wanna crash here for the night? There's lotsa cots down there. And, I been scavengin' from all over D.C. so I got lotsa loot down there. Spare parts, ammo, weapons, booze, food. Jeeves can fix us up a good meal. He hasn't had company in a long time. I'm sure he wouldn't mind. Plus we're underground a ways and away from everythin' that's up here." Jacob looked at her. "You know what this place is right?" Stefanie cocked her head to the side. "This is my safe spot," she chuckled. "This is the D.C. outpost of the Brotherhood of Steel Outcasts," he said sternly, "Tell me, did they leave anything down there?" Stefanie shrugged. "A little bit. Some records and holotapes addressed to the Brotherhood, a list of soldiers who left on somethin' they called 'the Exodus,' and there's a safe down there I can't get into. Most of the stuff down there I put there after finding it everywhere. You guys can come on down if you want and check it out," Stefanie said, stepping onto the lift. Jacob looked at Aaron Ramsey, who now looked very interested in the situation.

//--TehK16:51, 9 May 2009 (UTC)// I think Stefanie should get addicted to some more "rad" stuff, like Rad-Weed.

"I'm in! I wonder what kind of shit they left down there.. or did you take it already?" Riley said to Stefanie, "also, when we get to the Super-Duper Mart, I'm takin' the terminal, I left some of my stuff on it."

--Cerebral plague17:02, 9 May 2009 (UTC)// Strauss has a pipboy, correct? Also, Jack has a old one with little .

"In my experience Stefanie, anything that can't be opened by normal means, can be blown up. Also, the claws shit were going to put in a pile, then we take turns grabbing the shit we want. Also, we each get to have dibbs on one object, that fair?" Jack walked over to Stefanie, and went on the lift. "Anyone else want to come?"

//--Fireman0504 // We're at Bailey Crossroads, NOT Fort Independence. Where Operation:Anchorage takes place...

"You guys wanna come in for supper or not?" Jack stepped on the lift. "I'm not sure what's in the safe, and I don't want to risk damagin' it. It's prolly somethin' good too. I haven't gotten rid or taken any of the historical stuff, I figure that'd be important to someone. Maybe sell it to the Brotherhood. Of course, it seems a few of you had deep connections with these Outcasts, so maybe you can just have it. We'll figure itt out after supper." she smiled. "Anyone else?"

Solbur17:07, 9 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss followed Jack to the lift, glaring at him. "Hang on a second, Jackie. I just happen to be living in the place you're talking about looting." He suddenly interjected, sounding rather annoyed. All he recieved in response were blank stares. "... So?" Jack responded nonchalantly, tilting his head to the side, "it's not as if you can't find a new place to live." The bounty hunter did have a point. Wasn't he meant to be holding the fort for the group until they came back, though? The same group that everyone seemed to despise... he sighed. Maybe it was time to leave the Claws. Wasn't really a full member, anyway. All I did with them was go to Vault 106 to patch up Bren. Before he joined, all he heard about the Claws was helping people this, fighting Talon Company that, offering aid to strangers and then some. But the fact that they left meant that they must have cared more about their own asses than anyone else's. The reality of it had only just dawned on him.

"... Okay, nevermind," Strauss said, resignedly. "You guys can do whatever the fuck you want with the place. I'm taking the turrets, the Sentry Bots. In fact, I'm taking them, no negotiations, since I set up half of it."

//--TehK17:11, 9 May 2009 (UTC)// Hmm, maybe the sim is still there, and the Lone Wanderer NEVER found the sim? Heheh, put one of the pip-boy guys in the thing..
//--Fireman0504 // He had to've. In the first page of our RP when Stefanie found the place, it said the sealed doors were open and the Pre-War loot was all gone. Of course, the Sim is still there, but the T-51B, Chinese Stealth Armor, etc. are gone.

Stefanie listened to Strauss. Apparently he was a Claws member. He seemed cool enough. And now from the sounds of it, he was leaving the group. Oh well. Once everyone was aboard, Stefanie activated the life. They were sent several stories down and it finally stopped at a set of heavy doors. They opened revealing two turrets that tracked back and forth but did not fire, and a greeting from a Mister Handy hovering in the room. There were crate and weapons and barrels and all manner of scraps and bits neatly arranged throughout the room. "Good evening Madam!" Jeeves said. He sounded almost extatic for a robot. "It is so good to finally see you- Oh! You have guests! I was anticipating on only your return. I have dinner ready in the kitchen for you." Stefanie looked at her companino smiling as the group got off the lift. "Thank you Jeeves," she said, "I see you've cleaned the place up. Would you mind fixing dinner for the rest of our guests?" she said. "Certainly, Madam!" The robot promtly hovered off to the kitchen to complete his task. "Make yourselves at home," she said as they entered the hallway. It was lined with cots and more crates and barrels and weapons and assorted loot. The group began to make themselves at home, looking at different trinkets and gizmos and weapons. "Supper will be ready in a little bit," she said.

Vegas adict18:30, 9 May 2009 (UTC) 

So conner had finaly goined a group well good for him though now it seamed he was leaving them.He pulled up a weapons crate and sat on it."if were going to loot the claws HQ we have to do it soon.Most of the wasteland want it burnt down and il bet they'l start soon"

Domingo looked over at the group, where Jeeves hovered off to was deserted. Seeking out a seat (he decided he would explore later), Domingo finished off his cigarette and stuck the butt into his pocket. "I wouldn't advise going after the Claws HQ with anything less than a squad of Talon Company mercenaries," The sagelike tank pilot advised, "There've been increased readings of raiders gathering around that area, coming up from the memorial bridge downriver. Money's on them planning a siege and raze attack; bust down the defenses, then smash through the doors and burn the place down."

He looked around at the assorted members of his party: A warrior Weapon, a ghoul scavenger, a pit fighter, a mercenary, a professional assassin and a technician- and himself, of course, a tank pilot. "On second thought," Domingo said, "We'd probably be alright. But we can spare an extra day to eat and rest here on Stefanie's hospitality before we crack the HQ open like a lobster."

Vegas adict20:24, 9 May 2009 (UTC)// How would domingo know jacobs a WW

Alexis started to fiddle with his data-pad looking over the data he had recorded earlier he looked at the details forb the tank again."domingo that tank of yours what make is the cannon"

Run4urLife!20:32, 9 May 2009 (UTC)// He doesn't, but no one knows Cerebral Jack's name (he has never introduced himself) and we all call him Jack anyhows.

Jacob surveyed the place. He ran his hand along the list of names. Survivors of Fairfax. One name stuck out to him ahead of the others. Jacob Vaughton. He smiled. Then a lump formed in his throat. The Outcasts had been the closest thing he ever had to a family since, well, his real family were murdered. He scratched his chin as he considered what might have been if he had joined them in the Exodus. Austin, and more. He looked around again. Everyone seemed to be happy sitting down, looking at things. Jacob sighed and found a nice quiet corner, where he slid down a wall and sat there, staring into the middle distance. So much had happened, he hadn't really taken it all in. The weight of his actions in the DC War were still washing over him. He had spared the Wasteland from the inevitable retribution the Crusade would inflict after Tenkage's attack on them. But he had struck a deal with the Enclave. He had sold his soul for the sake of the people.


Jackal was sitting in a makeshift chair, comprising of several sandbags he painstakingly piled up for the last five minutes, essentially forming a large beanbag chair. He lounged backwards, and watched Jacob wander off deeper into the facility. That man was an enigma. He then pulled a cigar from his pocket, bit off the end and lit it up. Domingo looked at him in horror at the treatment of the hand-rolled tobacco stick. Jackal responded with a grin that made Domingo's expression change yet again. Domingo now looked utterly confused.

User:Radiation King // Now that you mention it, it was probably a bad idea to mention Jacob was a WW in a post, where a character doesn't know that he is a WW. I'll change it... Eventually.

Domingo sighed as he watched Jackal mutilate the cigar by ripping off the foil piece with his teeth, then light it up. He merely produced another cigar and clenched it between his teeth as he turned towards Alexis.

"It doesn't have a cannon." Domingo said around the stick clenched in his teeth. "I don't know if you've been hitting el magico maleza (The Magic Weed, Marijuana), but you just rode for five miles on top of a Sherman Tank that's been completely disarmed for the better part of two hundred seventy years." Turning back towards the rest of the group, he kicked up his feet and leaned back against a pile of ammunition crates, relaxing his legs and dozing underneath the fluorescent lights.

Vegas adict21:02, 9 May 2009 (UTC) 

Now he thought about it that was a stupid question.Alexis pulled out his own stash of alcohol and drank it in a long gasp."so domingo were do you come from?"

Fireman0504

Stefanie walked down the hallways. Everyone was relaxing, taking a load off with no gunfire, no rubble, no explosions, no beligerant drunk wasters, no overzealous bigot Crusaders. Just food, drinks, smokes, and good company. She smiled to herself. Offering this hospitality was the least she could do to the closest friends she had since her parents were killed. She retrieved two bowls of Pork N' Beans from the kitchen and set one down for Cat. She ate the other as she walked into another room where Jackal, Jacob, Domingo, and Alexis(?) were sitting. "Enjoy my D.C. safe spot," she said, "Company is welcome any time." Jeeves hovered over with an assortment of food. "Good day, gents," he said politely, "care to take a sample of any of my delicious food items? My mistress here has enhanced my already notable culinary skills with the benefits of a Radiation Extracting Food Processor. You'll find that the extracted radiation allows for a very notable increase in flavor. You are welcome to sample any of my delightful dishes." They all stared at him. Stefanie broke out laughing. "You're always so polite Jeeves," she said. His primary sensor swiveled to look at her. "Madam, I am programmed to offer my services with friendliness and pride. If you would like me to explain this again, I would be happy to run diagnositc .427... again." She continued laughing. "No, it's okay, I'm fine." she squeezed out between laughs. "You have quite the sense of humor, Madam." Stefanie settled down. "o ahead guys, he's really a good cook, take whatever you'd like."

Domingo lifted a plate off of Jeeves' manipulator arms and looked over the plate. It was Mirelurk Cakes, one of his favorite dishes, that had been fried and breaded with some vacuum-sealed Pre-War bread crumbs. Biting down into one of the savory cakes, he felt the tastes spread across his tongue- Slight traces of thyme, cayenne pepper flakes, garlic pepper...- before swallowing the mouthful.

He swivelled on his seat back towards Alexis. "Well, I am formerly from a small settlement in the south of the former Socialist Republic of New Mexico. Raiders came along and destroyed the settlement, took me as a slave and retreated. About ten years later, I escaped, killed the slavers and travelled cross-country to the Capital Wasteland. I found El Oso in a decomissioning yard, halfway torn apart on a conveyor belt with its turret ripped to scrap beside it. I managed to get it running and drove to the Promised Land." He smiled. Apparently 'Promised Land' was some sort of code for 'Capital Wasteland'.

"I've been all over the continent- as far south as Nicaragua and as far north as the Labrador Peninsula. I've traded goods for the better part of five years, and I've always found my way back here. Fate, I guess."

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 18:13, 10 May 2009 (UTC)

Weston was chowing down on some Brhamin Steak. He had'nt that for a while, and he saw it on theplate...well, it looked like Jackal wanted it, but he got to it first. Weston was sitting atop a table, 2with a Nuka-Cola near him. His helment was off, reavling a head with a almost buzz-cuted brown hair with straks of blonde in it. Of course, he actually left his Assualt rifle at the door,. No one would steal it here. Normally, he would have had that thing strapped on his back in fear of something going to take it. Here, they were safe. He knew most of the people here from the Assualt on the Crusade vase, only Domngio and the new guy was nw. Domgino semmed cool, however. Not many people could figure out how to get a tank working.

"Well, Domgino. If you really wante dto arm it, i foud a old water-cooled machine gun near here. we couklld go there, Weld it on and BOOM! You have a armed tank."

Radiation King18:42, 10 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Well," Domingo said, "I've already affixed a laser chaingunin the coaxial mount, but we could bolt it down in the trailer and have a rear-facing armament." Taking a drag on the cigar and another bite of Mirelurk cake, he nodded in Weston's direction. "But for now, we'll rest and recuperate, and mount the machine gun in the morning. It'll wait for us."

Radiation King // Back at Run4's request.

The horn of a steamboat swept across the landscape, and soon after a steam engine could be heard. The sound of a slowing pace, then silence. After a few minutes there came the sound of the elevator, and then doors opening.

Domingo cocked his head at the door, lifting his .32 pistol from the interior pocket of his jacket and clenching his cirar tighter in his teeth (because what proper badass snuffs out the cigar shortly before he jumps headlong into a possible confrontation?) as he took aim. Eventually, the elevator doors slid all the way open, revealing...

A tall man dressed in a brown duster, holding an M3A1 Grease Gun in one hand and a small map of the are a in the other. Muttering to himself, the man stepped forward, saying something along the lines of, "Well, I guess if I just go straight I should end up at the simulation room eventually," before he ran right into Domingo- which was pretty much, for a man like Roland Rockfort, a cotton ball being shot into a concrete building.

Picking himself up off the floor, Roland found himself staring straight down the barrel of Domingo's .32. "Now now, friend," Roland said calmly, "no need to point a gun in my face, I'm not here to harm anyone."

"Yeah right," Domingo said, blowing smoke right into Roland's face, which caused the small merchant to enter a coughing fit. "I'm telling you," he shouted, "I'm not here to hurt anyone!"

Run4urLife!20:18, 10 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob spun Domingo to face him and then slammed a fist down on each of Domingo's shoulders, driving him to his knees. Then he administered a heavy-handed knee-kick to Domingo's chest, sending him sprawling. Then he extended a hand to Roland and heaved him to his feet. Jacob looked genuinely happy for the first time in weeks.

"Where the hell have you been Roland?" Jacob shouted.

Vegas adict20:21, 10 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis looked on with astonishment at the scean.Jacob had just floored domingo and helped the newcommer to his feat."so you know each other then"

Fireman0504

Stefanie shook her head. Even with a night of peaceful rest Jacob started a fight. She chuckled to herself though. Guess that's just the type of guy he was. Stefanie stepped over the sprawled out Domingo, who was trying to catch his breath. "And you are?" she said, smiling. Maybe Stefanie was just too friendly with all of the newcomers that showed up at any given time, but then again, that's what living in a slaver town would do to a girl. Make her yearn for a friendly face. Social interaction. Everyone in Zanadu was scared of her, or looked down at her because she'd been a slave. Wasn't her fault she was born that way. She finally had friends now though, in D.C. Problem was all the danger here. This guy was in her safe spot now and if he tried anything, which she betted he wouldn't because Jacob, though friendly now, hated all things bad and was probably as likely to pull the man's legs off as he was to stop Domingo from putting a hole in his face. Now she stood with her hands on her hips, awaiting an answer to her curiosity from anyone.

Domingo fell headfirst onto the ground. Luckily, his helmet prevented too much damage to what little brains he may have had left at any given time. However, hearing the name "Roland" seemed to put a bit of dapper cheer in his step. Every merchant in the DC ruins had heard of the brave seafaring Roland Rockfort, who had fought from every coast on the green (really more brown) earth. "Sorry for hurting you, Sir," Domingo aologized hastily.

Roland nodded in appreciation before he turned back to Jacob. "I've been in California with the Brotherhood. The Outcasts send their regards, Jacob." He turned towards Stefanie next, greeting her cordially in much the same way as he had first greeted Jacob all those years ago:

"I am the night wind that blows howling across the seas and river of this earth, the legend that all men who ply these seas speak of in fear or admiration. I am the undisputed king of the Seven Seas, Roland Rockfort!"

Cerebral plague20:44, 10 May 2009 (UTC) 

"By that extremely long title, you probably also have the second or third largest ego in the wasteland Mr. Rockfort" Jack said, as he took a bite out of an apple.

Radiation King20:48, 10 May 2009 (UTC)// Oh no you di'int!

Roland looked over at Jack, stifling a schoolgirlish giggling bout as he looked at that rediculous poncho. Quickly stifling his laughter, Roland managed to come up with one of his signature almost biting retorts.

"I thought having a massive ego would make advertising easier. It's like a used brahmin salesman; the more over-the-top their personality, the more people will want to "buy, buy, buy". It makes sense, if you think about it, Pancho-man." Roland also said 'pancho' wrong, pronounsing it "pawn-chow".

Fireman0504

"Well, it's nice to meet you Mr. Rockfort," Stefanie said, "can I interest you in some supper and a place to stay for the night?" Jeeves hovered toward the group laden with more places of delicious smelling food. "Good day my good chap, Jeeves is the name. Can I interest you in some culonary delights the likes of which you haven't tasted before?" The cordial Mr. Handy asked the newcomer, Rocjfort, spinning to offer him some food.

User:Ramsey00:41, 11 May 2009 (UTC)// Good old Rockfort...

Aaron, tired and focused, barley heard the commotion in the other room. He, along with Riley's dog who was sniffing his leg, was busy going through the Outcast's abandoned battle reports. Oh yes, it mentioned Jay. It even had a whole biography about Aaron's brother, along with every other Outcast of course. Jay seemingly didn't mention his scared past which intertwined with Aaron's. Although the dreadlocked Austinite was mentioned, but only as a relative. It seemed that big ol' brother wasn't the most truthful of the bunch. Jay even claimed to have been born in a peaceful community... Bullshit. But Aaron's quest was done. Jay had headed back home just as Aaron had made this campaign to find him. A sense of depression and regret filled Aaron, both Jay and Jenn probably thought him to be dead as well. It seemed that now he would just head back to that hellhole and try to put this three years of wasted life behind him, something that did not sound appealing to him. Although it would be worth it just to be with his loved ones again. He thought of Jay, Jenn, and himself, sleeping on the rooftop of the UT tower, just gazing at the stars. And then the sirens would ring and fear would instill our hearts once more. Times like this always reminded him of his(More like Jay's) lost uncle, Jacob Ramsey. Jay had gained his ancestors journal of his last moments after Union scavengers had found the book. Aaron had read it quite a lot, studying every aspect. Apparently the early pioneer had been one of the first to witness the Cataclysm start. But the text was truly mortifying, this lone man knowing that these were his last minutes before a grisly death. If only the man had survived.....

Aaron heard his name called from the other room, causing Riley's dog to scramble to the source, probably thinking he was getting food. Aaron rose slowly, stretching his limbs. He grabbed his Shotgun, his Ak-47 being lost somewhere in the wastes, and walked through the door. Everybody seemed to be all stirred up, Aaron could only guess it was from the arrival of some stranger. Aaron turned his head to the ghoul, Jackal, "Hey man, who's the new guy?" Aaron asked with a thumb pointing towards the newcomer.

--Cerebral plague00:51, 11 May 2009 (UTC)// Jack doesn't have a dog, although he should get one. Name it fluffy

"Well, I can answer that for you Aaron!" Jack got up from his chair and struck a pose. "He is the night wind that blows howling across the seas and river of this earth, the legend that all men who ply these seas speak of in fear or admiration. He is the undisputed king of the Seven Seas, Roland Rockfort! His entrance, not mine by the way." Jack sat down again and took another bite out of the apple.

//--TehK00:53, 11 May 2009 (UTC)// Fixed it, MY DOG.
User:Ramsey01:02, 11 May 2009 (UTC)// Heh, sorry bout that Krush.

Aaron chuckled as Jack mimicked the so-called legend. So the guy had an ego, and was, for some reason or another, lurking around in Stefanie's safe house. So far he seemed a bit suspicious. But one thing did interest him though. This Ronald was mentioned in the Outcast's records of the battle of Fairfax. Maybe Aaron would talk to him about that later, but now he was hungry as hell. He turned to Jeeves, "Pfft! Hey robot! Get me somethin' to eat, I'm starving!"

Solbur01:10, 11 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss had been introduced to two different types of blandness in his life; the tasteless, nutrient-ridden food from a Vault Food Dispenser, and the tasteless, two-hundred year old stuff you find out in the Wasteland. What he was eating now, decidedly, did not fall into either of these categories. Simply put, it was probably the best-tasting meal he'd had in his life. Jeeves had turned what he suspected was once called a preserved Salisbury Steak into a culminary masterpiece. "Hey, Worth," Strauss called out to his robot, "why can't you cook like this?" He asked, culminating in a brief chuckle before taking another bite. The robot pointedly ignored him. "Aww, look, he's jealous." Again, the silence. Strauss shrugged. Conversation would only distract him from eating, anyway.

Radiation King19:53, 11 May 2009 (UTC)// Bwaha, travellign salesman trap!

Roland looked over at Strauss's coment, and the dejected looking Handy that seemed to follow him around so much. "Robot can't cook its own meals?" The merchant smiled, digging around in the cargo-laden pockets of his duster before he came up with a head-sized cube hidden somewhere within the lining. "I've got just the thing."

The box had several wires dangling off it, and the interior components loked a bit old, but otherwise it looked sound enough. Roland pointed out the "radioactive" sign on the casing and said, "I've got a food purifier right here, perfectly sized for a Mister Handy of your model. Two hundred fifty caps, and she's all yours."

--Cerebral plague23:54, 13 May 2009 (UTC)// Are we going to raid the Super Duper Mart soon?

Jack was sitting down, twirling the massive revolver in his hand, bored. He then heard the Roland fellow talk about a food purifier. "Roland, I suppose you do know that what you just pulled out is one of the oldest scams in the book, right next to the talking Mole rat." Strauss then turned around to look at Roland, staring at him.

Solbur00:06, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

After staring at Roland for a moment with one eyebrow intent on escaping from his face up to the sky, Strauss broke out into laughter. "Don't try that with me, man. I used to be a trader myself. Besides, Worth can condense his own water, and I think I got a food sanitiser sitting in his storage compartment. Moira Brown from Megaton gave me it after I wrangled her a Mole Rat to dissect a few years back. Nice lady," Strauss said, trailing off as he chewed at a mouthful of steak thoughtfully. "Upon analysis of my storage compartment's contents," Worthington suddenly chimed in, "It appears that my Master is correct. Your product is not necessary, nor will you succeed in selling it off for such ludicrous prices." With that, the Handy returned to its smug silence.

//--Radiation King00:37, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Geez, nobody trust the Bostonian.

"I'm serious." Roland said, completely deadpan. From those pockets, he again produced a chunk of food. He held the food up to his Pip-Boy, wchich crackled as the built-in geiger counter ticked away the rads. Smliing in satisfaction, he said, "now watch as I insert the meat in question here..." Opening one of the panels of the machine, he then proceeded to do something very strange.

He actually rolled up the sleeve of his trench-coat and undershirt, then took out a small knife and cut the skin off his right forearm. Placing his hand into a small hollow, he rolled the skin back into place, then the undershirt and finally the jacket, before unfolding from his clenched hands a tiny fission battery. Taking the loose wires and binding them to the fission battery's poles, he waited as the small machine hummed to life and stood clear as it crackled a few times. "And now we wait five to ten minutes for it to purify the food."

What Roland hadn't expected, however, was the fact that the machine actually burst into bright red flames as it sat on the small table in front of him. Roland, in a bout of explitives fit to make even the dirtiest of foul-mouthed men cringe in horror, half-jumped and half-teleported as far from the flame as possible. As usual, Domingo came lumbering over with a fire extinguisher and hosed the machine off

Roland smiled a bit, carefully thumbing the machine's interior components open until he reached the fried, charred, rock-solid piece of what may have at one point been food. Holding up the pebble-sized burnt chunk to his Pip boy again, he showed the Pip-boy readings to everyone, noting out loud that "Not a single chunk of radiation is sensed on this thing, at only the cost of every internal component." Looking down at the charred, smoking husk of what was once a food purifier, he sighed.

"Perhaps I should've put a bit more work into fixing it before I decided to go out and market it..." The merchant shook his head as he scooped up the charred rubble and placed it back inside his jacket. "Perhaps I can interest you gentlemen in something else, though?"

Durindana01:38, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

The man walked his Brahmin towards the structure that he THOUGHT should've been there. Fortunately, he was not particularly disappointed, as the elevator shaft soon appeared to him. Checking over the elevator mechanism and tapping on it a few times with a finger, he nodded, satisfied that going down on it would not end in a cataclysmic plummet down to his death. He stepped into the elevator, and pressed the button to go down, first preparing his shotgun in a position pointing towards the ground.

The gun could be brought up if someone nasty decided to pop up out of nowhere and try and kill him. After all, if travelling most of the Midwest and East Coast had taught him anything, it was keep your weapon close, and your wits even closer.

//--TehK01:41, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Edit your post, theres an elevator that leads into the underground base.
Run4urLife!17:49, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob raised an eyebrow as he heard the rumble of the elevator. With a heavy sigh, he put down his Brahmin Steak and stood up, shooting Cat a look that froze the dog in its place as it went for his food. He drew one of his Desert Eagles, working the action, checking the breach and chambering a round in a strange one-handed movement involving what should have been too much strain on his fingers. Luckily, he was a Warrior Weapon, and the damage the powerful mechanism of the Desert Eagle would inflict on a human hand barely registered with his strengthened body. Even so, he hated doing that one-handed. It was showy, unnecessary, and time-consuming. But he went and did it anyway. He pointed his gun at the elevator, waiting for a target to come into view.

Jackal stood up, trying to mimic Jacob's hand movements as he drew his own Desert Eagle, but found that his Ghoul hands couldn't apply the necessary force to hold the gun still and cock it with one hand. Instead, the action snapped forwards and launched the Desert Eagle from his grip. He scrambled across the room to pick it up as the elevator continued on its agonizingly slow journey downwards. He aimed his gun at the doors, just as Jacob did. Everyone else seemed to be following their lead, a little apprehensively. Mostly because Jacob's sense of danger was startlingly accurate. So if he had a bad feeling, something bad generally came next.

Hopefully Jacob's Common-Sense (it's a pun on Spidey-Sense) was wrong this time.

Vegas adict18:50, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Crap another person was coming down,It was like they atrackted them by the dosen.Why was the elevator locked.He decided to ask stefanie about it.Still it never hurt to be prepared he pulled the ammo box from his backpack and started reloading his .44 magnum.The dangerous looking man across the room looked like he was geting ready as well.The elevator slowed to a halt."Stop who's there!"

//--Radiation King19:33, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo heaved a mighty sigh as he rolled his sore shoulders forward, cracked his neck and back, and stood up straight. Plucking the .32 pistol out of his jacket, Domingo trained the muzzle on the elevator door, holding the little pea-shooter one handed. He looked over at Alexis, his brows depressing at the thought of this one man's stupidity.

"He's in an elevator, dumbass... Where is he supposed to go, with walls on three sides, a forty foot shaft on one side and several heavily armed gunslingers on the other?"

Vegas adict19:42, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis was surprised at Domingo's question.An elevator went both ways and the guy inside could just go back up.He cocked his .44 anyway though.

"Domingo its an elevator idiot it goes both way's the guy inside could just go back up."

He was completely surprised at domingoes question surely the man knew that elevators go both ways.

Run4urLife!19:48, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

"You're calling him an idiot when you're the one demanding someone with a steel plate door between them and us stop and wait for us to riddle them with lead? Jeezis, kids these days are dense." Jackal sighed to Alexis. Jacob looked equally peeved at him, and was shaking his head slowly.

Jacob edged closer to the door, ready to open up with a couple of HEIAP rounds, just in case who or whatever was in the elevator turned out to be aggressive. He flexed his hands around one of the handles to open the heavy doors and spun it. As the door ground open, everyone was surprised to see a perfectly normal, and quite cordial looking man standing there, with his pistol close at hand. But all the same, his finger wasn't on the trigger. Jacob gave a signal indicating the all-clear.

"Who the hell are you?" Jacob asked the newcomer.

Durindana21:03, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

The Brahmin mooed concernedly as the traveler next to it clutched the shotgun with a steady hand. As he got closer and closer down towards the bottom, he heard voices and shouting coming from inside. Fortunately, it didn't sound like they were setting up an ambush to kill him and take all of his merchandise, so he relaxed a bit, until the door opened. He nodded his head to the angry-looking man with the big pistol, and takes the cigar out of his mouth with his free hand, saying, "Durandal. Now, if none of you are trying to kill me.... Which I don't think you are, unless I'm suddenly famous....." He shrugs slightly, and pats the spooked Brahmin on the left head, calming it down a bit.

He then slides the three-barreled shotgun into a holster on his back, and rolls his shoulders slightly, saying, "You're not raiders, else you would've just shot me without provocation. You're not rival technologists, else you would've just tried to steal all of my things, or, again, would've just shot me dead and taken my things. 9/10 times, I end up in a firefight. Pretty rare when I find a place that isn't trying to kill me, even in the Capital Wasteland. Now Nawlins.... Bit of a different story.... But that's me rambling on. Since I told you who I was, I think I can at least beg the same question from the rest of you?"

//--Radiation King21:13, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roland and Domingo holstered their respective weapons as Durandal introduced himself calmly, noting the fact that the technical studiologist was to be a resource of use in the future. Both stepped forward at the same time, almost racing to make the trader's acquaintance first. For all anyone knew, they may have been racing, because they were both half jogging by the time they made it to the door of the elevator.

Roland, however, got the upper hand as he backhanded Domingo out of the way with the flat of his robotic hand, nearly flooring the man with ease. The Hispanic man stumbled back, but quickly darted under Roland's outstretched arm and hauled ass up to the elevator doors. The two reached the door at the same time, and simultaneously blurted out:

"Domingo Velasquez, freelance merchant."

"Roland Rockfort, seafaring trader."

The two glared at eachother, as though they had some sort of long-running rivalry and it was bound to come to a head eventually. Of course, they probably didn't. Domingo (and probably Roland) were inebriated and would probably be sleeping off their hangovers hung from the elevator shft like caterpillars in their coccoons.

Run4urLife!21:19, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Jacob Vaughton. If you've been around DC for a while, you'll have heard the name. Along with a lot of crap about breaking the Crusade. Before you mention that, I'm not a hero. I was there, and I knew what to do. That's all." Jacob said flatly, spinning his pistol and stowing it in it's holter.

"Jackal. I had another name once, but this one suits me better these days." Jackal said, sticking his own D'Eagle back in his pocket, grinning his skull-like grin at Roland and Domingo. He'd lost the belt he kept the holster on during that battle with the Super Mutants, so he was reduced to this.

They both stepped away from Durandal with a curt nod each and looked to the others for their responses. They both kept one eye on the "Technologist" anyway. Who knew whether or not he'd stab them in their sleep and lift their gear.

Durindana21:36, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Durandal simply nodded slightly like an absent-minded bobblehead at the introductions, noting the Desert Eagles, and quirking an eyebrow. "Desert Eagle. Decent firearm, although I think it has too much recoil to be entirely effective, not to mention a pain to find spare parts and maintenance. Sorry if I criticize weapons, that's part of my job." He finally gets back to the other traders who scrambled over to greet him, shaking their hands and nodding, saying, "Traders, huh? Well.... There's a bit of a difference between what I do, and what you do. I keep the choicest bits for myself, unless there comes a deal that I can't refuse, or if people just rub me the right way."

He nods to Jacob, saying, "I've spent the last 5 years wandering the ruins of the Midwest. They got a bit of troubles over there, but I am rather good at making it through places unhurt, especially with a bit of Brotherhood support here and there. So no, I haven't really heard of you. I mostly don't pay attention to stories of heroism anyways, most often the "heroes" are exaggerated greatly, with three arms to carry guns and the ability to carry a Gatling Gun in one hand, or they aren't actually heroes at all." He simply shrugged at the last part. His voice stank of well-tempered cynicism, cultivated through years of hard living.

KuHB1aM21:45, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Getting back in there from Pg2, Run4.

Thomas swerved once again as Roarke brought his massive weapon to bare again, finally connecting with Thomas' sword one last time. The field ripper broke the sword in half, both pieces falling away to the side. Thomas raised an eyebrow, since he was helmetless, his T-51b helmet having been shot to pieces by enemy forces, which were now pouring inside the walls in an attempt to finally storm the interior of Gilead Point. Thomas frowned. He was weaponless, and fighting unarmed against someone of equal skill and better armament was just complete suicde. "Hmm... it's seems we've reached an impasse, Roarke." Thomas said, stroking his ragged moustache and beard. This day just wasn't working out for him.

//--TehK21:48, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Durindana, the post right above mine is in a dif location so don't react to it.

"Riley Alan, lives here," Riley said, "No you don't!" Stefanie yelled at him, "Now I do," he said back. And then Cat jumped at Durandal and attempted to rip his bag open until Riley pulled him off. "Sorry, but you've got Pork n' Beans that he wants," Riley said, petting Cat.

Run4urLife!21:55, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roarke shook his head. He whirled his Field Ripper around himelf and brought the flat side of the blade to bear on the side of Thomas' head, knocking him out cold. Now, just to leave him there, and let him run home to Moore and spread panicking word of Gilead's fall. He moved on, his Field Ripper rising and falling in roaring, blood-soaked arcs as he split soldiers from head to groin and bisected them at the waist. His soldiers flooded through the breach behind him, firing at close range or engaging the Airborne in melee combat.

Roarke stood up straight as he split another soldier, scattering his guts across the nearby melees. He surveyed the carnage from this position at the start of the trenches. This battle was already won.

Solbur21:58, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Name's Strauss. I guess you could call me a philanthropist." Strauss explained, extending a hand towards the newcomer. However, he retracted it when he saw Cat jump for the stranger's bag, and then burst out into laughter. "Don't mind Cat, he's the craziest dog we know. I mean... a dog. Named Cat. Right? Haha."

--Cerebral plague22:15, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Cerebral Jack walked over to Stefanie's robot, grabbed a bottle of vodka and sat back down. "New comer, lets get one thing straight. When we loot shit, you don't get anything because you showed up late. Another thing is that Riley can read your mind, Jacob is from a project that gives Wastelanders super powered combat skills, and everyone else is mentally insane." Jack sat back down, and took a swig of Vodka. "Oh, and I kill people for money."

Durindana22:49, 14 May 2009 (UTC) 

Durandal was most notably unconcerned about any of the strange motley crew present, nodding to each one in turn as they introduced themselves, and finally acknowledged each one in turn, saying, "Right, so Riley...." He didn't really do anything to stop the dog from attacking the bag. After all, he kept his more valuable components stowed away from the food. He took Strauss' hand and shook it, nodding to the rather rude assassin that spoke up, saying, "Don't care, don't care, don't care, don't care, and don't care. That about cover it, or am I missing a don't care in there somewhere? Those years in the Midwest have almost scavenged me out, so I'm looking for a place to stay for a bit and then move on, not a place to find relics." He shrugs, and crouches down instead of sitting, saying, "So, before I relax for a bit, anyone willing to trade anything...?"

//--Radiation King23:00, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Did someone say "trade"? Roland's on the case!

Roland immediately stood up. Looking through his trenchcoat pockets, he rummaged through every last bit and scrap of technology he could find before pulling out one of the myriad components stored in those pockets.

"What don't you have?" Roland said casually. "I can give you a show of my stock if you want."

KuHB1aM23:14, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// We might aswell get the whole damn group back together. Where’d I leave my katana? I’ll insert Dutch directly. Used him on the first page, so he’s been there.

Dutch Holmes continued to watch the ragtag group that had helped him earlier in the months before. Well, half of the group anyway. Watching them through his binoculars, he grabbed his duffel, filled with all of auxiliary equipment and gear that he didn’t have on his person, and set down the path from the area he had set upon. It took relatively ten minutes to reach them, and by that time, he already had guns raised at him. “Calm down, Jack.” Holmes said, sitting down on a broken over log near the Brahmin caravan. He wasn’t supposed to associate with wasters, but it wasn’t on record anyhow. Jack lowered his weapon, as did Connor, Stephanie, and the newcomer, Durandal. Holmes stood up, stared at his rad signature through his aviator sunglasses, and sized him up. Not very intimidating, except for his weapons. Dutch turned towards Jacob. “Just the man I wanted to see.” Dutch said, his hand ready to move for his sidearm at a moment’s notice. Dutch turned towards the group. “I presume he’s not as itchy on his trigger finger as he was when we escaped, eh?” Dutch said.

//--TehK23:23, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Omg! We're underground!
KuHB1aM23:26, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Fuck! I'll change it as soon as possible
KuHB1aM23:32, 14 May 2009 (UTC)// Fixed it. Don't ask how I got there.
User:Ramsey02:35, 15 May 2009 (UTC)// How does everybody find this hole in the ground?

Aaron Ramsey threw a half-eaten roll at Jack, who then spewed some pretty nasty curses at him. "Ahh, shut up Jack. You're just as insane as the rest of us." Dodging a counterattack from Jack consisting of him tossing the same roll back at Aaron. Casually, the Austinite picked it back up and continued eating. "Aaron Ross Ramsey, immigrant from down in Austin. The South's a bitch, I'd say stay away from there brother." He downed a glass of purified water, "Either nobody else asked or I just didn't hear them, but I'm gonna ask it anyway. Mind tellin' us why the hell you're down here?"

Just as the newcomer was about to speak, Jacob again rose sporting his pistol. The mans got some sort of damn third eye for sensing shit, and it wouldn't be a surprise either. This was a very strange group of people. Aaron rose, shotgun aimed at the door. He was ready to kick over the table in front of him and blow whoever entered to little bits. It'd give Stefanie's cocky robot something to do as well. The new newcomer entered, but instead of being killed on sight, everybody lowered their weapons. He addressed Jacob and the others, apparently he knew them. How the hell is everybody finding this little underground home? Aaron shook his head and returned to his drink, he just wished he had some more smokes to clam him.

Fireman0504

"Listen, Mr. Durandal," Stefanie piped up to the arrogant trader, "this is my home, and these are my friends, see? And you don't just come on down here actin' all arrogant and uppity like, and talkin' down to us all. You'd've come down here with a little more class and a little less ass, I wouldn't be inclined to toss you back on that elevator myself and send you back up into D.C. for the night. Then again, if you're gonna refine your behavior a bit and act a bit more civil, while disregarding Jack, our local sociopath, I'd be inclined to offer you a meal and a place to stay for the night." Everybody, including Jacob, raised an eyebrow at Stefanie. Well, almost everybody. Jeeves was busy cleaning up Aaron and Jack's mess, while Jack sat grinning from ear to ear. Durandal stood up. "So, what's it gonna be there Durandal, you gonna come down to our level a bit? Or are you gonna start packin' your goodies and headin' back up top?"

Durindana18:18, 15 May 2009 (UTC)// Sorry, gonna be gone until maybe later on Saturday.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 19:28, 15 May 2009 (UTC)

"Since when di we have a level? I mean, we have a guy who, sorry, TWO guys that can kill people like crazy, a ghoul that never dies, this hudini guy, two robots, a tank driver, a Outcast wanna be thing, and then we have mwe, who is rather dashingly handsome, to say so my self."

Weston had put away his 10mm SMG and was sitting down on a now vacant chair. Of course, he still was ready to pull out his SMG and rain hot death upon the new comer, who he now flipped off.

KuHB1aM20:16, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I must object, Mr. Weston. As an Enclave soldier, I must say that I am, in fact, better looking than you." Dutch said. He hadn't been this social before. Ever. As the girl rolled her eyes, Dutch and Weston shot each other a look of competition. Dutch turned back towards the newest member. "I presume we haven't met before. My name is Dutch Holmes. Only the people in this room, including a select few others, know my name. However, almost everyone on the east coast, or northeast and the far west, know my face. That is all you need to know. However, you should also know that me and that man over there," Holmes said pointing towards Jacob, "come from a rather deadly line of people. You'd do wise to avoid crossing me." Dutch said, his sunglasses pulled away by his hand. His blind eyes revealed, he smiled at the newcomer, then replaced them.

Run4urLife!20:49, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Ignore the blindness. His other four senses form a nice little radar set. It'd be wise not to fuck with us. The Crusade did and they got fucked up." Jacob said, then lowered his weapon to show he wasn't going to start a fight, in spite of threatening Durandal. All things considered, this guy didn't seem too bad. He hadn't shot at them yet anyway. Who knew, maybe he was already an enemy of the Crusade. Which made him an ally to Jacob. Unless he was a Raider or slaver of some sort. Or if he worked for the likes of Raiders, or employed them. Which would technically make him a Raider.

Jacob! Stop trying to find a reason to hurt the poor man! Jacob thought to himself as he realised he was going through the criteria for winding up on his bad side. If he was to list them all, he could be standing there like a moron for hours.

"Well, as a fellow scavenger, I'd like to welcome you to our little circle of psychopaths." Jackal said, with his skull-like smile. But in spite of the kind words, he was the only person in the room with a weapon still drawn. Stefanie seemed to be a good judge of people, and if she didn't like this guy, Jackal, and pretty much everyone in the room had her back all the way. Of course, they had no reason to shoot the fella, so Jackal then decided to give him the benefit of the doubt and holster his shotgun at last. The tension in the room lifted as if by magic. Then, with Jacob still eyeing up the new guy, Jackal sat down and practically inhaled the massive Warrior Weapon's Brahmin Steak. Stuff tasted like crap compared to Pre-War stuff, but he wasn't about to insult Stefanie or her robot for the sake of food he'd never have again.

"Oh, and Weston, I can die just like anyone else, lad." Jackal sighed. "I'm just better at not getting shot than most!"

//--TehK20:57, 15 May 2009 (UTC)// Since Dutch has won an Alien Rifle, we have to notice it sticking out of his bag!

Riley was wondering how so many people knew where they were, "Did somebody put a sign up saying, 'COME IN HERE PARTY!' or something before we went down the elevator??" Riley asked. And then, immediately after he said that, Dutch Holmes from Jerusalem comes out of the elevator shaft, "Tell me, are there any more people following you?" he asked Dutch, and then everybody had their hellos before Dutch could answer the question. Riley then noticed a shiny weapon sticking out of Dutchs bag, "You didn't have that shiny thing last time we seen eachother.. what is it?"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 21:01, 15 May 2009 (UTC)

"wait! Don't ask him! He'll problay kill you!"

With a glare from Dutch, Weston shut up and went back to eating a peice of flaming hot dog meat, which Cat growled at him to no end for.

KuHB1aM21:07, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I've been traveling." Dutch said, looking away from Weston closing the army duffel to block the weapon from view. "Let's just say that this... thing, is not man-made. More specifically, I borrowed it. From a company. A company's building, more exactly." Dutch said, sittind down again. "It's... sorta strange as a weapon. I've prefer not to talk about it. Also, you weren't that hard to track. Jacob was, but not the lot of you. Your not the most easily blending group of wasters." Dutch said, mocking Riley slightly. Rubbing the waster on the head, he smiled alittle bit, turning back towards Jacob. "He's grown alittle since we last saw him, eh?" Holmes said, laughing alittle. Some of the group chuckled. He looked towards Riley. "We'll talk about that... thing, later. Specifically, with you, little man." Dutch said, whipsering in his ear. He turned back towards the new comer once again. "I presume your going to introduce yourself?" Dutch said, pulling out a beer and tossing one to Weston.

Run4urLife!21:28, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"He already has. His name's Durandal, he's some kind of Technologist. A scavver that keeps the best stuff in his own back pocket. Can't say I blame him, the way things are going these days." Jacob said, relaxing a little now that Holmes was here. As much like a miniature Jacob as Jack was, Holmes was about as close to a little brother as anyone could get. Likewise with the other First Gen Warrior Weapons. Hale and all. Jacob produced a bottle of burboun and took a swig before offering some to Durandal, who accepted graciously, apparently having taken Stefanie's rollicking to heart.

Jackal merely sat back happy in the knowledge that he was the only person ever to have stolen something from Jacob Vaughton and got away with it. Food always tasted better when it belonged to someone else. He swore as Karma made Cat steal what was left of his own Brahmin steak.

//--TehK21:47, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Ha, you stole from Jacob?" Riley whispered to Jackal, who was sitting at the same table as him. He turned to Durandal, "Oh and Durandal, don't steal Holmes shiny weapon, since your a "technologist" and all.." Riley then began eating his own steak well Cat ate Jackals. He then went off into the lab-like area and disassembled his Tri-Beam.. maybe make it a Quad-Beam?

--Cerebral plague22:11, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack jumped up from the chair startled. "I just realized something! The crazy Enclave guy is less of an asshole then usual!" He yelled out, pointing at Dutch Holmes.

//--TehK22:44, 15 May 2009 (UTC)// Omg somebody post.
KuHB1aM23:26, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I should rip out your throat and use it's vocal cords to play jump rope with. No, maybe I should use your intestines." Dutch said, shutting up Jack immediatly. "If the Enclave found out I was associating with wasters, I'd have my head cut off." Dutch said, taking a plate of the brahmin steak. Ripping it apart rudely and downing it in less than a minute or two, Dutch wiped his mouth with his blackened jacket, excused himself, and headed in the direction of Riley, carrying his duffel. Entering the small labs area, he approached the smaller man, who was tinkering with his tri-beam. Removing the rifle, he placed down on the table. "You seems to know alot about techie junk. Tell me what the hell this is. God, I haven't even loaded it yet with the ammo I found." Dutch said, throwing down some ammunition and the rifle onto the table. "Well?" Dutch said. Dutch was experienced with weapons, but this thing was beyond him.

Act 4[]

KuHB1aM23:26, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I should rip out your throat and use it's vocal cords to play jump rope with. No, maybe I should use your intestines." Dutch said, shutting up Jack immediatly. "If the Enclave found out I was associating with wasters, I'd have my head cut off." Dutch said, taking a plate of the brahmin steak. Ripping it apart rudely and downing it in less than a minute or two, Dutch wiped his mouth with his blackened jacket, excused himself, and headed in the direction of Riley, carrying his duffel. Entering the small labs area, he approached the smaller man, who was tinkering with his tri-beam. Removing the rifle, he placed down on the table. "You seems to know alot about techie junk. Tell me what the hell this is. God, I haven't even loaded it yet with the ammo I found." Dutch said, throwing down some ammunition and the rifle onto the table. "Well?" Dutch said. Dutch was experienced with weapons, but this thing was beyond him.

//--TehK23:34, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Definitely not human," Riley said, "Alien.. musta crashed somewhere and those G.A.I. guys found it.." He then looked closer, and noticed it had been taken apart once before, "Looks like the G.A.I. wanted to put this on their robots, but didn't have the tech.. it's been disassembled once." He then opened it where it had been opened once before and seen the firing mechanism, "Yep, Alien, no doubt about it.. uses some sort of advanced laser tech and has multiple lenses.." Riley then reassembled it and looked at the inscriptions, "There's a strange symbol, stands for '4', did you see anymore of these weapons?"

KuHB1aM23:42, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I was too busy fighting off other fucking problems. But before I left, I took a lookie at a terminal. Said something about there being five of these scattered along the east coast. Gave alittle info, too. Said the one labeled numero tres fired heat rays. The numero uno rifle fired heated fiery plasma shit. The second fired regular plasma shit. Dunno about the fifth one, though." Holmes said, taking the weapon back from Riley and waving it around in one hand. "Well, hand me one of those ammo cells." Dutch said. Riley raised an eyebrow, but complied. "Well, here goes nothing." Dutch said, moved the rifle to recoil against his shoulder, and aimed down the hallway he had come, where the rest of the group was eating. Slowly squeezing the trigger, Dutch recoiled heavily as horizontal laser blades rocketed out in a burst of four, searing the walls and moving down the hallway, where the group was. "Fuck!" Dutch said, tossing the rifle to Riley. Running down the hallway, he came to enter the room as everyone had raised an eyebrow. The Mr. Handy robot wasn't happy either. His left arm was gone, the stub smoking and sparks flying. Poking his head out of the hallway, Dutch smiled. "Just alittle testing." Dutch said.

//--TehK23:48, 15 May 2009 (UTC)// Edited above post: Two is the regular plasma shit, One is the fiery plasma shit. Oh and I edited the Alien rifle thing, 100 spread is like 4000 rocks being pelleted at you but none hitting. I changed it to 20, which would be like a regular shotty.

Riley poked his head out of the room.. there were dissolving lasers stuck in the wall! "Alright then.. it shoots laser blades." Riley said almost calmly, "Nice." Then Riley pulled the trigger again down a hallway where there were nobody, but nothing happened and the gun emitted a beeping noise, "Cool-down I guess, this gun sure is powerful.. they probably couldn't make it semi-auto."

Run4urLife!23:53, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal had dived backwards over his sandbag chair to avoid a laser blade and was now sort of half lying on his shoulders and upper back, with his legs sticking up in the air, D'Eagle pointed straight upwards.

"A warning would be much appreciated next time there maverick." Jackal shouted from his less than dignified position.

Jacob lowered the D'Eagle he had pointed at the room Holmes had just come from and gave the blind man a disparaging look. Apparently, he didn't appreciate being interrupted while trying to find out who the hell ate his Brahmin Steak. He holstered the weapon and sat down, staring at Cat, who lay down and put his forepaws over his eyes. Then, the dog moved one paw to check if Jacob was still staring at him, which he was, and darted the paw back into place. That was reason enough for Jacob to decide that the dog was guilty.

So Jacob pulled a can of Pork 'n' Beans from his duster and threw it over some sandbags. Cat then jumped over the sandbags and crashed into the second row of sandbags laid behind them. Justice served.

//--TehK23:55, 15 May 2009 (UTC)// But Jackal ate your food! Wahhhhh! And only Riley and Jackal know that.. lol.
KuHB1aM23:57, 15 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Not completely my fault." Dutch said, his hand running through his hair. Riley came back inside, handing him the weapon. Some of the group raised eyebrows. "Yeah, this is the thing that took off Robot's arm over there." Dutch said, pointing towards the Mr. Handy. "Not my intention, but new guns are always nice to play with." Dutch said, tossing the weapon to Jacob. "The terminal said there was four more of the damn fuckers." Dutch said, downing another beer and collapsing on a pile of sandbags.

Run4urLife!00:08, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob caught the laser blade gun without looking up from a newly acquired Brahmin Steak. He spun it in his hand, checking the balance and weight of the weapon. Standard carbine balance, as expected. He looked it end to end and then pulled the trigger. It made an aggravated hiss, like a white-hot piece of steel being dropped in ice-water. Jacob raised his eyebrows at that and nodded as Riley mentioned something about a cool-down period.

Then he smirked as Riley shouted something about Cat lying between two rows of sandbags, looking rather dazed and confused. Jackal openly laughed. It was then that Jacob realized that it had been Jackal who stole his food! Without looking up, he pulled another can of Pork 'n' Beans from his duster and threw it straight into Jackal's face, right as he went to sit down. Caught off-guard, Jackal stumbled backwards and fell over his chair again, swearing loudly. Justice served. Again.

Stefanie came into the room livid. Jeeves was missing an arm and hovered lopsided. "God damn it you bunch of idiots!" she screamed at them. "Put that fuckin' gun away, NOW! You've already shot up Jeeves." The Handy hovered into view, "Oh Madam, tis a mere flesh wound, I--" "Quiet you," Stefanie said to Jeeves, "you've got no flesh." The Handy hovered toward another room, bumping into a wall before continuing. "You bunch of apes wanna go mess some place up, go back to the Muddy Rudder. You're wrecking my home here in D.C. I let you in here to stay the night and enjoy my hospitality, I feed you good food, and you shoot my robot and wreck all my shit! You're a bunch of dumbasses! If you weren't my only friends in the world I'd be forced to start kicking as much ass as I could until I probably got ripped apart. Bottom line: RESPECT MY SHIT!" Stefanie popped a Buffout and took four shots of whiskey, she needed to cool down. "Dutchie, honey, please keep your new gun in your backpack." Stefanie followed Jeeves toward the room he'd gone into before calling Riley over. "Can you help me save him?" she said.

//--TehK03:30, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Don't have much to post lol.

"Uhh.. sure," Riley called out and then rushed to follow Stefanie. "Where's the arm??" he said, but then he poked his head out of the room to see that it was lodged into the wall by a laser blade. "Could you get that out for me..? 'Ya know, with your Power Fist??"

Vegas adict07:37, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Everyone's fogoten alexis :(

Alexis sat motionless through the whole mad incident with the rifle and jacob throwing pork and beens at jackal and cat.That alien weapon looked cool though he'd never seen a weapon like it if only he could get his hands on it.Like that was going to hapen though theres no way dutch holmes who was aparently part of the enclave was going to let him fidle with his gun.Still though he wanted to do somthing.Jack had said about raiding thr super duper mart and it would at least get them out of this hell hole."So are we going to sack the SDM or are we just going to sit here and do nothing?"

Run4urLife!11:40, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Give it some time, Lex." Jacob said as he wrenched the Mr Handy's saw arm from the wall and tossed it across the room to Riley. Riley played hot potato with the arm for a few seconds until he could get a grip on the part of it without the still-whirring saw blade.

Jackal laughed a phlegm-laced laugh as he sat back up on his seat. If he'd still had a nose, that can of Pork n Beans would have broken it. Fuckin Jacob Fuckin Vaughton. Throwing things around, knocking people's dogs unconscious and looking intimidating. Before the war, people like him were put in rooms with padded walls by men in white coats.

"Yeah, we'll sit tight for a while, I can still hear the artillery at Gilead, so we don't want to run into fleeing loyalists or the Last Legion rearguard, now do we?" Jackal said, ignoring the fact that the look on Jacob and Holme's faces said they were weighing up the option.


--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 11:49, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

Weston had gone into shocked silence though the whole inident, every since the laser blade flew through the air. Now, with his senses coming back, slowly of course, he brought his hands down from a surrender postion. Shaking his head, he now looked around at the orginzed chaos. Riley was trying not to get anything from him get cut off from the whirring blade, Jackal was looking mighty pissed, even for a Irishmen, Jacob was thinking, Dutch was also thinking, the new guy...well, he did'nt see him. Domingio...was somewhere, and then there was Alexis, who was also thinking.

"Well," Weston said while standing up, "we could at least watch the battle right? I'm sure some of you have stuff to be able to watch the battle from afar, and, if that fails, i'm sure Dutch can use his...his...how do you say it....his Extra sight powers? To help us...please don't hurt me dutch..."

Run4urLife!11:56, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"You're saying you want to go watch two armies of self-righteous psychopathic zealots rip each other new assholes for the next few days? We'd either be captured and shot or killed by the crossfire. Or wouldn't get close enough to see with the smoke from Gilead poiint as it burns. If we're goin anywhere, we go to torch that damn Super Duper Mart." Jackal said flatly. (That is another event that may not be added definitively to our Fanon Events Timeline)

"He's right Weston. The Last Legion and the Airborne are both veteran forces. The fighting's probably going on inside the walls now." Jacob said. "Roland and I saw the Airborne fighting in close confines at Fairfax. It's not a spectator sport like the Hole or the Cell. Its fast, brutal and bloody. So much so that a pool deep enough to drown a man in formed at the far end of the trenches at Fairfax. I'd know, I executed a Crusade sniper that way."

Radiation King12:07, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo looked at the wall, downtrodden by Stefanie's kicking him out. He heard Stefanie talking to Riley about Jeeves' manipulator arm, then looked at Jacob yanking it out of the wall. "I'll help you out," Domingo volunteered as he plodded off after Riley, carrying a toolkit he had no doubt stored in the knapsack he'd brought with him from El Oso.

"Yeah, it's no fun. No fun at all." Roland agreed softly, flashing back briefly to the trench fight at Fairfax. "It's as close to hell as you can get in the wasteland. It was raining, it was cold, and men were dying everywhere. The only thing that was worse than the breeding pit for Biosoldiers in Austin." Having made his statement, Roland sat down on the ammo crate, looking off into the middle distances with his eyes winking slightly.

Vegas adict12:22, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis had seen a huge number of things during his travals but he had never seen somthing called a biosoldier.The name cunjoured up images he would rather not think about of men mellded with metal.Still as a Scientist/Medic it would be intresting to find out about them."I may regret asking this but whats a Biosoldier?"

Radiation King12:49, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roland shook his head as he looked over at Alexis. "Biosoldiers," he attempted to explain, "are an Enclave experiment. They were wonce men, maybe. You could barely recognize them now."

He stood up, looked at his knees, cleared his throat. "Their arms and legs have been replaced with swords, all of their joints replaced with ball bearings that allow their limbs to rotate 360 degrees. They have no nerves in their body, so they can't feel pain. Body shots do nothing to them. The only way you can kill them is by knocking off what was once maybe their head. It's been suspended by something along the lines of a gimble attached to their shoulder blades that must feed commands to their limbs somehow. It's gory, strong, and absolutely fucking terrifying." He sat back down. "It's not the kind of thing you'd want to come across on a dark night without the biggest gun you can find on you."

Vegas adict13:02, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis grimaced they did not sound nice at all.If they were an enclave experiment though why wern't they in the capital wasteland.The enclave were here as well he decided that it would be worth asking."Why arn't they in the capital wasteland then.The enclave are here as well?"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 13:09, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

"Ask Mr. Holmes over there. He might now...of course, that does'nt mean he'll tell you."

Weston was back to sitting down and was petting Cat, who was sitting near his leg. In Westons hand was a bottle of Nuka-Cola, which he was taken small sips every 30 seconds or so.

Run4urLife!13:18, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Time to reintroduce our friends from Page 2! Hur hur hur

The Sweepers hissed. They smelled something strange. Not natural. They smelled smoke. From an engine. They found the source, but it also smelled of prey. Lots of prey. Ghoul, man and something much, much stronger than man. And more things stronger than man left a trail into the place. Time for the hunt.

The first Sweeper crashed through the door at the top of the lift shaft and charged down, it's impossibly strong claws digging into the steel of the shaft, allowing it to climb down like a spider. When it burst from the bottom of the shaft, having peeled back the ceiling of the lift, it almost filled the corridor. It scuttled along, in search of prey that was sure to be hiding down here.


Jacob had heard the noise at the top of the shaft first. Something big had just come along to crash the party. He had heard that screech the last time he went near Texas, and was glad he had never come into contact with whatever the hell made it. But it looked like he was about to do so now. He calmly drew Mother's Woe from his back and pointed it towards the now closed door, whic erupted inwards with a roar of beast and broken metal. What came hurtling into the room was something from nightmares. A beast that was a man's worst fears made manifest.

"Sweepers!" Roland yelled as everyone rushed to cover.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 13:32, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

Slamming a Maginze into his Assualt Rifle, Weston pointed it at the 'Sweeper'. He had never seen one, he was shiitng his pants, and was confused as hell. Firing off the entire clip at it, the creature did'nt even flinch. It's giant tail hit poor Cat, sending it towards a wall where it limped away. Bringing up antoher clip into his gun, Weston looked at the Sweeper. It's giant mouth was open, and moving towards him. Not having enough time for the Rifle, Weston took out the SMG that he still had hostlered, and firied into the creatures mouth. 30 10mm rounds went right into it, and the Sweeper fell down dead. Getting behind his peice of cover, Weston reloaded and looked around the room.

Fireman0504

Stefanie stopped dead in her tracks as the came round the corner from one of the other rooms. "I thought I told you guys to-" her jaw dropped in horror. "You've gotta be fuckin' kiddin' me!" she yelled, turning back the way she came. She emerged seconds later wearing her Power Fist and armed with a particularly vicious-looking Combat Shotgun. She began firing off rounds indescriminately at a second beast that was squirming it's way through the elevator shaft doors. "No more houseguests," she said to herself between blasts. The buckshot tore huge chunks of flesh from the creature as it writhed. Between everyones gunfire, the creature was laying on the floor wriggling around. Stefanie climbed onto it's back and noted the wires and sensors leading into the back of the thing's head. She gave a pull and found them solidly attacheds. By this time the group was shouting as a third Sweeper was scuttling into the room. She quickly punched her hand through the beast's thick skull and ripped out the source of the cords. She pulled free a half-man-made, half organic fleshy mess of parts. The third Sweeper reared up and Stefanie rolled over and away, grabbing her Combat Shotgun and barely avoiding the claw that impaled the now dead second Sweeper. She rolled until she hit a wall before a large hand grabbed her collar and pulled her to safety.

KuHB1aM14:11, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Well," Dutch said, impaling a sweeper and pulling back Stefanie, "I could observe for you Weston, maybe kill some of them, but I'm not in the mood right now." Dutch said, twirling his katana in one hand and slicing off the head of the sweeper, blood spweing all over Riley. "Stefanie, I'm terribly sorry about your home. But these aren't Enclave. They're missing certain... devices on their collars." Dutch finished, spinning around to be pinned down by a sweeper who had just exited the elevator shaft. "Go fuck yourself!" Dutch said, spitting in it's face. Before the disgusting vermin could even register the spit, it was impaled with lances of gunfire, exploding all over the room. Wiping his face, Dutch gave the group the bird, then sat up, wiping off his bloodied jacket. "Dammit!" Dutch roared, then calmed down as the sweepers were easily dispatched as they came inside.

Radiation King14:35, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Dammitdammitdammitdammitdammitdammit..." And so on. Roland sprinted away down the corridor, not bothering to waste time with dealing with the sweepers. He was well gone before the first one was even killed, his trenchcoat flapping awkwardly. He had seen the Biosoldiers and knew how horrific they were, but seriously... Sweepers were amplifying his Austin-related PTSD by fifty times; the horrifying encounters he'd had with Enclave-controlled Sweepers there were bad enough. He wanted nothing more to do with these things, and he was determined to be gone by the time the next ones were down.

Domingo, however, was headed in the opposite direction. Pulling a random pair of weapons out of one of the ammunition crates in the boxes lining the corridor, and without bothering to check what kind of gun it was, or even if it was loaded, he tied down the knife he had salvaged and sprinted off in pursuit of the Sweeper. Along the way, he passed the retreating Roland and stopped him dead in his tracks by barricading the doorway with his girth. "Where are you going, camarada?" Domingo said quietly.

Roland scratched his foot on the floor. "Away from here. I was done with Sweepers in Austin, I never wanted to see another one. Unfortunately, I have. And I don't want to be here to find more."

Domingo punched Roland in the chest. "You're a pussy, Roland. Either stand here and be a coward, or join us in defending this home. I will not wait for you." And with that, Domingo was gone.

Roland stood, stunned, before he took off after Domingo.

Meanwhile, the Spaniard with the Skills (like that?) charged at one of the Sweepers, pulling out the gun he had stolen from Stefanie's storage boxes. He found, much to his surprise and dismay, that it was a Colt Single Action Army revolver, one that looked not entirely unlike it belonged on display in a museum. The chambers were empty as well, and there was no ammunition to be found. Growling a curse, DOmingo went after his knife- a Soviet SMERSH-5- and went right at the Sweeper who was coming down the elevator shaft. Diving forward into the shaft, straight through the enfilade his comrades had crudely set up on the elevator shaft, and caught a Sweeper with a vicious cross-cut from the SMERSH's wickedly sharp blade. He stabbed down into the beast's skull-plate, sinking the knife deep into its skull, only to be smashed in the ribs by its wildly flailing tail and be thrown back into the hallway as the dying Sweeper proceeded to freak the fuck out and spasm wildly before dying.

Roland lifted Domingo to his feet, looking worriedly at his fellow trader and friend. "Are you alright?"

"Flesh wound, camarada." Domingo said, feeling his ribs as he noted that at least two were minorly fractured. He coughed a bit and went to sulk and nurse his wounds behind a wall of crates. Roland held up his Grease Gun and started hosing the elevator shaft with fire from the .45ACP submachine gun, hoping that the next Sweeper to come down would be dissuaded by the pile of corpses and pain-inducing bullets currently shattering the Elevator's walls.


--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 15:00, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

"You know, how come we always have crazt stuff happen to US. I mean, can't another group of people have crazy half-anilaml aand half-machine people attack THEM?! I mean, were in a UNDERGROUND home for Chirsts sake!"

Hands shaking, Weston attemped to light a Cigar that he found a few weeks ago, but failing. Grumbling, he put it away. Looking for Cat, he found him hiding in what was once a cabinet. Coming out slowly from the cabinet, Cat wandred around for a bit. Weston looked to where Rolan was firing in the eleavotr shaft, problay sacring away what was chasing them.

KuHB1aM15:05, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I'll check for any remaining ones. Just don't get this goo shit on my jacket anymore." Dutch said, gripping his katana and moving towards the elevator shaft. Looking, Dutch motioned for Roland to calm down with the spraying, then moved into the broken elevator. Looking up, Dutch didn't see anything but darkness. Turning backtowards the crew, he signaled it was clear. However, a hidden Sweeper had lodged itself farely stealthily, and dropped down byheind Dutch, who remained oblivious.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 15:11, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

Westons eyes grew very, very, very wide in the fraction of a second. Pointing very slowly towards Dutch, Weston began muttering untellingble warnings. Walking backwards slowly, weston tripped on a chair and fell to the ground, butt first.

"DUTCH! RUN!" he finally got out. Luckily, it was right before the Sweeper decied to attack, and dutch dodged out of the way.

KuHB1aM15:17, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Not even bothering to register his enemy, Dutch rolled to the side as a massive claw swept past where his head had been. Bringing his katan to bear, Dutch barely had time to move into a combat position before he was thrown off of his feet by the claw once again, his white t-shirt and part of his jacket ripping apart and a gash appearing across his chest. "Fuck!" Dutch said, lying on his back as the sweeper slammed it's foot down on his chest, knocking the wind out of him and then bringing it's deadly tail upwards for a strike. Dutch was just doing every thing he could to keep it's head away from him. "Dammit, somebody shoot the thing!" Dutch said. However, he knew that impossible. With both of them so close, any attempt to fire would hit both of them. Then it hit him. "Riley, Jacob, somebody get the damn alien gun!" Holmes roared, still wrestling with the sweeper.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 15:26, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

Grabbing the Alien gun,. or, "the damn alien gun" as Dutch said, Weston took a quick look at it. It was like nothing he had ever seen before. Bringing it up to his shoulder, muttering something along the lines of "Don't Miss", Weston firied. The laser blade went striaght into the Sweeper, making it fly back and become pinned to the wall. Sadly, it was still alive, and was finshed off by Mr. Homles.

"Holy Shit! This gun is...is....out of this world!"

KuHB1aM15:38, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Breathing heavily, and holstering his M1911, Dutch grabbed his katana, sheathed it in it's unadorned scaabbard, then removed the trench knife next to the bullet hole in the sweeper's head. Tucking it into his combat boots, Dutch motioned for Weston to reload the gun and check the elevator. Looking around, Dutch noticed a smiliar situation with the rest of the group, Kicking over a dead sweeper and snapping it's neck to be sure, Dutch used it as a cushion to sit against, and began to nurse the gash on his chest, removing both his torn shirt and black jacket and applying bandages around his body to cover the wound.

Solbur16:20, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss took a deep breath before lifting Impact high over his head and charging at one of the strange beasts. The creature gave a sort of warped barking noise and brought up the hump on its back, like a wild(er) animal challenging a rival male over a mate. This didn't deter Strauss in the slightest. It batted a massive arm at him, which told him something about the creature's depth perception because he was still several metres away when it tried to attack him. Eventually, as he drew near, he sprang up into the air - his Power Armor's servomotors carrying him further than a normal human could leap, despite the weight of the suit - and, with something resembling a battlecry from the mouth of warriors old, brought the long-hafted hammer down on the creature's head.

He hit the ground in front of it in a crouching position and observed its reaction. It seemed to be dazed, both claws clamped over its head, which was, in turn moving from side to side as though it was trying to shake something off. Strauss laughed slightly and glanced over his shoulder to see how the others were doing. They were all having their own fights, doing fairly well. It was five seconds later that he noticed Worthington hovering beside him, staring in the direction of the Sweeper in what could be described as the robotic equivilent of abject horror. He looked at what Worth was so concerned about and almost dropped his Super Sledge.

The creature had recovered fully. No long-term injuries, no concussion, whiplash, brain damage, nothing. The most powerful weapon in his arsenal had done nothing to it. Impact was useless against it. To make things worse, it was staring back at him. It had its head tilted to one side quizically. If he could read the facial expressions of freaky mutant animals, he'd guess that it was trying to say "And your point is?" He could vaguely see its tail moving in his peripheral vision. But still, he couldn't get over the surprise just yet.

"Aww, you gotta be fuckin' kiddin' me--"

The tail lanced forward, punching clean through his armour's chestplate. He felt a sharp pain in his torso which told him that it had gone deeper. He was just getting to grips with the situation when he felt his body lifting several feet off the ground, and then, with a jerk of the sharp appendage, found himself flying into a wall.

Twentyfists16:21, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// He's coming in the RP, but I'm not gonna bring him near you guys yet.

Hennard shook himself. Scum-man boomstick try hurt Hennard. HENNARD MAD! HENNARD KILL! Inside Hennard's head, the kill switch went off. Hennard opened his mouth and began to speak. "Scum-man bad. Hennard kill. Kill man. No run. Just DIE!" Hennard swung George off its back and the weapon's barrels spun. Scum-man scared. Scum-man try run. No run quick. Run slow. George roar, kill scum-man. Scum-man turn into pretty colors.

Hennard closed the distance to the brutally mangled corpse of the unfortunate waster. Scum-man smell...nice. Scum-man look tasty. Be tasty? Hennard taste. Taste good. Hennard eat scum-man, he very tasty. Hennard no hungry. Hennard see tin-man. Tin-man bad. George kill tin-man. No more tin-man. Just pretty colors.

KuHB1aM16:26, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Jesus it's is the abomidable snowman

Dutch cocked his head sideways as Connor Straus slammed into a wall. Apparently, there were still sweepers afoot. Drawing his M1911 and clutching his chest, Dutch moved to slap him on the back of the head and get him slightly aware of himself. "They're insensitive to your hammer. I don't know why, but they are. However, they don't like bullets,as you can tell." Dutch said, placing his M1911 in weaponless Connor's hand. "I want that back at the end of this." Dutch said, then drew his katan and engaged the sweeper, blocking it's tailstrikes with his sword while still coughing from his wound's weakness.

Radiation King16:32, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Why does that remind me of Doc Ock from Spider-man, Solbur?

Domingo looked over just in time to see Strauss go flying past his head. A terrified Roland also looked in that direction, his eyes totally phased out, his face stony and expressionless. Holding the heavy, poorly-balanced Grease Gun in one hand, he vented the contents of the magazine into a Sweeper near the one that had stabbed Strauss in the chest. The beast roared, turned on Roland and took a mighty swipe with its right claw. Instinctively, Roland brought up his left arm and grappled the hand, crushing down so hard that the claw literally shattered in his gip. Pulling back hard, Roland snapped the beast's arm clean off its body, blood and gibs spewing across his chest. Tossing the arm to the side, Roland proceeded to brazenly march right up to the beast, stick the muzzle of the Grease Gun right into its half-open maw and empty the contents of his clip's remains into its mouth. Flesh and blood erupted from inside the beast's head and mouth, spewing more gore across the front of Roland's clothing. Blinking as the beast finally collapsed, dead, Roland doubled over and puked on the floor in front of the sweeper.

Meanwhile, Domingo quickly got to work with his toolkit, removing the breastplate of Conor's power armor and assessing the damage. "Senor, what hurts?" Domingo asked- a logical but entirely stupid question. Rephrasing it, Domingo asked, "What hurts the worst? We need a medic over here!" He shouted, waving as he sprinted off after his SMERSH-5, still loyally embedded in a dead Sweeper's forehead. With a sickening slurp, Domingo pulled out the goo-covered knife and looked at the dirty blade. Sighing, he flicked the excess gore off of the blade and wiped it on his pantleg.

Solbur16:39, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Because it's really similar, now that I've read it again. Huh.

Strauss searched through his small bag for a Stimpak, but there was no sign of one. He sighed heavily as he noticed that it was still bleeding quite profusely, and then reached out to put his hand over the wound to stop it. However, before he'd reach it, he found that another hand had been clamped over it and yet another was whacking him round the back of his helmetless head. He stared up at the man who'd delivered the strike. Dutch Holmes. He allowed his hand to fall limply back to the ground and then, seeing Dutch's mouth move a few times but not hearing a thing, felt something being put into it. He looked down, curiously. A pistol. He'd left his D'Eagle on a table. This might come in handy. As he struggled to his feet, he began to hear things clearly again.

However, he still couldn't get back up, for some reason. Maybe his body was just being an asshole and didn't want to. He gave up all efforts as he saw Domingo run over to him and get to work with his toolkit. "If you... mess up my... my armour, then... I'mm fff-fuckin' kill ya..." He mumbled weakly. This apparently did not faze or reach Domingo, as he continued, and then queried him on his wounds. "My... chest... big fucker stabbed me..."

KuHB1aM16:45, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch matched the sweeper's tail strike for strike, whirling his katana with precision and skill. However, his weakness from his chest gash was getting the best of him. Bringing up the sword to block another strike, Dutch raised both eyebrows as the monster, instead of moving it's tail again, charged him, tackling him and biting at his face. "Fuck it! ot again!" Dutch roared, searching for a weapon. Grasping his holster, he realized he had given his pistol to Connor. Searching for something else, he came across his katana. However, he still had to bring back both hands again to stop the tail as it came down for his face. "Fuck! Dammit, somebody shoot the thing!"

Solbur16:49, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss abruptly shoved Domingo away and lifted the M1911 he'd been given, taking a careful aim on the Sweeper's head. He wasn't about to just deprive Dutch of a weapon and suddenly become useless in a fight. That would be a rarely half-assed way of expressing gratitude. With that, he emptied as many bullets as he could into the creature's head (when he did, in reality, hit its shoulders, neck and chest as well due to an unsteady hand) until the gun started to click in protest. He allowed it to slip from his grip and sighed, throwing his head back and peering at the ceiling.

//--TehK17:47, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// These things are tuff. And also, it seems some of you are mistaking Sweepers for Biosolders.. read the pages lol.

Riley watched as Weston fired the Alien blade launcher, "1 hour and 30 minutes is the cool-down time for that gun it seems," he yelled out to Weston as he kept pulling the trigger for it. Riley pulled up his Tri-Beam and rolled, dodging a tail strike that would have sliced his head clean off. (I don't know how Riley would win this, Samantha even needed help!) He shot the thing at the Sweeper and one of the lasers hit it's eye, it screeched in pain while Riley continued shooting in the same place. Then, it sent its tail flying at Riley which sent him flying down the hall next to Strauss. Riley aimed his Tri-Beam and shot it one last time and it screeched and died. Riley took out a stimpak and gave it to Strauss, and then grabbed a sword off the floor and stabbed the Sweeper that had Dutch pinned several times, before it loosened its grip and Dutch shot it in the face.

Vegas adict17:51, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis recoiled in horror at the sight of the sweepers."sweet mother of god"he cried Another sweeper apeaderd forom nowhere and started heading towards struass.Drawing his .44 magnum started to unload the magasine into the mutated thing.The gun clacked in protest as he finished the magazine.The sweeper contineued to moved towards strauss.No way in hell was he letting a sweeper finish of one of his only friends.He called out to dutch."Now would be a good time Mr.Enclave!"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:37, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Fuck this!"

Picking uop a nail board lying around, Weston cocked it back like a baseball player about to hit the ball. Instead of standing still though, he was running. Swinging the board towards the nearst Sweeper, which Alexis just finshed unloadeding on, and hit it in the face. Being knocked back a little, Weston kept hitting the Sweeper. To almost no avial, the Sweeper knocked Weston backwards sending him flying towards a wall. Hittingh it with a rather loud thud, Weston sutmbled back up. Charging back into the fray, he contuined the assualt with the bloody Nail Board. This time, he got lucky. A Rusty nail went right into the Sweepers eye which was now howling in pain. Leaving the nail board imbeded, Weston grabbed a pistol that was on a table, but was now laying on the floor. Picking it up and working the slide, he aimed at the Sweeper.

7 .50 rounds into a Sweeper later, and one was dead. The noise itself was unpleasnt, to say the least. The recoil was worse. He had a bloody nose from trying to fire the gun one-handed, and his arm was like hell. Reloading a spare clip into it from another Desert Eagle lying around, Weston looked around. A paranoia set in rather quickly, in which Weston was going rom to room looking for a Sweeper.

//--TehK18:40, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// K all Sweepers are dead now!

Riley was looking for Sweepers, but couldn't hear or see them anymore. They were dead. "Nasty mutherfuckers," Riley said.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:42, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Coming out of a room, Weston had a look of utter exuhastion. Half-collasping into a chair, Weston turned to Rielt.

"Wheres Cat?"

//--TehK19:17, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Right before Riley could answer, Cat jumped out of a closet and jumped at Weston, knocking him over. "Right there," Riley said laughing.

Vegas adict19:18, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis colapsed onto an ammo crate.Why the hell did all manner of beasts and strange things find this place it was definetly time to leave.Before that though he wanted to restock and find out aabout those things.he turned to jacob and jackal."Two things,One what the hell were those things and two can we get out of here and raid the claws HQ before another freak of nature finds its way in".

KuHB1aM19:25, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch, reclaming his pistol and katana, stood up, rubbing his chest. Replacing his jacket and sunglasses on, he looked towards the man known as Alexis. "Those were Enclave Sweepers. Nasty little buggers. Even as a genetically modified super soldier, I can say that they have given me a run for my money before. It's not that they're tough to kill; it's just they have a long reach if you use melee techniques, and if you use bullets, be prepared to expend alot of them. Short version; they're fast little fuckers." Dutch said, grabbing his duffel and placing his alien rifle inside of it. Sitting back down on the sandbags, Dutch dropped his stuff in a pile except for his pistol, which he promptly reholstered and slid into place on his pantsleg. Grabbing the first of the dead sweepers, he grabbed it, pulling it into the elevator shaft. "Well, what you standing around for? Help me with the stuff. We can't just leave it in a lady's home like this correct? IOr mayeb you want to eat it for dinner?" Dutch said, grinning. That got the group moving.

Radiation King19:40, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roland dry-heaved a few more times, making sure to keep that old Grease Gun out of the way. The things were certified undestroybable, but still... He turned to Alexis.

"Sweepers were another Enclave project, built in much the same way as the Biosoldiers. Guy falls into an FEV pit, followed by a few assorted animals, out pops the first Sweeper. They mostly have some kind of mind control device on 'em, but it looks like the ones here don't. They're bloodthirsty, agressive, and have enough speed and strength to take down a deathclaw. We're just lucky we caught them in close quarters." Roland then dry-heaved again, and proceeded to head for one of the adjacent restrooms to wash his face and hands.

Meanwhile, Domingo was rifling through one of the assorted ammunition crates in the area, looking at that Single Action Army he'd found earlier. He'd taking a shining to the thing; despite the fact that he hadn't fired it once in his entire time holding it, the gold etchings, heavy ivory handle and simple-to-handle mechanism far outclassed the 10mm SMG he was fond of carrying, and his .32 pistol paled in comparison to the raw stopping power of the SAA. Eventually, he found what he was looking for: a box of .45 Colt rounds. The gun was finally ready to shoot, and Domingo smiled at that thought.

He looked over at Dutch, and his smile widened. "I've eaten worse, camarada," Domingo chided, "But regardless, we'll get these things moved out. Let's go."

Vegas adict20:03, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"lets".Alexis heaved a sweeper onto his back the smell was awfull.Somthing was wrong with what dutch said though,Something about the sweepers,There it was a minor detail but important nonetheless."Your part of the enclave why would sweepers atack you?".

Solbur20:05, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Vegas, you do realise that Sweepers are fucking massive? Alexis would be crushed.
//--TehK20:08, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// And, Dutch and Roland JUST mentioned that the Sweepers need a mind control device to work with the Enclave.
Radiation King20:12, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo was apparently the only person that noticed the sheer size of the Sweepers, and the fact that they were heavier than fuck-balls. "Roland!" Domingo shouted, and soon an ashen-faced Roland stumbled out of a nearby lavatory, his hands drenched in water. Domingo pointed to the nearest Sweeper corpse, then towards the elevator. Roland nodded. Getting a grip on its back legs, and Domingo on the front leg (realize, this one was the one that Roland ripped its arm from), Roland and Domingo moved the Sweeper over to the Elevator. Sighing and grunting as they heaved the beast into the bullet-riddled steel cage, the two men moved off after another corpse, wiping the blood and gibs off on their pants.

"What are these things made of?" Domingo wondered aloud as he lifted up the front claws of the next Sweeper with Roland lifting from the back. "From the smell of it," Roland observed, "Shit and steel." The twosome laughed as they heaved the second Sweeper into the elevator.

//--TehK20:20, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Fast forwarding to all of us outside the place.

Once the whole group was outside with the Sweeper corpses, Riley said, "Soo, we're heading to the Claws HQ now right?" to which Jackal replied yes, "Good, lets just hope that it wasn't burned down yet,"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 20:31, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

Weston checked to see what he had left of lighter fuel. It was running out, but he still had half of it left. Getting fuel for it was'nt the problem. It was the problem of finding another one. So, Weston checked his matches. One left.

"Ok, whats plan? We going to cover it with something that goes boom when flame hit it, throw down a match, then run away? "

Vegas adict20:35, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis knew that the defencaces that the claws had put up would stop any old waster from atacking it but the lot of them and OL Elso should be able to overcome them."It wouldn't have burnt down yet the shit that asehole bren put up is good at stoping minor scum like raiders.But give me a pulse grenade and a pip-boy and i can shut down most of the robotics around the place and the rest of you should have an easy time finishing the site off"

Solbur20:38, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Hey, Lexi-boy, you try that and you lose both kneecaps." Strauss said as he pointed his D'Eagle, which he'd recovered from a table after giving Holmes his M1911 back at Alexis' leg. His face then split into a grin and he lowered the weapon. "Nah, I'm just shittin' ya. But seriously, don't. You guys stay clear and me and Riley, who're currently registered as friendly on the turrets' targetting systems, can head inside and deactivate it from the central control terminal. All those turrets and the three Sentries are mine, by the way."

Twentyfists20:50, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Should I join as Vladimir? I can't really be Hennard if he's not attacking you guys...
Vegas adict20:53, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Can't see why not

Well.well struass had grown up a lot scince alexis first saw him.He owned 3 sentry bots and a turet grid.Still his plan was a lot less risky than Alexis's which relied on the pulse grenade and bots being of a similar type."Sounds good to me strauss can i buy one of those bots of you anyway?"

Radiation King21:15, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Fine by me, it'll be good to see Vlad again after Nuke.

Domingo raiseed his hand. "Jackal built a Thermal Lance earlier, if he can help me attach it to the top of El Oso, we can use it as a mounted platform to light the Mart on fire." The merc and arms dealer looked at the trailer attached to El Oso, he could see a plan unfolding already. If they built the thermal lance into the top of the tank, cut a hole into the top where the former turret was and welded the Lance down on some sort of frame, hypothetically it could be used as a forward-facing weapon. Just build a teepee-like structure over it, and you would have a land-based ironclad ship with a laaser chaingun and a welding torch that could be used like a flamethrower. With the .30-caliber Weston had found earlier, El Oso could be turned into a rattling death dealer.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 21:33, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

"Uhhh, that reminds me...we have to see a old friend of mine...anybody know Marshall Rascón? He has the .30 Cal gun. I need to get it from him if you want the gun on your tank...but that's going to come at a cost...something akin to a favor..."

Run4urLife!22:20, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// A Thermal lance is NOT a flamethrower. Not by any stretch of the imagination

"How about me not killing him?" Jacob said as he leaned on the side of El Oso in the rising sun. He had been slightly annoyed that no one had noticed him kill the sweeper in the room with the funny chair using nothing but a fire extinguisher and a hacksaw. But then, he was glad no one had noticed at the same time, because that was a foam fire extinguisher, and Jacob did not look good coated in off-white foam. He was subtly checking any of his weapons for any traces of foam, because if those bubbles started to cavitate the surfaces, well, Jacob wasn't one to find the possibility of a large caliber pistol exploding in his hands appealing. He flexed his fingers. He'd heard the name before. He was some form of arms dealer, this Rascón guy. Not the type Jacob really meshed with.

--Cerebral plague22:40, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// I missed the Sweepers! I was going to have Jack cut ones head off and wear it like a hat!

Jack reloaded his Chinese assault rifle. Cutting out the sweepers head, he finally made a hat out of it's scull. Donning the hat, he started to whistle. "Marshall Rascon is a arms dealer that thinks he's top dog. Over priced, over cocky. Hires some of the worst guards in the wasteland too, they let nearly anyone in."

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 22:55, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

"May be so, but, he has the machine gun we want, and we need to help him out to get it. And Jacob...you scare me, you know that?"

Weston was slamming a new clip home with his Assualt rifle, before doing the same with his 10MM SMG. Weston looked at El Oso itself. Ginat hulk of a beat. He'd have to ask Domingo how he manges to keep it running. Too bad it is'nt really armed with the giant cannon. He would have been able to cause some REAL damge with that.

Run4urLife!23:00, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I scare a lot of people Weston. You're just another name on a very long list." Jacob muttered as he stepped away from El Oso and checked the iron sights on his D'Eagles and the scope on Mother's Woe. He looked around, and everyone seemed ready to get going. Except Stefanie. She seemed quite vexxed with them all after that little gunfight in her humble abode. Jacob nodded his sympathies to her and moved off in the direction Weston indicated. If he'd heard right about this Rascón guy, he'd have to wait outside to avoid shooting the Raider supplier.

Jackal muttered. He didn't seem to scare anyone but small children and people he surprised. Fucking Ghoulishness.

//--TehK23:01, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Finaaalllyyy!!" Riley said, "Finished my laser shotgun stuff," He then fired his Tri-Beam Laser Rifle and it fired 4 shots, "Added a fourth lense, but eats up only 3 MCs."

Twentyfists23:16, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// Before Jacob and Holmes recognize Vladimir, know that his head was shaved after the last time they saw him.

It was not a good day for the Dead-Dog raider gang. They thought this would be easy, taking out a lone guy in the wastes. Now two of their number were dead, and this bald fucker had no intention of stopping.

Jethro rushed the man, hoping to get him with his pool cue. That bald nutcase took no time in whipping his weird knife across Jethro's neck, spilling his blood everywhere. Sander pulled his pistol on the man, but, before he could fire, the man had wrapped his ball-and-chain thing around Sander's waist, pulled him in with a quick wrench, and stabbed straight through his head. That was it for Ebon, the remaining Raider. He turned tail and ran. Before he had taken two steps, a heavy weight crashed into his legs, knocking him down. Ebon turned over, his normally-red face now snow-white with terror. He raised his hand and implored Baldy, "Please! Show mercy!"

The bald man spat in his face before responding. "Mercy? To scum like you? Hardly likely." And, with that, he swung his ball-and-chain. The last thing Ebon ever saw was that massive steel orb swinging towards his face.

Vladimir Sechin cleaned the blood off his tanto and meteor hammer. He always hated Raiders. Stupid little shits. He put his weapons away and kept walking, scouting out the area. He'd already spoken to Sentinel Akerson, who'd told him, basically, that the Claws were bat-fuck insane. Vladimir figured as much from what he'd seen of Bren Tenkage.

He was walking when he saw a group of people around a tank near an old building of some sort. That was odd. One normally didn't see tanks up north. Vladimir decided to investigate. Walking up to them, he greeted them. "What's up with the tank? I don't normally see them around. Name's Josef Kowalski, by the way. Waste wanderer," he said, drawing that last bit from Silas. Still, he made sure to hide his meteor hammer. That'd blow his cover big time, or at least make for some awkward questions.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 23:28, 16 May 2009 (UTC)

Weston looked at the new comer, then back to the tank.

"Uhh...were going deer huntinmg. Piss off buddy."

Weston went back to reading a book he had pulled out of his back-pack. It was something about a island and some treasure on it. A rather good book, conserding he had no clue if it was fiction or non-fiction.

//--TehK23:48, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// I hate it when Warrior Weapons lie. Cause then I can't tell everybody your real name!
Twentyfists23:52, 16 May 2009 (UTC)// You'll probably find it out from Dutch or Jacob, though.

Vladimir laughed. "You do realize that deer are commonly found up north, not in this general area, right? And, to get there, you have to haul ass with that tank through hilly terrain. And you're hunting deer that now travel in packs, eat meat, and are roughly as big and mean as a Yao Guai. Oh, by the way, they're called Anterks now, and eating their meat is a bad idea, since it usually is covered in disease. Just saying."

Vladimir had no time for these locals to be asses to him, especially when the AWA was getting ready to march down and liberate all of them from their torment. He didn't let it bother him, though. They'd be thanking him before the day was done.

KuHB1aM23:55, 16 May 2009 (UTC) 

Kicking out the last of the dead sweepers, Dutch turned towards Alexis. “These things are missing Enclave devices on their heads. If they still had them, they wouldn’t have attacked me, and I could’ve stopped them without trashing the place. Regardless, I’d still have to kill them.” Dutch finished, and was the last to get to the tank, where Weston was talking some trash to a waster. “Deer hunting. Piss off.” Weston said, drawing his weapon. Dutch, fixing his jacket and shades, grabbed his duffel from the ground, and promptly approached the random waster. “Look Baldy, why don’t you take a hike before me, Jacob, and the rest of these ‘locals’ go and kick your damned righteous ass, ok?” Dutch said, his hands on pistol and katana. Then he realized it. Fucking Vlad. The eyes were unmistakable. "Fuckin Vlad."

Twentyfists00:01, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Vladimir didn't flinch, even though questions tumbled around in his head. How the fuck did he know my name? I've never met Glasses here before in my life. "I'm sorry?" Vladimir said. "You must have me confused with someone else. The name's Josef Kowalski. I'm just poking around here in D.C., seeing what there is to see. I just came from up north, and I wanted to see what the D.C. area was like." In spite of the easygoing attitude he had affected, Vladimir mentally checked that both pistols were in easy reach, as well as his tanto and meteor hammer.


--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 00:03, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"Wait dutch. You KNOW this guy? Man, this day just keeps on getting werider and werider."

Weston put away his gun, but he had gotten off the tank, asnd was now leaning on it. If the worst came to worst, dutch could problay win the fight. Provided if this realy is just a normal waster.

//--TehK00:05, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Nah, if Dutch knows this guy it isn't a normal waster, Weston." Riley said to Weston. Riley then went around to the back of the tank and began shooting random stuff with his Quad Beam Laser Rifle.

KuHB1aM00:08, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

“Hell yeah, I know this guy. Baldy here made me go blind way back in the late 40’s. He’s an asshole, and I should kill him for deserting. Thing is, I’m past that. Unless he stays. If he’s stays, I’m gonna rip him a new one in the form of two assholes and a third mouth with my katana here.” Dutch said, gritting his teeth. He hated Vlad. “You’re not fooling anyone, Vlad. Especially not me. Jacob ring a bell? He’s right downstairs, and I ain’t sure if he wants to see you so eagerly.”

Twentyfists00:12, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"The 40's?" Vladimir was incredulous. "In the 40s, I was a little kid growing up in Railyard, up in Baltimore. I don't know you. I did know a guy named Jacob while I was in Baltimore, but he died, so it can't be him." Vladimir was getting more and more confused. Dutch? Jacob? He was willing to bet that there were a few AWA soldiers named Jacob, but it was unlikely that they knew him by name. And if they did, they wouldn't blow his cover. Any AWA soldier knew to nod to whatever a Paragon said, and generally stay out of their way. What the hell was this asshole going on about?

//--TehK00:14, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Memory Grafts FTL!
Twentyfists00:16, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// That's not part of his memory grafts. It's part of his cover.
KuHB1aM00:16, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch pulled out his Enclave insignia, shoving it in the man’s face. “This ring a bell, asshole?” Dutch said. There was only one way to prove it. Any warrior weapon could counter another. “Well, that work---?” Dutch didn’t even finished the sentence, drawing his katana and moving it at lightning speed for Vlad’s head. He promptly blocked it, grasping the blade carefully with both hands on either side. Dutch relaxed the stroke, sheathing the katana. He turned towards the group. “Wha’d I tell ya, eh? He’s a WW, assholes!” Dutch said, grabbing his duffel and sitting down, removing some whiskey.

//--TehK00:20, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley nudged Weston, "I told ya' so," he said.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 00:23, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"All right, how many Warrior Weapons are there? Theres you, Jacob, and this guy. How many more pyscho killers are roaming around killing everybody with frontflip hatchet attazcks?"

Twentyfists00:27, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Doesn't Dutch know about the memory grafts? Also, that block wouldn't work to stop the blade. Editing...

Vladimir still stood. He was genuinely puzzled. He'd recognized the Enclave insignia, but what the hell was a Warrior Weapon? "Care to clarify?" Vladimir said. Dutch would shot him a look that would have slain him outright, were it not for the fact that Dutch was wearing glasses. "A Warrior Weapon? What the hell are you talking about? Regardless of what you are lead to believe, I have no idea what you mean, and I certainly don't know you. If it's some local thing, I seriously got here about two days ago."

//--TehK00:31, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I can't break open his head, he has to be a Warrior Weapon.. if not, lets just kill him," Riley whispered to Dutch, and Riley then took out his Quad-Beam and started shining it. Cat then came out and ate the bowl of Pork n' Beans that was in the tanks trailer.

KuHB1aM00:34, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// I thought it was his cover. Dutch's grafts have failed since then.

“Think about us as a big family of classmates.” Dutch said, drinking the whiskey. “Me, Jacob, “Mr. I’m not Vlad” over there, and a few others are considered living examples of the best of our classmates. There were hundreds of us. Since I’m still Enclave, I happen to know that there are still a few running around from the first generation with their memory grafts. John Hale, for instance. The fool.” Dutch said. He turned towards Riley. "No, I'm not going to kill him." Dutch eyed Vlad. Maybe the bastard still did have his grafts.

Twentyfists00:40, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Classmates...hundreds of us." Vladimir stood, thinking. He still had nothing, unless it was some new term for basic training that Vladimir hadn't heard about. "Nope, doesn't ring a bell. Now, I will admit that my name is Vladimir. That was either a very good guess on your part, or I'm more recognizable than I think. I suppose there's really no point in lying now." This was an ironic statement on Vladimir's part, as the next thing he did was lie. "I'm on the run from the American Wasteland Army from up north. I deserted after being faced with a charge of treason that I didn't commit, and I guess there's a bounty on my head or something."

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 00:42, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"American Wasteland Army? WHATS NEXT? THE NUKE IN MEGATON WILL GO OFF? WORLD PEACE?!"

KuHB1aM00:53, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// So Vlad still has his grafts?

Dutch sighed, this time removing a beer and tossing one to Vlad. “You, buddy, are an asshole if you think the AWA can touch this motley crew of psychopaths. Being Enclave, I know better. We’ve got more combat experience than the whole damned Last Legion.” Dutch said, playing along. If Vlad still had his grafts, he was more dangerous than if he had got rid of them. Dutch didn’t buy this one bit. But his friends did. Dutch had been keeping tabs on every WW, at the behest of his de facto father, Raikov. Vlad had become an AWA plaything, fighting all over the North American continent. Unless, since Dutch had last visited Cali, Vlad had managed to screw that up. Or maybe he was tricking him. Either way, Dutch had beaten the crap outta Vlad before, and vice versa. If Vlad tried anything, he was screwed.

Twentyfists01:18, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Vladimir still has his memory grafts, yes.

Vladimir sat down, beer in hand. He took a drink before responding. "Now, the Enclave. That's a group I recognize the name of. I would imagine they have a lot of experience. I hear they're very skilled soldiers. However, those AWA guys have got some numbers, and, from what I could see of their vehicles, they're not to be messed with." Vladimir spoke from firsthand knowledge on both parts. He knew how the Enclave fought, but he also knew how deadly a Behemoth could be under the right conditions. This Holmes guy had no idea. Or maybe he did. Vladimir saw that sword strike. Anyone who could fight like that was not to be messed with.

Run4urLife!10:56, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Jacob was standing there the whole time, not downstairs!

Jacob sighed. He hadn't seen Vlad since he was an eggheaded little fourteen year old. Vlad had ben quite a bit younger. That live-fire excercize where he'd blinded Dutch, to be exact. Jacob was not entirely pleased with the reunion. This little group had now become one of the most dangerous little wandering warbands in the Capitol Wastes, which didn't help with the problems they already had of blending in. If not the most dangerous. He had an incling that with himself, Dutch, Vlad and Jack here, not to mention Strauss, Stefanie and Riley, they may be able to storm Fort Bannister and kill that bloody Talon Company Commander.

"Well, Vlad, if we're going to be working together, stay on my good side. That means staying outside of a five foot radius. Warrior Weapons that invade that little bubble tend to die." Jacob said, indicating that everyone should get a move on. He wanted this deal with Rascón to be over as soon as possible.

Vegas adict11:12, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis was quite scared by the fact that there group now looked like it was one of the most powerful in the wastes.Having two enclave Psycho's and a tank was hard to hide,three enclave psychos and a tank would be even harder.Still there was safty in numbers especaily with the last legion runing around like mad."so weston where can we find Rascon"

KuHB1aM12:13, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch sighed, ruffling his hand through his hair. “We better hurry this up. Those Last Legion bastards, Mr. Jacob, will have us on their A-List once they’ve dealt with the Loyalists. I suggest we lock up, find us a suitable building for a little pre-emptive planning, perhaps even a temporary HQ, destroy the Super Duper Mart, execute Bren Tenkage, whom I have a bounty on for not completing an Enclave contract, and then get the arms dealer to come to us. As personal experience suggested with disrupting C&W Cartel operations by interacting with them, I highly suggest he come to us.” Dutch said, polishing his pistol and sword. Replacing them in holster and scabbard, he then began the process of disassembling the Alien Rifle, tossing half of the components in a small bag of Jacob. “Just in case.” Dutch said. He couldn’t risk that weapon getting lost into anyone’s elses hands he couldn’t trust except the Enclave’s, which would be his ultimate goal. But he could get the weapon there another time. Right now, his current orders were still at “Destroy Crusade”, so he was technically still on duty. He could bring the rifle back another time.

Radiation King12:20, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Rascon?" Domingo rumbled, looking over at Weston as Vlad arrived in the area. He sighed. First a legend of the wastes, then a blind Enclave spy, and now a guy who was obviously flying on Jet while rambling about deer hunting. Maybe he should've just ditched the group and headed to Megaton. The idea was sounding better by the second.

"I hate Rascon," Domingo said aloud, looking straight at Weston. "Last time I attempted to broker an arms deal with that man he sent a squad of Talon Company mercs after me and tried to kill me when he found out I was supplying the Temple of the Union for a raid on Paradise Falls." He spat on the ground, then finally started into another cigar- having lost his second one in the scuffle below, in Stefanie's house. "Any man that is willing to kill to keep his business with evildoers afloat isn't worth my time. Besides, we don't want to lose our advantage of a night-time approach on the Claws Headquarters."

KuHB1aM12:39, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Dutch is getting a wee bit drunk here.

“Buddy, hic, I could fucking storm that, hic, place by myself even if fucking Tenkage had a whole, hic, company of fucking, hic, brotherhood, hic, fuckers backing him up. In other words, me, hic, and Jacob are more, hic, than enough, hic, to take him. In fact, I don’t even think we, hic, need Rascon… in fact, maybe I should, hic, just go kill him and, hic, return with his, hic, head.” Dutch said, grinning. Taking his pistol and twirling it In his finger, he aimed past Stefanie’s head and fired, killing the mole rat behind her. Not even bothering to look in her general direction, he holstered the weapon, all the while Stefanie cursing and rubbing her ear. Taking another swig of beer, Dutch dropped the bottle, grabbed another beer from their makeshift table, and downed it, woozily dropping onto an old lawn chair.

Radiation King12:45, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// I don't mean to drag something from other threads in here, but when are you going to post in Nuke?

"Dutch, if anyone is killing Rascon tonight, it's going to be me." Domingo settled onto the top of El Oso, his feet half-dangling in the cockpit entrance. He took another drag from his cigar, looking out over the wasteland. The lights of Rivet City glowed very softly in the distance, and a few pilllars of smoke rose from the ruins, either raider camps, super mutant fortresses or a few wastelanders setting out to strike a new settlement on their own. In a strange way, it was beautiful. If you really tilted your head and squinted, that is, and your imagination was more bright and colorful than several rainbows.


--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 13:30, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

(Gosh, sio many enimes...must...be...friendly...when...they...meet)

"Wait, why do we need the night? No one is at the Claws HQ, right? We can just burst through the wall, so to speak, and blow the place up!"

Weston was sitting near the tanks cock-pit, but was more leaning agiasnt it. There was a slight problem thnough. If Weston worked for this man most thought here was evil...what does that make them in his eyes? Jacob has to stand outside the door of Marshall subway office just so then he does'nt go crazy and kill everyone.

Twentyfists14:11, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Vladimir laughed to what Jacob had said. "Don't worry, 'Jacob'. I'm not sure what the hell a Warrior Weapon is, and I've never met you before, but I get what you mean. I'll stay the fuck away from you."

Inside, though, Vladimir was full of questions. These people wanted to kill Bren? Why? He seemed like a nice enough kid. And why did they want to destroy his headquarters? Didn't Bren say he was working for the good of the wastes? If so, why did they want to kill him? Vladimir put this information in the back of his head for later use. The AWA had been duped by that Ghoul shitbird, and now they would have to pay the price. Vladimir was ready to march right up to Stalwart and lead an AWA force down here and destroy everything related to the Claws. Of course, High Elder Tucker wouldn't approve. He'd made a deal with Bren. Once Bren died, though...

Run4urLife!14:26, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob smiled his crooked, somewhat animalistic smile. It seemed Vlad understood him. Of course, Jacob wasn't making any moves to kill Holmes either. Of course, Holmes had proven his worth before. He was a useful ally if nothing else, and apparently his memory grafts had come undone. Vlad, now he was different. Fully intact memory grafts. If he'd abandoned the Enclave, well, he couldn't be all bad, now could he? Of course, from their own twisted point of view, the Enclave were doing good as wel, protecting their vision of America, full of pure humans and butterflies and chcolate rivers or whatever.

Just like Bren had been trying to build up his own conceited little vision, full of Ghouls and Super Mutants. But then, Bren had got turned around somewhere along the way. He thought that because he was willing to set aside a persons actions for no reason, he was better than everyone else. He said that he'd take anyone in. Regardless of what they had done. He was a moron child who didn't realise that actions didn't build character, they revealed it.

"Lets get a move on folks, the days only starting." Jacob called to them as he moved off towards where Rascón would be found. According to Weston anyway.

Radiation King14:45, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I'm with you, Jacob." Roland took off after Jacob on fot as Domingo slipped into the cockpit of El Oso and started up the engine, which roared to life in a positively terrifying manner, its exhaust grates belching black smoke and (possibly) a few tiny licks of flame before it moved forwards at a walking speed well below the top speed it had displayed previously.

Roland looked over at Jacob. "So," he wondered aloud as he walked, "What's been going on while I've been out west? I missed a lot while I was helping the Outcasts with the Crusade. Protector Ranik says hello, by the way."

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 14:59, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

Dismounting the tank, Weston started to follow Roland and Jacob. Since Marshall knew him by face and Domingo would rather see him dead, he followe dthe group. well, followed and leaded the group to Marshall.

"Wait, you were with the Outcasts? Huh."

Radiation King15:06, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Yep." Roland said simply, looking over at Weston's sudden appearance next to him. "I worked with them at the Siege of Fairfax, just ask Jacob here. After that, I followed 'em west to Austin and stayed there for a while. Not pleasant. Then I tagged along with them to Califonria, then I came back here. Wasn't fun, but I felt I needed to reacquaint myself with my old friends."

He smiled a bit, a memory suddenly returning to him. "Also, before I found the guys in Austin," and here his smile expanded to almost fill his entire face, "I rescued the princess over here from the Enclave and the EMAA." He laughed a bit, jerking a thumb in Jacob's direction as he said 'princess. He evidently thought the half-joke was quite funny. His arms would probably end up broken for it, but still.

Run4urLife!15:11, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob smiled. Ranik and the Outcasts were still alive and well on the West Coast. Jacob scratched his chin. Should he ask about Sam, Ramsey, Carter, Jackson and Hughes first, or answer Roland, and then ask? He couldn't help but smile about that. He'd often thought about the Outcasts. His allies, his friends. His brothers and sisters in arms.

"A lot has happened. Not long after you went West, a Crusade suppression force began moving towards DC. Instead of trying to outmaneuvre them, and try to take them on piecemeal, a rat bastard little runt with an inflated ego called Bren Tenkage rallied some Wastelanders to his group, the Claws, and met the Crusade head-on. From that point on, things went downhill. He got the Brotherhood in on it, and so many more. When the Crusade dug their heels in, we thought they were getting ready to double-bluff us, but instead, they used a Fat Man OMEGA. The thing fired a reduced-yeild nuclear weapon, which levelled a good chunk of DC, that irradiated area near the irradiated metro station, along with a good quarter of their forces, and most of ours. After that, well, Bren had amputated his own leg after it got trapped by rubble, little Mr. Tenkage gathered the Claws to him, after getting a spangly new prosthetic leg, and he fucked off West too. He didn't have the backbone to finish a war he'd started, just because shit hadn't gone his way. He'd done some slaving in Baltimore, and took in a Raider Queen from New York, who has a habit of torturing people for no reason. So he's not in my good books, but after his war went haywire, well, he's a dead man. No two ways about it, if he's not dead already, he's dogmeat when I get my hands on him. After Bren fucked off, Holmes there suggested that I join a little thing called an Enclave Surgical Assault Unit. We infiltrated Jerusalem, with the others you see here, barring Domingo and Alexis, launching a fairly daring diversionary attack on the forces surrounding Jerusalem. We killed off Crusade HighCom except for Moore, but he'll get his in due time." Jacob said, a slight hint of anger in his voice, and murder in his eyes every time he mentioned Bren Tenkage. Well, actually, he spat the name out rather than mentioning it, but hey, that wasn't the point.

"Anyway, how're the Outcasts getting on? Any births, deaths or what?" Jacob added, cheering up somewhat. "And about that princess thing, if you hadn't been there to pull my ass outta the fire in Cali, you'd be talking through your armpits for that. And weren't you the one who had to be saved from the Enclave scouts in that gully?"

Radiation King15:25, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Oh, SNAP!

"Outcasts have been getting on fine; they were all still alive when I left. They all send their regards to their friends out west." Roland smiled a bit, thinking back to the small parting party they'd thrown; they'd all gone out, had a few drinks, said their goodbyes and then Roland had left for the East Coast again. Just as well; Roland wasn't one for emotional partings and he hadn't known the Outcasts for as long or as well as Jacob himself.

"Tenkage, huh?" Roland scratched his chin with the hand that wasn't holding his Grease Gun. "I've heard a lot about him... Didn't he used to be some pro-equality merc? He's been getting a lot of talk about him in the ports, and a lot of it sounds like yours... With more explitives and less death-threats, of course. Can't say I've ever met him, though. I've met what's left of the battles he's been in, though. Not too many survivors." Roland sighed. "Kid likes his collateral, I'll give him that.

He laughed out loud when he caught the talk about the gully and Jacob saving him. "Yeah, I guess I should give you credit for that, but those Black-Ops guys got the slip on me because I was tired and more than a little bit inebriated at the time. I handled myself pretty well in the next encounter with those Black-Ops guys, though, and remember: it was my ship that got you out of there, too. If I was feling ungenerous that day, I could've left you to Raikov and his goons, or that idiot Colonel Andrew, who I hear is still kicking around somewhere in the Wastes. Good thing we're friends, though."

--Cerebral plague15:30, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack was bored. He left the group right after he made his own little sweeper hat, and was walking towards the super Duper mart. Apparently Jack was one of the few guys who preferred having a night time advantage, and wanted first dibs on the loot. The tank was already a speck in the distance, and Jack was whistling a tune he heard on Three Dogs radio station. I don't want to set the world on fire, or something.

Solbur15:35, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Bad move.

Suddenly, a dozen turrets and three Sentry Bots were all training their weapons on Jack's forehead. "YOU ARE IN VIOLATION." The trio of robots rattled off in unison, the barrels of their gatling lasers beginning to rotate. "GIVE ADEQUATE IDENTIFICATION OR VACATE PREMESIS IMMEDIATELY IF CONTINUED EXISTANCE IS DESIRED." Apparently, night-time advantages didn't do shit for heat-seeking targetting systems.

Run4urLife!15:41, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Shoulda worn tinfoil
--Cerebral plague15:44, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Time to go Mary Sue Mode!

Jack took out his M79 grenade launcher, already loaded with the mini-mini-nuke. Less bang, more portable. Aiming, he shot at the three sentry bots, blowing them to smithereens. Jumping towards the cover of a near by tree, the spot where he stood a few moments ago was decimated by gunfire. He reloaded, and blind fired a grenade launcher (DON'T TRY THAT AT HOME} at the super duper mart. Looking again, there was five turrets left. Taking out his repeater, he aimed and fired at ones target co-ordination thingy, and watched as it went berserk. Firing at the near by turrets, there was soon only two left. Smiling to himself, he threw a pulse grenade, destroying what remained of the Super Duper Marts defenses.

Solbur15:49, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// You just blew up Strauss' propertah!
--Cerebral plague15:55, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// What's he going to do about? Who in their right mind messes with a guy with a M79 grenade launcher that fires mini-mini-nukes, a Super Modified Chinese assault rifle, and a poncho?
Solbur15:57, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Nothing. Except deny Jack lewt.
Radiation King16:02, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// More for Domingo "Chronically late to the action" Velasquez.

Domingo saw the sky blink slightly off in the distance, followed by the extremely soft (compared to the sound of El Oso,s well-over-400-year-old-engine) sound of gunfire. "Dammit!" Domingo shouted, pressing the throttle lever as far forward as it would go.

El Oso literally leapt forward, the gears and moving portions whining in protest as the old tank topped out at 35 miles per hour, covering the remaining ground between himself and the Super Duper mart in record time. He hauled the tank to a stop justas Jack finished the last of the HQ's mechanized defenses. "Jack!" Domingo popped his head out of the compartment where the cockpit was. "What the hell did you do?!"

Solbur16:06, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"...Oh no no no no no nononononononononononoNO!" Strauss yelled as he rushed towards the Super Duper Mart past Jack, shaking his head frantically in disbelief as he surveyed the damage. Those turrets were his! Those Sentry Bots had provided fire support at Jerusalem! And they were all gone! All gone! He slumped to his knees as he picked up the backplate of one of the Sentries. Inscribed on the blackened metal was "FRANK". He got back up and backpedalled as he realised he'd just collapsed in a heavily radiated area then threw the plate to the ground. "JACK! That was my fucking loot!"

--Cerebral plague16:09, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// This is just like star wars, instead of Hon shot first it's Jack shot first!

Yawning, Jack noticed Domigo's tank. "Blow up some robots, now excuse me as I go in there to loot anything not nailed down. Including the rum." Jack walked into a super duper mart, and walked into Dejans humble abode first. Expecting the most loot from him, Jack noticed something under his bed. Walking over, Jack found a spare sniper rifle under there, and some "Gentlemen magazines." "Domigo! Come check this out!"

Solbur16:12, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss scooped up his personal terminal and bedroll and clutched them both to his chest, muttering incoherent curses and threats to the name of Jack Damask. All his loot - no, not his loot, his fucking rightful PROPERTY - was forfeit thanks to that dickhead assassin in the dress. He paced up and down angrily, followed suite by a concerned Worthington who was quite unwilling to say anything.

--Cerebral plague16:16, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Wow, Strauss is a little girl. Is he going to cry because Jack blew up his robots?
Solbur16:17, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// No, he's just going to swear. A lot. Those robots were his bruddahs. AND HIS LOOT.
--Cerebral plague16:21, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// I would like to point out that Jack has never said his first name. Why would you know his last name?
Solbur16:22, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Well, um, let me think. *Jedi Mind Trick*
//--TehK16:23, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Jack, I told him your full name.

Riley grabbed his terminal and took it apart before taking out the harddrive and putting it in Cats bag. He then began to empty some of Brens Quantum everywhere, and put some boxes of Abraxos and Turpintine in the corner. He then left the Super Duper Mart and waited from Jack to light the string, "Ever seen a Nuka-Grenade explosion? Well, your about to see a pretty big one."

//--Radiation King16:26, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Maybe he'll drown you with his tears. Or those wicked spikes on his power armor's shoulder will end up inside Jacks' forehead.

Domingo looked out of the viewport in front of him and sighed in exasperation before shutting off El Oso, climbing out of the tip of the tank and walking over to Conor. "You alright, my friend?" He inquired easily, looking at the husks that were once robots. Much to his suprrise, one of the bots actually sparked slightly, then grumbled and shuddered as it attempted to crawl back to its feet... Rollers... Whatever. Smiling slightly, he pointed towards it.

"Look there, my friend. There is still one robot alive here. You can rebuild." With that, Domingo walked across what was left of the battlefield and into the Super Duper mart. He then walked over to Jack's position, shouting, "What, what is it" before noticing the handful of dirty magazines Jack was swinging around like they were the tablets the Ten Commandments were written on. "Oh, that." Domingo swiped one of the magazines and pocketed it, moving off to search some of the other dormitories. Ultimately his loot piles accumulated in around five assault rifles, an army's worth of communication technologies, a Browning M1919 light machine gun, a few laser rifles, a fw plasma rifles and a Gauss Rifle, along with eight boxes of .45 Colt ammunition for his SAA.

Solbur16:34, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss twitched. Rebuild? That? With what? He looked around the Super Duper Mart to see everything that Strauss could make any use of disappearing. The scrap metal was gone with the wind. Roland was helping himself to fission batteries - from the stockpile Strauss had collected for Worthington. The ammo, the spare Laser Rifles, the turps and the Abraxo. Everything useful was disappearing Even worse, Domingo had called dibs on the radio equipment he'd toiled for months to get into a state of operation to broadcast one, single, message. And to make that worse, Domingo had actually been the one to reply to that message! Gyaaaaaah! Tying a rope roughly onto the remaining Sentry Bot's damaged chassis, he began stuffing Worthington's storage compartment to the brim with whatever he could find.

Run4urLife!16:42, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob was merrily vandalizing the SDM. He had already broken the radio transponder and the emmiter array. Their radio frequency would forever more play Enclave Radio. Domingo had taken what was left of the radio. Jacob kicked another glass of Nuka Cola across the room, and then set up a small driving range. He set up a few pieces of now-priceless Nuka Cola merchandise and began belting them across the room with a baseball bat. Jackal was busy showing off his gunslinging skills by tossing things in the air and shooting them. Then Jacob heard Riley say something about a Nuka Grenade explosion. He signalled for Jackal to come along as he left. Jackal had taken what he wanted, the rifles Bren had taken from Jacob's Safehouse in New York. Jacob had retrieved the keys of the Safehouses he had given Bren. No way the little fuck was going to set up shop in one of those if he ever got back to DC.

Radiation King16:47, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Solbur, how would you feel if I could set up your radio equipment to make Claws Radio "go mobile"? The fission batteries Roland found (Worthington's stockpile) could be hooked to your radio equipment in El Oso's trailer with the antenna on top of El Oso itself? It's a brilliant idea. Conor could have his own little broadcasting station in the trailer; I could soundproof it and everything.

Domingo looked over at Roland and gestured for him to offload some of the fission batteries he was carrying, in total about twenty. Roland nodded, walking over to Conor and Worthington.

"Look," Roland said, voicing for both himself and the Latin mercenary heading for his tank with the radio equipment in tow, "I just wanna say sorry for stealing your fission batteries, so... Here." Parting ways with fifteen of the twenty fusion batteries, Roland took the remaining five with him to El Oso, where Domingo was already arranging the radio euipment in the trailer. "What're you doing?" Roland asked.

"I'm setting this up so I can run wires to the fission batteries you have in your hands right now. We're setting up Claws Radio Mobile in the trailer." Domingo looked at the radio set, which was currently stacked in one of the empty corners of the trailer, on a steel table that had been bolted to the floor. Looking at it nervously, he eventually nodded to himself, procuring a bottle of Wonderglue from one of the nearby boxes and gluing down all of Conor's radio equipment to the table. Wonderglue wasn't the strongest stuff, and Conor should be able to easily separate the radio eqipment from the table if he had to move it in a hurry, but for the most part (namely while the tank was in motion), it would stay in place. Climbing out of the back of the trailer carrying the antenna, transmitter and reciever the merc had mounted atop the main body of El Oso, Domingo then scrabbled, crablike, onto the roof of the trailer and used his pocket torch to slice through the roof. He set up the small portable antenna on the roof directly over the radio equipment, then gestured for Roland to toss up the loose wires that attached to the antenna. Roland tossed them up, and after a few seconds he had the small antenna attached to the top of the trailer. It wasn't a huge antenna, totalling maybe four feet in height, not counting the length that could be added from scavenging other radio antennae from the wreckage of the city, but it sholuld get good enough reception considering he was about to hook up a ludicrous five fission batteries to the set up.

After a few more minutes of tinkering, the radio equipment flickered to life. Domingo smiled.

"Conor!" The merc shouted. "Your radio system's all set!"

Solbur16:57, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Conor whooped, cheered and hugged Domingo. The Make-a-Wish Foundation worked after all!

(No, not really.)

"... What? What the fuck?" Strauss said, bewildered, as he approached the tank's trailer cautiously. "Why did you... I mean... uh... why did you glue all the stuff to the tank? I mean, it's not gonna be much good when it's moving about... um..." Then it dawned on him. "Oh!... Oh. Right. Wow! That's... awesome! Am I gonna have to live in the back of your tank now?" He asked sarcastically, smiling weakly as he mentally digested the situation as it occured, with an armful of fission batteries.


--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 17:04, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"Huh. I guess we all did win in the end, huh?"

Wesrton had manged to grab a box of Ammo for his Sub machine gun, and, a pair of combat armour...or at least prts of it that was left over from Jack's little fgun time with the Robots, and sometrhing that looked akin to a old motocycle helmt. Of course, ithe visor was missing. But, where the visior was once, there was a mesh of chickenwire. Carrying these outside, he placed them near the tank and went to work. Remvoing his jack, he attached the combat armours shoulder pads to it, and strached off the claws emeblem. He added a white W on each of them, then put some of the combat armours oplates on the outside ogf his ja cket. Putting his jacket back on, he took out some of the clips in his newly liberted ammo crate and sret it inside some slots within his Jacket. Finnaly, he put on the Helmt. Or tried to. It was too small of his head. Angrily taking it off, he kicked it back to the Claws HQ. Going back inside, he came out with a Telescope, and displayed it produly.

"Now, all i need to find is duct tape, a hunting rifle and BOOM! I hasve a sinper rifle!"

Radiation King17:22, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// El Oso's trailer is about the size of the truck trailer on any of the highways in Fallout 3, with the front portion cut off and walled in. Just for reference.

"If you want." Domingo said. "The stuff is only glued down, so you just need to lift off the table and knock the antenna off of the roof and you're set." He spat out the butt of the burnt-out cigar, landing it expertly under El Oso. "All of the nearby settlements are within walking distance, otherwise."

Twentyfists17:24, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Vladimir walked inside the Super Duper Mart. This shit-hole was where the Claws made their base? Vladimir was getting pissed already. He looked at the others. They were busy tearing apart the place. Vladimir decided to join in. He began rummaging through the ammo crates that no doubt once held the Claws' ammo. Vladimir began pulling out 5.56 and .44 ammunition. Bren wouldn't need it if Jacob got a hold of him, and one man's trash was another man's treasure. However, Vladimir had something else to do.

Making sure no one was watching, Vladimir sat down, took a nearby knife, and began scratching a message into the wall of Bren's quarters.

Bren Tenkage. When we first met, I thought that I would teach you a lesson on morals. After visiting D.C., I have discovered that you needed it more than I first thought. You have betrayed the trust of the people here, and they have had to pay dearly for it. You are no longer an ally of the AWA. I will honor the contract that you made with the High Elder, but, upon your death, the Claws are no longer part of the AWA. You have made a powerful enemy this day. Paragon Vladimir Sechin of the American Wasteland Army.

//--TehK17:26, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// This is AFTER the looting, and everybody is outside.

Riley took the last of Westons (or was it Jacks?) matches and light it. He threw it onto a string and then everybody began to run away as it slowly but surely went towards the Super-Duper Mart. The place then erupted with 5x the force of a Mini-Nuke and it glowed bright blue and red.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 17:30, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"Whoo! I love high-esplosives! We got to find another building to do that. And someone owes me a Box of Matches! Anyway, i saw we grab the .30 cal gun, then go upon our business. "

KuHB1aM17:39, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// I’ll get around to Nuke eventually, King. I’m busy right now.

Watching from a distance as the remains of the Super Duper Mart imploded in a fantastic array of beautiful colors, Dutch grabbed another beer, stared at it, and dropped it, not even bothering to drink it. “Hey You! Over there!” Someone called out. Standing up from his little perch where everyone had dropped off their stuff, Dutch swiveled around to meet six men, all clad in Crusade BRAs; however, their colors didn’t match the Crusade’s own. “We’re confiscating this stuff in the name of Colonel Nathaniel Roarke, of the Last Legion, Waster.” The lead soldier said, pointing his rifle at Dutch. Grabbing his beer again, and keeping his hand on his sword, he approached them as they moved forward. “I don’t think that would be a wise idea, mate.” Dutch said, still slightly drunk. The soldier laughed, moving and poking him in the chest. “I said we’re confiscating it, ‘’waster’’.” The soldier said. “I’m ain’t no fucking waster, Sergeant Dipshit, I’m Enclave!” Dutch said angrily, drawing his katana. Using one hand to smash the rifle from his hands, Dutch grabbed his throat, took his katana, lifted him up, and gutted him with a clean stab through the chest. Dropping him on his feet and flipping him around, Dutch used him as a body shield to impact the bullets from the remainder of the squad’s G36Cs. Poking his head from behind his organic cover, he chucked his beer bottle, nailing one of the soldiers in the head. “Who’s fucking confiscating this stuff now, eh?!” Dutch said, having no apparent disregard to the fact he was being shot at.

Twentyfists17:42, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Sorry about the short post.

Vladimir heard gunfire. He looked and saw that Dutch was missing. "Hey, anyone realize that Glasses is getting shot at, in all likelihood? Want to help me take care of it?" Before a response was given, Vladimir unstrapped his G3A3 off his back and trudged off in the direction of the gunfire. He was really starting to regret not wearing armor under his civilian clothes.

//--TehK17:45, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Time to reveal MY ALIEN RIFLE! (Thats why he wanted to see Dutchs, read on Rileys page)

Riley grabbed Cat and took out the newly assembled Alien Rifle and clicked in a button before pulling the trigger and blasting the guys that were shooting Dutch. Rileys hands got warmer while he melted off one of the guys armor, and then soon gave him a large rash on his neck.

Radiation King17:48, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Kay, I'm not forcing you or anything, Kuh. Take your time; I'll reveal Deek's surprise yet ^.^

Domingo listened to the voices behind the tank, where he'd pulled it to a stop. He heard "Confiscate" and "Waster", and that was all he needed. He pulled on the control sticks of El Oso, turning the beastly tank 360 degrees so that the massive plow and laser chaingun were facing the Last Legion soldiers. "Confiscate?" Domingo shouted from inside the tank, hoping the Last Legion soldiers would hear him. "You're not confiscating any of this. If you want to pay for it, then that's a different story."

Gunshots pinged off the plow next, and Domingo ducked back away from the front of the tank, pushing both sticks forward. The tank went flying right past Dutch, tripping up one of the Last LEgion soldiers and impaling him on the front of the plow like he was a roadkill deer caught in a combine harvester. Domingo turned again, bringing the Laser Chaingun to bear, before he slid over to the gunnery compartment and pressed down on the Chaingun's firing buds. A third and fourth Crusade soldier fell to the ground, one missing both legs, an arm and part of his torso and the other one turned to ashes.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 17:52, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

Weston was riding atop the tank, firing hios 10MM SMG at the BRA-wearing soldiers. Checking how many rounds left in his clip, Weston quickly looked up to see a soldier pointing a gun at him. Luckly, Weston had forgot that he lef ta round in the chamber when he took out the Gun magzine. POulling the trigger by mistake, the bullet went right into the glowing eys of the soldiers.

"Whoa..."

KuHB1aM17:55, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Srry for the short post, going offline

Looking around at the dead soldiers, Dutch turned towards the group heading for him. “I was perfectly fine and capable.” Dutch said, tripping slightly from his drinks. He turned towards Vlad. “I prefer the term Shades, thank you.” Dutch said, and sat back down in his lawn chair.

//--TehK17:58, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley quickly hid his Alien Rifle underneath his jacket before heading towards the group, "So, what was that all about?" he asked them.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 18:03, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"Well, Dutch was all like *pow* pow* then those guys werre like no! *ka-pow*!"

Run4urLife!18:08, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Well, Bono over there with the specs got into a tussle with Captain Helmet and his goons over there, and well, we came off better. No thanks to you lot anyway. Even Jacob didn't get to shed blood this time. Too busy playing golf with Bren's stuff. There goes the runt's "No Claims Bonus" anyway." Jackal said jovially. He had killed one of the Last Legion apes too. Nice little bit of machete-work there. The last words the guy heard were Those are supposed to be on the inside, son.

Jacob shifted embarrassedly from foot to foot. He had indeed been a bit preoccupied with seeing how far he could punt a Nuka Cola bottle using a Protecron arm.

//--TehK18:10, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Somebody notice my ossim gun already! lol.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 18:12, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"Uhhh, whats Golf?"

Vegas adict18:15, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// K krush

Alexis turned to weston "golf was a pre war game that involved hiting a ball into a hole with a stick".Satisfied he turned to riley there was a bump under his jacket."Riley whats that bump under your jacket?"

Act 5[]

Radiation King18:17, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo looked over towards Riley and noticed him holding a new weapon. The weapon llooked suspiciously similar to the one Dutch had had in the basement of Stefanie's house, except some of the parts looked different. He looked in Riley's direction, fixing his eyes on the gun. "Riley," He asked, "What is that gun? I've never seen one like it before."

Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:19, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Hey...Alexis....thats what she said..."

Weston burst out to a peroid of sinckering and laughing before getting a punch from Riley.

Run4urLife!18:21, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Does Domingo sound like Manuel from Fawlty Towers?
//--TehK18:22, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley noticed that people could see the Alien Rifle and explained, "There are more then one of the Alien Rifles," he said, "I found mine long before I met any of you, but it was broken, and I didn't know how to put it back together," he then looked at Dutch, "And when Dutch came in with his, I seen a chance to find out how to rebuild my own. So while I was examining it I was also rebuilding mine," he looked at Dutch again, "Mine is solar powered and melts things, wheres yours??"

Vegas adict18:24, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis growled at weston before grabing his sledgehammer and swinging it at his ball's."Never ever diss me or abuse my comments K"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:26, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dodging the sledgehammer, Weston pulls out his SMG and pistolwhips Alexis in the side of his head. Watching his collaspe like a pricked ballon, Weston holstred his weapon.

"Asswipe went there. Asswipe went there"

Vegas adict18:29, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Shit that hurt alexis thought stagering to his feat he turned to weston."Aren't we ment to be on the same side?"

//--TehK18:30, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Why are you fighting!?" Riley yelled at them and then aimed his gun at both of them, "Don't make me melt you!!"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:35, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"You also swung a sledgehamer at my balls, asswipe!"

Punching Alexis in the face, a full-scale brawl as averted when someone held both men back, and Rilets threat to melt both of them.

"Little Fucker!"

Run4urLife!18:38, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob had pulled a gun on both Alexis and Weston. However, it was a .32 Pistol pointed at Weston's stomach, but a D'Eagle pointed at Alexis' head. Firstly, Alexis had started the fight, and secondly, he was the unproven new guy, and consequently, expendable, when compared to a veteran of the attack on Jerusalem. Jackal he just pulled his shotgun on Jacob, then rapidly switched aim to Alexis as he realised Jacob was whipping out his guns because the new guy had swung a sledgehammer at Weston.

"Bad move, son. Very bad move, taking a swipe at Weston there." Jackal said. Jacob just snarled. That noise said more than any death threat could possibly have. Unless Jacob had threatened to throw Alexis into orbit, jump up and kick him back down to earth.

Radiation King18:41, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo sighed as he climbed out of the back of the tank, pulling out his SAA and pressing his thumb down on the hammer, ready to cock it just in case. "No more fighting," He growled as he moved past Weston and cracked Alexis in the nose. He watched in half-satisfaction and half-pity as the much smaller Alexis was sent reeling and smacked down on the ground.

"And you, Weston," Domingo sighed. "Don't provoke him. He obviously has a few screws loose."

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 18:51, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"Does'nt everybody have a few screws in this god-forsaken hell-hole?"

Weston had something of a half smilie as Domingo slammed Alexis in the nose. It quickly went away when Domingo talked to him, but, when he turned his back is was back on his face agian. Anyone who does that desveres it. Its one thing if its life or death, but, that was a JOKE. And it was a sledgehammer! That would have ruined any chance for kids! And Weston wanted kids! Someday, at least.

Vegas adict19:01, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

When they were finished alexis would definetly be paying weston a visit,With a super sledge this time though.Nethertheless he didn't want to piss of jacob so he stagered to his feet and gave himself a shot of med-ex."Lets just get a fucking move on i don't want to be around when the last legion finish off the loyalists"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 19:07, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"We got to vist Marshall, 'member? Comon guys, it's close. Farrgut West Station, to be exact."

Weston started to lead the group until they reached the said Metro tunnel that Marshall set up shop in. A string of lights lit up the inside.

"Jacob, i suggest you stay outside for now, ok? In fact, who really wants to come inside?"

Vegas adict19:09, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis needed some more ammo and scrap so a vist to marshall couldn't hurt."Il go in on the condition you don't atack me the second we get inside"


Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:12, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"...alright, anybody else besides Alexis?"

Run4urLife!19:20, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Time to throw a spanner in the works!

"I'm good for now. The big guy let me in on one of his stashes of those crazy ass HEIAP bullets he uses." Jackal said, nodding to the now fuming Jacob. He wouldn't kill Rascón on sight. Not now. Well, if he could get a clear shot, he'd kill him on sight, but not today.

Jacob shruged and walked in the door. The atmosphere in the room got noticeably tenser. He leaned on the wall and gave a disparaging look to the guards. Jackal stepped up next to him. Not like he could stop 220lbs of murderous Super Soldier anyway, but it was more of a gesture to begin with. He really hoped Jacob didn't let his temper get the better of him. Why had he let the nutter go in the door?


Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:33, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

(I have no clue what that means)

Weston had walked in first, followed by the others.

"Hey Marshall! Whats up?"

"Weston! Long time no see pal! What brings you to this little neck of business?"

Weston strached his neck and quickly looked around.

"Where's Victor? He's normally here..."

"Oh...well, he's at Rivet City right now, talking to my old man. You know how it is right? We might do a deal with Rivet City later this month, you know? They want to expand there armoury. Have a few heavy weapons in case something REALLY bad goes down. Speaking of something going down...whats with these new people? You going to make a Merc group or something?"

"Not really. I sorta need that .30 cal gun i sold you a week ago...you know, the water-cooled one."

"And let me guess. You don't have a lot of caps, do you?"

"No..."

"Well, Weston. I have two answers to you. Either you help me out, or i can't help you. It's rather simple. A...extermation of a group. Recntaly, a group of raiders has been hitting a couple of my...assocites. They asked me to take care of it. You do this for me, and you can have the gun along with most of my .30 cal ammo. You guys game?"

Marshall sat back down and lit a cigar. He'd seen one of them before...Jacob? Jimmy? He could't recall. The others though were new faces. Expect for Jack. The rest were new. Poetinal customers, maybe.

Run4urLife!19:41, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Throwing a spanner in the works means fucking something up on someone. Like throwing a spanner (wrench) into the inner workings of an engine or such

"Well, Marshall," Jacob said, in a low, deep tone as he leaned over Rascón's table," I think that whatever Weston's offering is a fair price."

"Don't you?" Jacob added, looking around at the others.

Jackal shrugged. No way was he getting on Jacob or an arms dealer's bad side. Admittedly, Jacob was the more immediate threat, but Rascón probably had some serious backup to call on if the shit hit the fan. Jacob was forcing the warlord's hand and Rascón did not like that one bit. Jacob, that mad fucking bastard was wiring the place like a powder keg. All it would take is one spark and the whole thing would kick off. Jackal gulped and waited for the rest to answer.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:47, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Warlord? That term is so babric. I perfer the term Lord of War, myself.
Radiation King19:55, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// They're the same thing with the words switched around...

Domingo looked at the assorted group; with Jacob threatening Rascon. Normally that would be his department, especially when it came to a bastard like him. However, Jacob seemed to be doing a good job of making the guy mess himself, so he waited by the door, twirling his SAA. This motion looked intimidating for all of a half-second until the gun outright spun off his finger and nearly clattered to the floor, with Domingo lashing out to catch it at the last possible moment.


Vegas adict19:59, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Normaly alexis would be content to jacob get his own way by threating marshal but he had no desire to fight yet again.Anyway he had the caps to pay for it snd even if he didn't he was sure there was some tech he could trade."What are you asking for it Mr Rascon"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 20:12, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"I need someone to elimante a small raider gang thats been causing one of my assocites some trouble. You do that, and you guys get the .30 cal along with two boxes of ammo. You guys do that, and you get the precuious gun. However, your friend here is giving me some problems."

Marshall took out the Cigar in his mouth and put it in his ashtray. Several of his own guards were getting a bit edgy and had there hands over there weapons. If they needed to, they would fire. However, they would fire last, not first. They don't want to be the ones to start the fight.

--Cerebral plague20:17, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack knew what he needed to know. "Rascon, would you pre-fer me to take their fingers, or scalps as evidence?"

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 20:29, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

"Fingers. Heres there location."

Marshall stood up and handed Jack a vannilla folder. Inside was a map showing the raiders gang location, a brief disrepction of the gang, and a order to burn this docment as soon as the mission was complete. Sitting back down, Marshall picked up the cigar, but did'nt put it in his mouth.

"This will be rather easy, i assure you. Just be warned...they have numbers on there side."

Vegas adict20:33, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis inwardly grimaced why did he allways get involved with things like this still with 3 enclave super soljers on there side it shouldn't be hard.Still marshals coment about numbers surprised him."what do you mean numbers?"

--Cerebral plague20:37, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"That will not be a problem Mr. Rascon." Jack studied the map for a few seconds before putting it under his poncho. Walking out the door, several members of the group followed them. Jack got onto Domigoes tank, and waited for him to start it up while the rest of the group got into the trailer tied to the tank.

--Weston "Henchmen" Foster 20:42, 17 May 2009 (UTC)

" I mean that they have a surpior force in numbers. They are'nt well equipped, they just outnumber you...by at least 20. Good luck. I'm sure you'll be able to bet them."

Marshall put the cigar back in his mouth, and put his feet up on the desk. Looking at the termainl, he noticed profits were up this week. His guards eased up a little when most of the group left, Jacob being the last one out the door.

"That guy fucking scares me."

One of his thugs repiled. "I think he's Jacob Vaughton sir."

"...holy shit."

KuHB1aM20:54, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// OMG I love that line "Bono with the specs"

Dutch stretched, then swiftly snatched the documents with the map from Jack. "Hmm..." Dutch said, stroking his non-existant musotache, "this should be a piece of cake. That asshole wants us to do this job, so sure, why not. Hell, I can do anything that piece of crap SCM 30 cal. can do." Dutch said, and handed Jack the papers back. Leaning against the inside of the trailer, Dutch eyed Riley's rifle. "Well, I was too drunk earlier, and I was also going ka pow pow pow with my own guns, so let me ask you this... how the fuck did you get that?

//--TehK21:02, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Found it a year ago, broken, in a truck labeled U.S. army," Riley said, "Couldn't fix it, but once I disassembled yours I knew how to put my own back together," he then pointed at a solar pad on the top, "Doesn't work at night, and doesn't use ammo,"

Run4urLife!21:48, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob smiled. Now that was a job he could do. He clambered up onto the roof of El Oso as Riley and Ducth got chatting in the trailer. Before Jack could get back to the documents, Jacob had grabbed it from his hands and gone thorugh it. Scratching at his chin, and realizing he needed a shave, he loked at the terrain. Plenty of lumps and bumps in the ground and small hillocks. El Oso would be of little use in hill country like that, other than for intimidation. What interested Jacob was the outcrops to the south of the camp. Those would come in dead handy for cover, for picking the raiders off. That was where this battle would be won.

//--TehK21:53, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley picked up the ham radio, "Testing.. Testing, anybody there?? Uhh yeah if your expecting the claws, which your NOT, cause you probably are just here to listen to Never Gonna Give You Up by Rick Astley. Well, the Claws are GONE. They turned into a raider group and merged with the Talons, so kill them on SIGHT! Oh and this radio is now called Riley Radio. Cause I'm your host, RILEY!" he then looked at the list of songs, "And if you want us to come to your scrapheap of a town, just send a request! We're mobile! So if you ever see a tank somewhere, that's us! Now for some music," he then put on some more Never Gonna Give You Up.

Run4urLife!21:59, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// You son of a bitch! You Rickrolled the entire Wasteland!


--Cerebral plague22:00, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack yelled at Riley. "Riley, if you keep spreading the bullshit that the Claws aren't already in some land fill somewhere! Do you really think they could of gotten half way across the country without being torn apart by the hairy death claws? By the way, you don't even know them! So your just hating them because it's the popular thing to do! Your a fucking hipster!

The sun started to rise, as El Oso rumbled on down to the raider camp. Waking most of the camp up, it seemed that the shouts of "TANK" and the the people missing severely with their hunting rifles at the tank gave the impression that they knew where they were. The one bullet that did hit how ever didn't even scratch the surface of the tank. Jack, knowing that he wasn't made of metal got off the tank, and started to run toward the cover in the trees. He spotted several sweepers in the distance through his binoculars. (You may make posts that happen before the last event by the way)

//--TehK22:08, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Ignore the sounds in the background they are just a recording the claws made before we got their radio," Riley said. He then turned off the ham radio and let the music play to the Wasteland, "Oh I know about them, yes, I do."

The tank soon rode into the raider camp, and since it was daytime Riley could use his Alien Rifle.

Firman0504

Stefanie was just sort of tagging along with the group. She was still really pissed about them all shooting up her home. And about Jeeves. They had left the place a mess and she was forced to deactivate Jeeves. He layed stagnant and in a heap back at her safe spot. Not to mention Dutch almost shooting her ear off. Moron. Riley, continuing to shoot that fucking gun in her house. If he didn't respect her shit while she was there then he wouldn't be living there watching her stuff. He was fuckin' out. Then Jack blew up all of Strauss' shit. She felt for him. They'd wrecked her shit too. Out of respect for him, all she'd taken from the Super Duper Mart was all the Buffout she could find. Fuckin' assholes. She'd put a lock on the elevator after most of the group had left. She'd caught up with them after some sort of firefight with some Crusaders. Now there was some new guy named Vlad with them and they were down in the Metro tunnels talking to some new trader or something. She wanted parts for Jeeves. She hoped he'd be the same when she got him back together. She also was gonna make it a point to go through everyone's shit and make sure they hadn't stolen anything. No way she was gonna let them get away with any of her stuff, friends or not. She flexed the fingers of her Power Fist and observed the conversation as it went on.

Radiation King22:12, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Gorram it Krush! Well now it's time for the only mechanized non-character character to get the spotlight.

"Aha, gotcha now fuckers!" Domingo shouted as El Oso roared down the hill towards the camp. The tank, having the advantage of downhill speed , momentum and weight, rolling-tackled through the outer perimeter of scrap metal and stacked cars the raiders had set up. Laser chaingun spewing hot red death in the flavor of ash, El Oso roared through, its trailer swinging wildly as the transmitter wobbled and Roland and Riley, clutching handguards with everything they had, held on for dear life. Switching to a leftward course, Domingo roared through a grouping of three rawhide tents, the massive plow ripping holes in the canvas as though he were running through rice-paper screens. Eventually, hauling back on both of the control bars with all his might, he reeled Killdozer El Oso to a stop and threw himself out of the driver's hatch, pulling his SAA along the way. Hauling the hammer back, Domingo pulled the trigger and felt the gun bark and kick out loudly, smashing through the raider's mandible and out the back of his head. Pulling the hammer back again, Domingo dodged to his right, rolling out of the line of fire of an AR-toting raider and kneeling, snap-shotting with the SAA again. The shot missed his head and torso, but crushed his kneecap and sawed his leg off, sending him plunging off of the small bench he was standing on.

"Alright, this is just getting fun!" The merc shouted as a Raider charged him with a generic Combat Knife. Domingo sighed. "Don't you ever get the message? DON'T USE KNIVES IF YOUR INTELLECT IS BELOW THAT OF THE AVERAGE HOUSEHOLD RABBIT!" The merc shouted as he drew his SMERSH-5, slit the Raider's throat, jammed his SAA beneath his solar plexus and pulled the trigger.

//--TehK22:13, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Fireman, Riley wasn't shooting any guns in Stefs house, only when the Sweepers came. And Riley, Domingo, and Jackal FIXED Jeeves! We even cleaned the place up when we left! Don't hate on Riley!
Radiation King22:17, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Also, please don't take back the SAA Domingo borrowed; he didn't actually actively attempt to rip your house to pieces. It was Dutch and Riley, I swear to god.
Run4urLife!22:18, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Jacob only used a hacksaw and a fire extinguisher
//--TehK22:19, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Rad King. Riley didn't do ANYTHING. >:(
Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:37, 17 May 2009 (UTC) 

As for Weston, he was still mounted atop of El Oso when the attack begun. Firing his Assualt Rifle like mad, he dismounted when Domingo decied to be a action hero and exposed himself to enemy fire. Moving towards a old car that was now part of the Raiders defensive line, Weston sighted in on a running raider. Firng a three-round burst, he watched as the bullets hit the raider, and the same raider tumble to the ground. Searching around for another Raider, he saw one taking aim at Domingo and El Oso. Firing off a much longer burst of 10 rounds, Weston saw that most of the bullets missed, save for two that hit the Raider in the torso. Going back behind cover, Weston reloaded his Assualt rifle.

--Cerebral plague23:48, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Sorry about not telling you this on your talk page Weston, but in the Wasteland vs Crusade Rp Jack traded his Chinese Assault Rifle for Westins Smg. He needed to do something that never happened in that Rp, and Jack had another copy so he didn't take westins back.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:49, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Oh, ok. Weston kept a Assualt rifle from the Assualt on Jearsulm.
--Cerebral plague23:55, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Also, it has a .44 magnum scope, a silencer, and a shotgun attachment. So yeah, Weston can low kill half the raider population with the gun Jack gave him.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:58, 17 May 2009 (UTC)// Its not the gun that makes the marksman, its the marksman skill.
KuHB1aM00:21, 18 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jumping out and sprinting towards the raider camp, Dutch picked up the raider’s corpse, using it as a body shield while opting for his M1911. Drawing it from his holster, he aimed over the dead man’s shoulder emptying the clip. Several raiders fell over, several of their heads having become ventilated from Dutch’s marksmanship. Yawning, and grabbing the beer from his pocket, he took a swig, chucked it and nailed a raider’s head, and dove to the side as a hunting rifle took his cover’s head clean off. Moving against the corner of one of four buildings in the ruined military compound, Dutch aimed down the road, pointed and fired, nailing the hunting rifle-wielding raider in the chest and sending him flat on his back. Giving the other raiders the bird, Dutch moved around the side of the building, entering a broken wall portion and stepping inside. Aiming at the back of a raider sniper’s head and blowing his brains out. “Don’t move, fucker!” A voice called out from behind. “Drop your fucking weapon!” The raider said. Dutch could feel the .32 pistol pressed behind his back. The man was obviously a rookie with close combat. Holstering his pistol and making it seem as though he was disarming himself, Dutch placed his katana on the ground… and grabbed the trench knife from his boot, spinning and causing the weapon to misfire. Easily overpowering the raider, Holmes smashed him into the ground, and jabbed the knife as hard as possible into his forehead. ‘’Hmm. Won’t be using that again.’’

Fireman0504

Stefanie looked over at Domingo. "Hey," she said, "that's mine!" He was taking shots with his SAA, and she was crouched across an alleyway from him. "This? No," he said, trying to play off that he'd actually stolen from a friend. "Yeah, picked it up from the National History Museum, Colt Revolver. Ain't many of them around these days. Jeeves filled me in on it. We're done here, I better get it back or I will stomp the living shit out of your greased-up, tank-drivin' ass." Domingo chuckled a little. "Try me," she said flatly, before popping a Buffout and charging down the alley. She seemed to avoid the fire coming her way before connecting with a shoulder into the first Raider she saw, she stepped on his throat and twisted, slicing it with her spur while simultaneously avoiding the butt of the rifle coming at her head and connecting with a backhand blow into the side of a second Raider's temple. He was dropped off his feet and she punched downward into his chest with her Power Fist, causing him to gasp for air. Stefanie then dove through a storefront window as another volley of shots cut the ground up where she'd been, riddling the downed Raiders. She cursed as she noticed the blood coming from her calf. A shot had grazed her and now she heard footsteps coming her way. She crouched next to the door and stood up as soon as it opened, spattering a Raider's brains with her Power Fist on the wall outside. The two Raiders behind him were riddled, crumpled, and fell from an unknown assailant. Stefanie slammed the door again and began searching frantically for a firearm inside the building. Or anything else useful for that matter.

Twentyfists01:39, 18 May 2009 (UTC)// Isn't it ironic that an RP called "The End" is five pages long?

One of the Raiders swung a baseball bat at Vladimir's head. Bad move. In an instant, Vladimir's meteor hammer was out. He wrapped it around the bat, using his weapon's force to drag the bat from the Raider's grasp. Before the Raider could register what had happened, Vladimir had cleared the bat from the hammer's grasp, then whipped the weapon upwards. The steel weight on the end of the the hammer's chain smashed into the Raider's chin and broke his jaw. To make sure he was dead, Vladimir then swung the meteor hammer downwards into the downed Raider's chest.

Suddenly, intense pain shot through Vladimir's chest. He fell over, and his vision turned red. He had been shot in the back with a hunting rifle. Vladimir turned over and, before his enemy could confirm the kill, Vladimir filled his head with .44 rounds from one of his Glock 21s. Vladimir's numb fingers fumbled for a Stimpack. It almost fell from his grasp before he injected the stim into his stomach. Immediately, the pain lessened, and Vladimir was able to move to cover.

//--TehK01:45, 18 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley took his Alien Rifle out and started melting some raiders. But then, suddenly a CLOUD came over him and his weapons input stopped, and that made him vulnerable to a punch to the face. Riley smacked the guy across the face with the Alien Rifle and while he staggered Riley took out his Quad-Beam and shot him a few times. Riley picked up a knife and threw it at a raider, it pierced his forehead and died, "Pure skill, heheh," Riley said before dodging a super-sledge and killing the holder with it. The cloud was gone so Riley wielded his Alien Rifle once more and began melted more enemies.

User:Ramsey07:49, 18 May 2009 (UTC)// God damn kids and their rapid posting and new pages and skateboards..........

Aaron sat in the back of Domingo's trailer, guarding it while the rest of the escapee insane-asylum inmates went on a very disturbing killing spree. Why the fuck was he still with these people? Most of all, one of them was a fucking Enclave! That rat bastard is allied with the same thing that has made Aaron's life a living shitfest, killed most of his family, and enslave a whole Goddamn city. If anything, Aaron should kill the man. Just strait up blow the fucker's face off. Although, the consequences would most likely be fatal. The man's butt buddy, Jacob, would turn Aaron into a puddle. He should just run off right now, it didn't seem that any of them would really notice. And, in the miste of all this battle, he could even get away with sneaking some of Domingo's cargo off as well. The tank pilot had truly been the most 'normal' and trustworthy out of this lot though, and, where it other conditions, Aaron would even team up with the man to help him with any other jobs. Strauss, Jack, Riley, Weston, Alexis, and maybe Stefanie seemed more fit to confinement than the open wastes. Jacob, The Enclave Bastard, and the new one of them deserved death if anything. No matter what 'good stuff' they've done, they would only cause more bad with all that power. Aaron didn't care for Ronald that much besides that fact that he had been to Austin recently. As for now, Aaron decided to stick around and see how shit turns out. If it gets more messed up that it is now, than he was getting the hell out of here and back down to Austin. Even that sliver of hell seemed more welcoming that this madness.

A bullet whizzed by Aaron's head, nearly hitting a crate of ammo. "Shit!" He looked out to see two raiders advancing on the trailer, "Poor idiots." Aaron cocked and loaded his Shotgun, getting ready give this trailer a new paint job.

Radiation King11:23, 18 May 2009 (UTC)// I said I wanted to keep the SAA!

"Sixteen thousand caps for it!" Domingo shouted back to Stefanie, advancing down an alley adjacent to the one Stefanie had just run, leading to the corner opposite the block the pit fighter had just exited onto. "Sixteen five for the SMERSH, too!" Domingo continued, flipping a couch as a Raider with a ripper descended on him, making a jab for his face. The couch impeded his progress, however, as the chainsaw-knife became entangled into e spring and stuffing that filled the ancient sofa. Domingo continued to roll the couch over and eventually flipped it onto the raider, pinning him to the ground with the whirring r aider depleting its batteries. Leaving the raider there, Domingo moved on out of the building, flicking the hammer on the SAA and snap-shotting one of the Raiders taking aim at Stefanie, who was hiding in a doorway just a little ways south of her.


Roland looked at the raiders closing on the trailer, sighing as Aaron fired a burst of pellets into each one. Watching as the first one fell, he noticed the second one only get jolted but kept on coming, despite the fist-sized hole in his ribcage. Fool's jacked on Psycho, the merchant thought to himself, giving the man a coup de grace with his Grease Gun. With the raidres in the immediate area of the trailer dispatched, Roland climbed down the maintenance ladder and crouched behind one of the wheel wells, taking a flask of brandy from his pockets.

Run4urLife!11:59, 18 May 2009 (UTC)// Hey! Jacob hasn't fought for the Enclave's sake since. Shit, he helped them bring down the Crusade HighCom. Other than that, he hasn't worked for them in 26 years!

Jacob stood, a raider to the front, back, left and right of him. There was another watching him from about ten feet away slightly right of dead ahead. Jacob reached into his duster, clenching each hand around a D'Eagle. Without a word or even a glance to warn the Raiders, he lunged to the right, diving into that Raider, while drawing his guns, shooting the one furthest off, and then the one that had been right in front of him a second ago. Both went down, hideous wounds gouged in their chests by the HEIAP bullets Jacob's pistols spewed. Jacob then beat the Raider he had jumped on against the doorstep of the house they were against, and he blind-fired at the Raider that had been to his left. The shot clipped the bastard's shoulder, sending him to the ground. Jacob shot the one he had pinned between the eyes and stood up. He walked over to the one he had just winged and executed him.

Front, back, left and right. Thats four. Four bodies, thats okay. Wasn't there five a second ago? Jacob thought to himself as he stood over his victim. Then he was pitched forward by a shotgun blast. Rolling as he hit the ground, Jacob felt the buckshot stinging in the muscles of his back. Thankfully, his Combat Armor and kevlar bodysuit had taken the brunt of the blast.

"Definitely five!" Jacob grunted as he rolled over and shot the bastard in the neck.

Vegas adict17:30, 18 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis was guarding the tank with arron and roland.He had watched the two of them deal with the raiders quite efficantly and was curently fidling with his .44.

Radiation King19:21, 18 May 2009 (UTC)// Vegas, there is no back way. The end facing El Oso has been completely walled in. The one that Roland and Aaron are covering is the only entrance.
Vegas adict19:44, 18 May 2009 (UTC)// soz
Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:29, 18 May 2009 (UTC) 

As for Weston, he had moved up within the shanty town. However, he did'nt take the other took. He was going the long way around, trying to go in through the back. Of course, sometimes there was a wall. And when theres a wall, he fixed that problem. With a sledgehammer. Smashing through the weak steel walls of a building, Weston soon found himself staring face to face with a Raider. Wielding a Switchblade, the Raider charged. Stumbling around due to the sudden surpirse, Weston fiently put up his sledgehammer as some means of defense. As luck would have it, the Raider used a downward slash, and the sledgehammers rod had blocked the kinfe from slashing Westons stomach. Being knocked back, the raider stumbled across the room before hiitng a wall. Weston then smashed the said Raiders face with a seldgehammer, before firing a brust into it just to make sure its dead.

"Mr. Rascon sends his regards...ha."

Fireman0504

"Thirty two five for both, eh?" Stefanie grinned, "done, but you better be good for it." Stefanie winked at Domingo as he picked off another Raider with his new, rightfully acquired SAA. Stefanie got up and moved with Domingo back down the alleyway. When they got there, they saw Aaron and Roland fighting back from the trailer of El Oso. Alexis wasn't doing much of anything, as usual, but fiddling with his .44. Stefanie swore she'd never seen that man fire a weapon. What was his purpose again? On the ground, she spied a Missile Launcher laying next to the bleeding carcass of a Raider. She picked it up with a grin. "I've always wanted to try this," she said, hefting it onto her shoulder. "Ah, Stefan-- WHOA!!!" Domingo cried as he and Stefanie both hit the dirt. The missile streaked backwards, pitching Stefanie to the ground and detonating inside a small building. "Holy fuck!" Stefanie said loudly as the dirt around her and Domingo began being ripped up by gunfire. "I was gonna tell you it was backwards!" Domingo yelled as he popped off shots with his SAA. "How the hell was I supposed to know that?" Stefanie yelled back. At least the Raiders were no longer paying attention to the tank, Aaron and Roland, and Domingo's supply. Their numbers had to be running out though.

KuHB1aM01:31, 19 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch jumped from the doorway as a missile slammed into his building, imploding rock and brick. Landing in the middle of the compound out in the open, Dutch immediately sighted who had fired the missile; Stefanie. Shaking his head and gritting his teeth, Dutch pulled his Tar-21 from his duffel, and began clearing the street. Apart from a few stragglers, there was nothing that was living out in the open. Taking a moment to rub his hand across his face and wipe away the dust on his jacket aswell, he fired his rifle into the air. “Hey Girly! What the hell was that for?!”

Fireman0504

"Sorry Dutchie," Stefanie said, "I ain't much good with these big guns, but it always looked so fun when you guys fired missiles at people." Holmes was not ammused in the least. "In all fairness," Stefanie continued, "you did almost shoot my ear off earlier. And you killed my robot. And destroyed my house. And anyways, I've seen you walk away from plenty worse than a missile hittin' a building you were in." Still didn't look ammused. Oh well Stefanie thought, shrugging. He'd probably almost kill her again later anyway. She wondered why she looked up to Dutchie so much. Especially since he was such a dick to her all the time. Must've been the jacket. She popped in a Buffout and helped Domingo to his feet, dusting him off. "So let's go get them cap," she said, "or maybe, I can rummage through that trailer o' goodies you got and we can do some bargainin'?"


User:Ramsey01:53, 19 May 2009 (UTC) 

Aaron doubletook as he saw Stefanie and Domingo enter the area, and the second look he saw Stefanie holding a missile launcher backwards! Aaron put a hand on Roland's back, causing him to turn around as well. "Wha-What's she doin-" Aaron stopped mid-sentence, threw Roland to the floor, and then hit the deck himself. A missile whizzed by them, hitting a nearby building. Debris and dirt showered the two as they slowly rose. "Stefanie! What in God's name was that about!" He took cover behind the tank wheel to avoid any stray shots, "You trying to help the raiders kill us!?!" She only chuckled a bit and moved on, talking to Dutch Holmes, or the Enclave Bastard in Aaron's mind. He spat, brushed off his jeans, and hiked up inside the trailer. Roland was still staring in disbelief at Stefanie's careless act of destruction, Aaron would be doing the same but he seemed to expect it of the reckless woman. Tossing a half-dismembered corpse out of the trailer, he called out to Domingo, "Yo man, when we hittin' the road?" He looked around at the carnage quickly, "I'm sure this firefight is gonna get the attention of some greedy looters." Now that Aaron thought about it, he wasn't quite sure what they were doing here. The group had been discussing it on the drive over here, but Aaron was busy drifting in and out of sleep.

It seemed that the whole of the raiders were either dead, dying, or running for their miserable lives. Maybe now that the battle was over he could see what they were really after in this bloody quest of meaningless death. A cigarette in his mouth, Aaron simply rested on top of some seemingly dangerous ammunition.

Radiation King11:16, 19 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Looks like someone needs a lesson in gun maintenance," Roland said quietly as he hopped up farther into the back of the trailer, taking a seat at the radio broadcasting station. "Somebody paint an arrow on the side of that thing, or something." He flicked the transmitter on and watched as the radio equipment flickered to life before introducing the announcement: "Hellooo and welcome to Radio Free Strauss. Don't mind that last announcement, that announcer was a bit Jetted up at the time, but he's alright now. Off gettin gbent somewhere, but anyways, let's get right to business. I'm your assistant DJ, Roland Rockfort, here to bring you the latest on the Wasteland Fight for Justice.

"Today, a Raider shanty town was raided itself by a crew of daring do-gooders and one absolutely fucking massive vehicle. The said persons involved are Stefanie McRae, Jacob Vaughton and Domingo Velasquez, among others. The entire camp has been wiped out and travel througgh that area is once again safe for all. Keep up the good work, fellas! And now, we move on to some quality entertainment." Flicking off the mic, Roland popped in one of the vinyl records that lined the walls of the trailer within a three-foot radius of the radio broadcast system. Popping it into the machine, he tuned his PiP-Boy into Radio Free Strauss's frequency, listening to 'Do You Know What It Means (To Miss New Orleans)" by Louis Armstrong.

Meanwhile, in front of the tank, Domingo called out to Aaron. "We can leave now, unless you want to loot or something." Waiting for the Austinite's response, Domingo sat on the edge of the tank's entrance hatch, awaiting his response. Along the waysomewhere, he caught Stefanie's attention and tossed her a large rawhide bag of jangling bottlecaps. "For the gun and the knife," he clarified, "plus a little extra for fixing up your house. Sorry about the mess," He apologized.

Run4urLife!12:13, 19 May 2009 (UTC)// I'll be taking over for Teh Krush till his ban's up

Jackal lay on the ground, in a collapsed doorway. Staring up at the sky, imagining what birds sounded like before the war. A nice little whistling tune, not the Keewahr! of Post-War Gore Crows and Howler Eagles. Clouds drifting lazily by. The sound of a truck passing in the distance. No, that wasn't a truck. That was El Oso! Jackal took another look at the sky.

"Where the fuck did the roof go?" Jackal groaned as he pushed himself to his feet. He had been going to talk to Dutch about some Raiders on the left flank. Then Stefanie had fired her rocket launcher. Backwards. And demolished the fuckin house!


Jacob, meanwhile, was walking back to El Oso. He stopped by a struggling Raider, her arm trapped by rubble from Stefanie's stunt with that rocket tube. With a quick swipe of his Ka-Bar, the bitch was slumped, blood spurting from he freshly severed carotid arteries. El Oso was coming into view around the corner, with Jackal struggling towards it like some grumpy old man who was trying to prove he didn't need a cane.

"Job well done, folks. Feels good to be back killing Raiders and slavers again." He said, to no one in particular. Then he caught Aaron giving him a sidelong look. What was his problem all of a sudden? They'd had a conversation about Jay on the deck of Rivet City, talked about Austin and the Outcasts, and now Aaron was burning fiery holes in the side of Jacob's head! What had changed in the last eight hours?


Riley was grinning. Yes, it was petty and childish. Yes, it was time-consuming and unnecessary, but he wanted to test his Alien Rifle. He had melted people with it, hell, he had melted about half a dozen Raiders with it in that last little skirmish. Then he smiled and stepped back from his work, looking at Cat to see if the hound approved. The dog only barked and panted in response.

There, written in big block letters, burned into the concrete with Riley's Alien Rifle, were the words: "Riley was here, and see what happened!"

After a quick laugh at it, Riley returned to El Oso and the others.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:44, 19 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Ok," Weston said after getting on the tank"who grabbed the fingers, anyone?"

Almost before he could finsh the sentnce, a bag plooped into his lap. Opening it as if a bomb might go off inside it, he quickly shut up. Yep, there were fingers in there. A lot of them..all...dead and bloody and stuff. Throwing the bag back to tehe anyomus finger cutter-offer, Weston shudderd and looked into the sky. A few birds were now flying around the old shanty town that the group were just at. Now, to get back Rascon and get the gun. And then go upon our merry, bloody way.

Twentyfists22:15, 19 May 2009 (UTC) 

Vladimir grinned when he saw the look on Weston's face before the boy handed Vladimir his bag back. The boy clearly had no stomach for the less...normal things in combat. Ah well, he though. You've got to do what you've got to do. Vladimir wiped the blood, viscera, and gore off of his tanto before returning it to its sheath. He was ready to get a move on.

User:Ramsey03:08, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I guess you guys could loot, but it doesn't seem like these guys have anything of that much value." Aaron looked over the carnage, everyone of them dead. Vaughton had been finishing off the dying ones. Speak of the devil, the two caught glances. Giving somewhat of a snarl, Aaron turned away. Although he once thought Vaughton to be somewhat of an ally, Aaron's arrogance had clouded his thinking. Them man was sided with the Enclave, created by the Enclave, and may even still be sided with the Enclave. The Austinite's hate of the Enclave overwhelmed any reasonable thought. If the man weren't so powerful, Aaron would kill him himself, along with his Enclave friend. It was true that even Jay had been fellows with him, but Jay was too forgiving, too peaceful. Aaron believed in vengeance, an eye for an eye. He shook his head, leaned back, and continued to smoke his last cigarette. Maybe these raiders did have something of value on them...

Fireman0504

Stefanie whooped as she caught the bag of caps. Everyone seemed to be ragging on her for not knowing how to use a Missile Launcher. Wasn't her fault slaves were not trusted, nor could ever even obtain such weapons. There was just no instane where she'd used one. "Thanks Domingo, you didn't have to throw the extra in there but I do appreciate it. You're a sweetheart," she said. She went back to looking at the wound on her leg. Crudely bandaging it, she did manage to stop the bleeding. She popped in a Buffout and surveyed the ruins for anything useful. She picked up some ammo, and a couple pieces of armor, stripping what she could that was intact from the dead. She picked up some grenades, which were quickly confiscated by Roland. Shrugging, she also picked up a Combat Knife. She slid it into a holster on her chest armor after noting the "Stabhappy" engraved on the side. Roland informed her of a rare series of "Stabhappy" knives released before the war. She glanced over at Aaron, who had seemed ok at first, but in the last few hours had been becoming more and more visibly hostile to the rest of the group. She didn't know what to make of it other than that he must think them nothing more than a bunch of bloodthirsty butchers. Oh well. He was one too. No matter what side of the coin, good, bad, whatever. If you killed a person, even just a single person, in this day and age you were no better than anyone else. And if you weren't a killer, you were simply a victim. Aaron had to understand that. Oh well, she thought again. No sense worrying about stuff that was beyond her control.

Radiation King20:34, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Aaron." Roland turned away from the radio console, shifting a pair of headphones to his neck. "Are you alright? You've been looking angry for a while now..."

Meanwhile, up front, Domingo nodded in Stefanie's direction before sliding back into the tank's cockpit and pushing the t-bar forward and to the left, hoping to get the vehicle turned around and headed back towards Rascon's pad. The path was pretty much clear, anyways: just follow the path of debris and destruction and take a left at the former candy store. Hope Stefanie appreciates the 40 grand in that bag... The merchant thought to himself as El Oso crawled through the broken wall of vehicles he had smashed not ten minutes before.

KuHB1aM22:07, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch eyed the man’s rad signature, noting his vindictive posture and expression. It was obvious to Dutch that the man didn’t like him. Frankly, he didn’t care. If the man tried anything, his neck would be snapped like that, or worse, it would be slow and painful. As far as Dutch’s excellent memory carried, the man hadn’t been present for Jerusalem, and thus wasn’t of concern to him. To Dutch, he was another arrogant wastelander who thought he could mess with the Enclave, which was a big no-no. Putting his assault rifle and cleaning the blood off of his katana, he grabbed his duffel and headed for El Oso.

Solbur22:25, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

After a good half-hour's enthusiastic blasting of Raiders with the rest of the group, Strauss smiled to himself and climbed back into the trailer of El Oso. Worthington wasn't with him; no, Worthington was hauling his small amount of loot, and wheeling the mostly burnt out but intact carcass of the surviving Sentry Bot towards a new possible abode. The one Three Dog had mentioned the last time he'd visited; buried in a rockface somewhere near Arefu. Apparently, it'd been the site of a weapons cache a few years ago, but it got cleared out not too long ago. Should be able to entrench myself in there nicely, should the need arise. Strauss pulled off his helmet as he settled into the seat in front of the radio set-up as the tank began to move again.

--Cerebral plague22:41, 20 May 2009 (UTC)// Speeding this up

Soon, the old tank rumbled on down to a stop. Waiting outside, were several of the gun dealers guards, staring at the tank. Jack was the first to reach the guards, who stopped talking. One started to speak, and was cut off by the other. "Where them fingers?" Jack replied by flipping him off, and continuing inside of the building.

User:Ramsey22:45, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I'm fine brother, don't worry about it." Roland, satisfied with the answer, turned back to the radio console. Aaron then went back to carefully eying Holmes from a distance. The man wasn't normal, he wasn't pure human. From what he had gathered from Jacob's conversations with the man, they were both experiments by the Enclave. That made them no better than the Biosoldiers in Austin, even if they had reasonable thought. Actually, they may even make them worse. Jacob was an enigma though. The man seemed to be a proclaimed hero to the wasteland, yet he is an Enclave by birth. Maybe he's a heretic to them, escaped from whatever prison they had him in, and came here to D.C. It also could just be another of the Enclave's conspiracies. They send him out there to become a hero, then they work it out in their benefit. He knew the Enclave were tricky about that kind of stuff, especially in the South. Aaron's brain rattled as the tank started up, filling the silent sky with the sound of a rumbling engine. Everybody piled up inside either the tank or the trailer, pushing Aaron to a far corner. He spotted Holmes and Stefanie talking, about what, Aaron didn't know. Just as another plan to murder him popped into his head, Riley's dog-or cat, sniffed his sneakers. He scratched the mut's head and pulled up a "Big Book of Science" from Domingo's random stuff. The book was interesting, but a lot of it seemed to be bullshit now.

The tank halted to a stop, everybody immediately pouring out. They walked up to a group of armed guards, who asked jack for something. The cocky hitman simply flipped the guard the bird and continued, he seemed pretty conformable with that. Aaron let out a small laugh, this was going to be fun.

KuHB1aM22:55, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

Waiting outside after finishing his conversation with Stefanie about missile launchers and when and how to use them, Dutch opted to wait outside with the henchman of Marshall Rascon while they did their business. “How’s it goin’?” Dutch said, messing with them. The henchman gritted his teeth. “Shut up.” He said. Dutch smiled. “Not a good idea, buddy.” Dutch said, taunting him and trying to get him to draw his weapon. The henchman almost went to try and punch Dutch them and there, but opted out, knowing what Dutch was capable of. “Not falling for that one. I heard what you son of bitches did. Took out one of our best customers, yep, you son of a bitch, you.” The henchman said, slightly angry. Dutch frowned slightly. “Son of bitches?” Dutch said.


Dutch edged his way inside, his assault rifle drawn and pointing out the door. Marshall and Jack, aswell as the group turned towards Dutch in unison. “I, erm, well you see, it was like this.” Dutch said, raising his hand and letting them observe the blood. As Dutch backed up, five henchman moved inside with guns raised, one less than before. He looked towards the group innocently. “Well, I didn’t want to kill all of them! It’s just the lead guy started it, not me.” Dutch said, using his silver tongue to no effect.

Fireman0504

Stefanie eyed the guards playfully before walking past Apparently they were too stunned by Jack's response that they were not going to attempt to stop the group. That or the presence of Jacob Vaughton and/or Dutchie nearby. Either way they went right in. Stefanie gave Domingo a slap on the back. "Thanks for the caps," she said, "I really do appreciate the extra." Domingo smiled and gave a quick nod through the smoke from the cigar gritted between his teeth. Domingo was quickly becoming one of the nicer members of the group. Along with Strauss, and sometimes Riley, he was one of the more friendly individuals, making it easy for his and Stefanie's persona's to mesh. "So what does this guy deal?" she asked him. "Anything you can think of," Domingo replied. "So you think he'd sell me a Missile Launcher?" Stefanie asked, with a chuckle. "He doesn't sell Missile Launchers," Domingo quickly replied. The two shared a laugh as they moved on. Stefanie threw a wink to Strauss, who laughed and nodded back and she glanced at Aaron. He still looked upset, and glared at her. Probably because she'd been talking to Dutchie. She could tell he hated Holmes most of all. It was quite obvious to most of the group from all the burning glares that Aaron sent out to him. No matter. He wasn't her master. No one was. Stefanie was happy with the fact that she could do what she wanted, when she wanted, how she wanted. No one had control over her. Nevertheless, she threw a friendly grin to Aaron too, who simply ignored it and glared at Dutch some more.

KuHB1aM23:12, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

Turning his head back to the group with his assault rifle still raised, Dutch smiled innocently. "Please go ahead with your business deal. I assure you, Mr.Rascon, that at the most, only their eyes will be missing; maybe some limbs." Dutch said, getting the henchman to nervously back up alittle and out of the doorway. His assault rifle still in hand, he smiled politely to the group, Mrs. McRae, and the dude with the wild haircut. "You have a good time too, frosty." Dutch said, grinning, and headed outside into the sunlight, where the henchman had holstered their weapons and moved back where they had been before, one of them removing ammunition and valuables from his head comrade. Leaning against El Oso's trailer, Dutch spoke to them again. "So, how's it going?" Dutch said. The henchmen simply ignored him this time; it was probably in their best interest aswell.

Twentyfists23:20, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

Vladimir sat inside the door. He really disliked some of the scumbags around here. They are impediments on the road of wasteland unity, and they should be destroyed, just like the raiders, he thought. One of them, who was probably off duty, swaggered up to Vladimir, bragging about how good of a shot he was and how Vladimir would be sorry if he crossed him. It must have been the man's first day on the job. Either that, or he was drunk. Vladimir shot him a cold stare. The guard got angry at this, rather than backing off. He must have been drunk. This would turn out to be no good for the guard. The guard put his hand on Vladimir's shoulder and tried to roughly shove the Cossack Warrior Weapon. That was a bit too far for Vladimir's taste. Before the poor drunkard could attempt his ill-planned shove, Vladimir had wrenched the man's arm off of Vladimir's shoulder and, using a technique borrowed from Aikido with slight modifications, broke the man's hand in his grasp with lightening fast speed. He wouldn't try that again in a hurry.

KuHB1aM23:25, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Dammit, Vlad!" Dutch said, looking on as he broke the henchman's hand. However, the other henchman dared not intervene. "Hmm." Dutch said, admiring the lot. "I like you guys. Your smart." Dutch said, then turned towards Vlad. "Look, Vlad, as an Enclave, excuse me, imposter Enclave who used to go to school with me and Jacob, I must advise you that even I have limits as an Enclave, and so should you. Sure, it's fine to go kill people willy nilly, believe me, I do it all the time to the Brotherhood and the Crusade, but right now we're trying to get one of those SCM .30 cals to help with the Crusade-annhiliation. So try not to hurt people, ok bud?" Dutch said. To say this, he was a hypocrite, considering he had just killed that man's friend. But still, it wasn't going to help right now.

Radiation King23:37, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo sighed, looking back at Vlad and Dutch as he stamped out the butt of his cigar, breathing out a final ring of smoke before heading right on into Rascon's dealership after Stefanie. Weston was at the counter, attempting to broker the deal for the SCM .30 that was curentlyp out the counter. Domingo eyed it quickly with a merchant's surmise; one that could determine the worth of a product in a simple glance.

He noted the blackened tip of the gun and several scorings along the side of the weapon, along with the dirt and grime it had accumulated. He noted that it was used for field use, probably for a significant term, before it was either torn forcibly from the hands of a Crusade gunner or abandoned; with the latter being the most likely. The gun looked to have little external damage; however, so Domingo merely strode over and examined the weapon from closer up. The gun seemed mostly intact, well worth the amount of work Domingo and his friends had performed to obtain it.


Roland, meanwhile, had gone up on the roof of the trailer and was currently dozing in the mid-day sun, soaking up as many rays as possible before night fell. His internal clock told him, without checking his pip-boy, that it was probably some time in early evening, around 5:00, or a bit later. The sun was still going to be out for at least another two to three hours. He shifted a bit and continued dozing, content.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:46, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

Marshall was lookig increasling worried, and the converastion between him and Weston grew louder and louder. Finnally shouting, the room fell slient. Standing up, he strode over to the group and looked a them.

"You guys came in here, and hurt my men. Now, you just EXPECT me to just stand here and hand over the gun willy-nilly? No./ You get the gun, but you don't get ny ammo unless one of you boneheads can figure out a good enough reason to let me give you one."

"

KuHB1aM23:52, 20 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch unsheathed his katana, grabbed his cleaning rag, and began to systematically clean up the katana, examining the symbols engraved along the blade that meant his name along with the katana's actual name. Wiping away the blood, Dutch twirled the sword back and forth with both of his hands, loving how it felt. Sure, he liked that SCM officer sword of his; it reminded him of a Roman Gladius. However, he had always had a preference for the katana's feel. Sheathing it once more, Dutch stood up. The sun was sooooo damn hot; it was more scorching than while he was Navarro during graduation. Briefly taking in his surroundings, Dutch looked off in the distance, bored to death.


Thomas woke up, his head throbbing. Grabbing his deagle and finding a clip from his bandolier, he looked around for anything living. Airborne limped around, helping their comrades around as they searched for other survivors. "Status report, somebody give me something!" Thomas yelled, A marine approached him, Corporal insignia on his shoulder. "Cpl. Johnson, sir, glad to see you made it." Johnson said. His power armor helmet was missing, as was his weapons except for a 10mm pistol, and he had blood running down his head. "What the hell happened, Coporal?" Thomas said. He had been expecting no survivors and himself tied to a pole with his armor missing. Johnson, helping up a wounded comrade, began to speak slowly. "We gave em' a hell of a fight, Captain. But there was so damn many. And then they sent the entire friggin' population of wasters after us." Johnson said, a tear coming down his dirtied face. "We shot the fuck out of em' Captain. But they were everywhere; too many for the Airborne to handle alone. God, I can still hear them screaming!" Johnson said, breaking down. Thomas hugged him, his hand on his head as the young Corporal cried himself to death. "That bastard left us alive so that you could see what he'd do to us in the next wave." Johnson cried. "He just grabbed Fenrick and Greg by the collars and took that massive ripper and cut them open like tin cans!" Johnson said, sobbing harder. Thomas' eyes closed. What madness had Roarke caused that would make an Airborne, of all people, break down from common battefield scenes?

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:58, 20 May 2009 (UTC)// Kub, i think you need to edit your post with Dutch. There in a subway room office, the sun is'nt beating down on there heads, and Marshall just flipped out on you guys.
we're outside. Just pretend i went through the subway room office.]]  
Radiation King00:17, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Or maybe thre's just a huge-ass hole in the cieling. Also, NUUKE. Post there, whenever you want please.

There was a loud POW! as Domingo's pistol spoke once. The round, fired accurately if a little bit off, ricocheted off the counter and cliced one of Rascon's fingers off at the knuckle. Domingo, holstering his gun, sighed. "How about you give me the ammo to that thirty and I let you keep your other nine fingers?" The merchant didn't seem too concerned about the fact that he had just shot the finger off of the owner of a fucking gun shop, who had several armed guards on call at any given time. Hell, he actually seemed to have enjoyed taking the shot.

Fireman0504

"Or how bout this?" Stefanie said as she grabbed the angry arms dealer by the testicles, squeezing. "Because if you don't," she said, "I'll rip your baby makers off here, and shove them down your throat. Then I'll put your face on the ground and stomp on your head so hard, you'll chew 'em up and swallow 'em without tryi'g." Quite a gruesome image, but that was just a common way for Stefanie to deal with 'undesirable' men that were around. The group recoiled as Marshall pulled a knife. Stefanie blocked the stab attempt and twisted his arm around his back. "So Marshmellow, lose your balls and keep our ammo? Or give us the ammo and stay a man?" Marshall's henchmen pulled guns, then the rest of Stefanie's friends pulled theirs. This was just a little trade negotiation, Stefanie McRae style. "Your choice, my nearly castrated friend."

Solbur00:35, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Assuming control of Riley for a post. Before anyone calls "cop-out", I was asked to do this by TehK. Apparently he planned this out with Weston as well, so I'll assume it's alright...

Riley swore quietly as the metaphorical shit made a graceless impact with the metaphorical fan. Calm the fuck down. Riley mentally insisted, staring intently at the arms dealer. Marshall's face seemed to go blank for a moment, despite the situation, before reverting to its usual, "business" expression. I think you should give us the ammunition. Riley continued. He couldn't really tell whether his thoughts were actually reaching Marshall, which was worrying. There was an uneasy silence as everyone seemed to be expecting some sort of reaction. "Alright," Marshall said through gritted teeth as the pain caught up with him again, "I'll give you the ammunition." With that, he immediately wrested himself from Stefanie's momentarily loosened grip and went about applying a crude torniquet and bandage to his finger-stump, before ramming a shot of Med-X into his wrist. He then motioned for his henchmen to lower their weapons. The group did the same shortly thereafter as one of the goons retrieved the ammo. Sighs of relief were breathed. Riley smirked to himself before bending down and ruffling the fur on Cat's head, looking casual as hell.

KuHB1aM00:42, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Hearing the sounds of arguing next door, Dutch took it that the negotiations weren't working. Taking his katana, he gutted the first two unsuspecting henchman, then turned to face the other two, who had drawn weapons in alarm. Swiftly slashing off the barrel of the man's .44 magnum, he twirled the katana, swiping the man's throat apart with a quick slash, blood spewing everywhere. The last man charged Dutch with a ripper, waving it foward. Taking his katana, Dutch flipped the man over his shoulder, and brought the katana down into his stomach. Pushing it deeper, Dutch withdrew the bloodied sword, and sprinted past the corpses towards Rascon's office, where he noticed there was no fighting. "Oh." Dutch said. "Well, you see..." Dutch said, pointing towards the subway office's direction. "There was some shouting, and I figured that..." Dutch stopped middway, dropping his hand and trailing off. "Fuck." Dutch said, wiping off the blood of his katana. "My bad."

Radiation King00:46, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// COP-OUT. I wanted to see Marshall get emasculated by hand.

Domingo watched with bated breath as the merchant reached down, removed Stefanie's hand from his man-jewels, picked up a box of ammunition with his thugs, and placed it on the counter next to the .30-cal. Domingo looked over at Stefanie and smirked, having not noticed that Riley had worked his 'voodoo' on Rascon. Indeed, the merchant had no belief at all in the powers of the mind; so he just assumed that common sense won through and the man decided to keep his nuts intact. "Good job," he said to his pit fighter comrade, beforep icking up both gun and ammunition and walking out of the metro station, onto the surface and back to El Oso, leading the group with him. Along the way, he noticed Dutch had entirely wiped out the arms dealer's henchmen. All the better for Domingo; less guards meant a higher chance of Rascon getting swept under the rug and Domingo going back to being top dog in the arms smuggling world.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:54, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// HE DID'NT WIPETHEM ALL OUT! I STILL HAVE VICTOR! And other facless henchmen

As for Rascon, he was furious. His soldiers were already dragging away the bodies, but now, he sat down. Waving his good hand, a man stepped out of the shadows that was weilding a Sten that was slienced and had a Ak-47 slung over his back.

"I led them to you. I want my payent."

The man nodded and threw down a bag of caps. Spilling topen the bag, Marshall looked at them. 2,500 caps. All for this spy guy working for the Crusade.

"Well, Mr. Rascon, i'm always in the market for a new job. Names Sevastian. If you excuse me, i have some info to find."

With that, the spy was out the door, sealthily following the group.


The crusade pays well, he thought. 6'00 caps a month to track this group of wanna be heros and give them back info on there movement? Easy. Now, for the harder part. To figure out where they'll strike next. He'll have to join the group, gain there trust. But, not yet. For now, just follow. Later, maybe tomorrow he'll join them and find out more. After all, Sebastian though, The Crusade does pay well.

Twentyfists01:33, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Vladimir had been cleaning his guns when Dutch had attacked the guards. He noticed that, even though he could hear the sounds of something going on, the guards didn't decide to fire on himself, Roland, or Dutch, so everything must be alright. Apparently, Dutch didn't think so. Vladimir shrugged and continued cleaning and maintaining his firearms and tanto. Once he established that no one was really paying attention to him, he moved over, out of sight, and drew out his meteor hammer. Vladimir whirled the weapon experimentally over his head. The balance, weight, and length were superb. Vladimir began spinning and whirling the weapon around his head and body. The meteor hammer flew around at fantastic speeds, whirling, wrapping, and lashing out. To an educated observer, it would appear that Vladimir was performing a form, but he was simply "shadowboxing" with the weapon and testing it out.

Run4urLife!15:20, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob had shot the first guard the instant he heard shouting inside and the noise of a ripper. Good thing he'd been leaning in the doorway. As the second guard had tried to run past, trying to get to safety as Vlad and Dutch unleashed God-knows-what havoc on them, Jacob had ducked low, hamstringed the man and stabbed upwards into the base of his skull with the return stroke. The body slumped, not even a scream. Jacob walked into the others on their way out. He had a Desert Eagle drawn in one hand and an M1911 in the other, looking slightly mismatched. He raised an eyebrow, but Stefanie and Dutch just shook their heads.

Vlad was following along with that meteor hammer thing of his. Jacob had made one of those before. Used a pair of steel weights tied at either end of something called a bungee cord. Vlad's didn't quite have the range of Jacob's jury-rigged version, but it was less unpredictable in its movements. Jacob shrugged and indicated for Vlad to follow. AWA or not, Jacob wasn't having a Warrior Weapon wandering around unchecked.


Jackal, on the other hand, had been having a moment of gross immaturity, while Roland slept on top of El Oso, Jacob leaned in the doorway, and everyone else harassed Rascón. He was sat in the drivers seat of El Oso, looking around at his surroundings through the viewing port, well, it was more like an arrow slit, but whatever, in the front of the tank. It was a terrible view. No wonder Domingo was always so bloody moody and brooding. He was driving a giant chicken coop! Seconds later, Domingo dropped into the tank, while Jacob slapped the side to indicate that they should get moving. Jackal, at a loss of how to drive a tank, let Domingo assume his previous position at the controls, while Jackal took up a gunners position and Jacob walked alongside. Riley took up a seat in the trailer with Cat and Alexis.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:15, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// What is this? Everybody be a ass to Rascon day?
Run4urLife!19:21, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Yup. Wait till you see the pinata Jacob made.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:29, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Comon! Hes a article of the day!
Run4urLife!19:32, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// I said Jacob made a pinata, not that he turned Rascon into one. There's no sense in dangling him from the roof and beating him with a stick when its his day of celebration!
Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:56, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// You all will still pay!

Sebastian was ready.He had his face smeared with camofualge paint, he had the sliencer on and a clip ready to go. All he needed now was for all of them to look away from the Subway tunnel entrance. The tank started up with a bang, and it lurched forward. So far, so good. No for the three people, no two peopleand a dog to look away from him. Agian, he got lucky. Wasting no time, Sebvastin opened the chain link fence and slid into a car. Taking cover behind it, he watched as the tank drove father and farther away. Getting up from behind the tancar, Sebvbastian un-clipped a hand-held Radio from his belt. Sighing, he turned it on, extended the anntee and pushed a button.

"Gather top Base, Gather to base over."

"This is base, go ahead Gather."

"I am now following the targert group. Will attempt to realy postions so a strike team can move in"

"Understood. How was Rascon Gather?"

"Helpful. Send a medic to his postion. He got his pinky on his left hand shot off, poor bastard."

"Roger Gather. Goodluck out there."

With that, Sebastian turned his radio off, classped the Anntee. Unsliging his Ak-47, he begun following the tank treads. Another check in and night time will do good. But, for now, he just had to follow the tank treads.

Cerebral plague20:05, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Jacks bladder is going to stop you one way or another!

Jack got off the tank. He needed to take a leak, and was going to catch up with the tank as soon as possible. Going into some bushes, he started to go. Finishing up, he started to follow the tanks threads, when he saw someone following it. (Jack has a poncho died black, so he would be hard to see at night. ). Sighing to himself, he drew his silenced AK-103, and started to follow the man. Probably had back up somewhere, and might of just been some dumb waster.

KuHB1aM20:14, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Speeding up

Dutch wasn't sleepy. Sure, maybe the rest of the crew, but he, Jacob, and Vlad all had... augmentations. He just wasn't sleepy. As the tank stopped for the night, Dutch started pulling the sleep people out and putting them outside as he grabbed their makeshift blankets and such. Grabbing and Riley and setting the man down, Dutch turned to get Roland as Riley woozily fell on the ground, dead asleep. "C'mon, big guy. We're stopping for the night." Dutch said, looking towards Jack as he signaled he was gonna take a piss. Helping Stefanie out of the truck, Dutch failed to extend a hand to Aaron, who remained in the truck almost completely asleep. Dutch slammed the outside of the tank with his hand, and Domingo popped out. "The folks are gonna be dead weight if we get in a firefight. Just unloaded the cargo." Dutch said, pointing towards the sleepy group grabbing their blankets or whatever they could find. Moving away towards Vlad, Connor, and Jacob, Dutch pulled some broken trees over heavily, then sat them down for use as seating and cover should any fighting go on. "Who wants watch?" Dutch asked, sitting down and drawing his katana, carefully cleaning it yet again.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:25, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

As luck would have it, the idiots started to build a fire. Sure, it was'nt a huige fire, but enough to make himselfg seen if worst came to worst. Luckily, he had repalced his Ak with his Sten, which he then covered with a camofaulged shroud. Taking cover behind a rock, he breifly completned just walking in there, throwing a pipe-bomb, and be done with this. Of course, that was cut short when he sa something he would have never guessed. Someone following him. ONow that he was in the shadows, the person could'nt see him, as he was looking around. The tint of the gun metal gave it away. That, and the smell. Smelt like...dried blood. Slowly drawing his knife, he uttered a prayer to whoever might be listening, for he had blackend the blade. Keeping it ready, now, he had to see if the idiot was going to come look for him agian, or just rejoin his friends. How long has he been following him? Was he CCI backup?

Vegas adict20:31, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis sat bolt upright from his mat on the floor.Somthing was wrong.Still there was no imediate danger it just felt wrong alexis had lernt not to ignore his insticnts after that time when he had been stuck in DC for a few weeks away from civilisation.There was no harm in being causious so he pulled himself up and checked his weapon before siting back down again.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:34, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// *grumble* How does a historian know when he's being followed by a spy? Do you ever know when someone is following you? I THINK NOT!
Vegas adict20:36, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Luck
KuHB1aM20:37, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Time to get yo ass wupped

Motioning to the group that he'd cover their asses while they slept, Dutch sheathed his katana, drew his pistol, and stood up, moving to lean against El Oso's trailer, while everyone relaxed and tried to get some sleep. Dutch could see perfectly, even at night, because of his condition. Two figures to the west; one moving from fifteen feet away and the other from twenty feet away. Neither of them was reacting to seeing Dutch move. Perfect. Dutch would alert them until the last minute, and then he would pounce on them.Brandshing his pistol, he casually twirled it, inspecting the weapon and mock aiming it like a rookie.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:47, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Aww, screw this!

In the glow of the campfire, Sebastian could see a figure with a weapon. With one moving in to look for him and another one guarding the group, Sebastian had to fall back. Crouching, he begin to move slowly, hoping the rookie did'nt spot him. Him, and the one following him. Replacing the bowie knife with his sten gun, Sebastian went down on one knee and looked at his surrodings. He could see something that looked akin to a old clump of trees. He could also see a old pre-war buidling. Sprinting thowards the buidling, Sebastian kuilled the lone inhabit, a Raider. Throwing his body into the forest, he waited out the knight, hoping that no one saw him. If they did, however, they would have to deal with a nasty suripise, a Bear Trap ready to punce on a un-septing person. That, and a rigged shotgun that he luckily did'nt set off while he was taking over the house.


Cerebral plague20:50, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Jack wins the flip coin! Lets see who wins, assassin/commando or spy!

Jack knew the man had looked back at him. He was surprised it had not happened sooner. It seemed dutch was doing something with a pistol, probably impersonating some body he killed. Drawing his Ballistic knife, he slowly started to move toward the camp. Bastard had no idea who he was following. Jack sighed, and started to twirl the knife in his hand. The man started to move, running away toward the house. Jack acted like he didn't notice, aiming the knife at him when his back was turned. Walking over to the camp, he waved to Dutch. "So, should we flip for which one of us gets to blow his brains out?"

KuHB1aM20:59, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I prefer to draw straws, but flipping a coin works as well." Dutch said, acting sarcastic. Motioning for Jack to follow him, Dutch left his weapons back at his duffel, opting to go light with only his M1911 and a ripper. Moving through the brush and away from the relative safety of the camp, Dutch drew his pistol, and began to move towards the building where he could see the man's rad signature slightly, masked by the walls. "You take left, Jack, and back me up. I'm just going to go in there and kill him."

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:10, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Bring it


Cerebral plague21:33, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Yay! Murder is fun!

Jack drew his Assault rifle, and nodded. He headed toward the house, making sure to take the left side. Taking off the safety, he started to walk slower and slower, minimizing the speed in which he walked to lower the sound of his boots hitting the ground.Walking toward the left of the building, he threw a grenade threw the window, and waited for the man to rush out and get killed by dutch.

KuHB1aM21:41, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch stood in front of the doorway as the grenade went off. Dammit Jack! He probably just woke up the entire camp! The grenade exploded, the inside of the building filling with smoke. Moving towards the doorway, Dutch extended his foot, feeling the tripwire go off on a rigged shotgun. The shotgun fired, then all was silent. Looking inside, Dutch peered inside, and backed his head slowly as sten fire filled the doorway, grazing him. "Little bastard grazed me." Dutch said, and extended his ripper past the doorway, trying to get a feel for the direction of the attacker by where he was firing from. However, the man didn't fall for it. Hmm. Putting the ripper away, Dutch decided it was time to end this. Grabbing a flashbang from underneath his jacket, he cooked it up, then rolled it inside. A brightened flash followed by someone who was dazed was all that followed. Stepping inside, Dutch jumped over the bear trap, moved to face his attacker, and used his pistol to slam the man on the side of head, who blocked the blow just barely, then followed up with a counter-blow to Dutch's groin. However, it wasn't enough. Dutch simply recoiled and used his other hand without effort to knock the man unconscious with the palm of his hand. Observing the man, Dutch noted how he was much better equipped than the other assassins sent after him. "Jack, inside! I got him alive!"

--Cerebral plague21:49, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack walked in, and saw the disarmed traps. "Well, shoot him then!" Walking near the spy, Jack took out his .50 magnum and pointed it at the back of the mans head. He wouldn't escape Dutch and Jack, and even if he tried either one of them would make a large hole in his fore head.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:51, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Right before Sevastain lost it and blacked out, everything was Chaos. A grenade had went off and he was saved when he flipped a Couch over it. Then, the shotgun went off. firing his Sten into the doorway, he heard someone shout that he was grazed. Then, the bastard wanted to toy with im byy sticking his ripper out the doorway. He'd seen that trick once before. Fool me once, shame on you. Fool me twice, shame on me. Then, his world went alight. being deaf and nearly blind, he saw a man coming up to him. Throwing his pistol at his head, he tried to block. Too slow. The punch in the balls did'nt work, and n;ow herere he was. Knocked out and unsure what was going on. Great.

KuHB1aM21:54, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch was considering it. In fact, he was going to. But not yet. "Not yet, Jack." Dutch said, and tossed the man's weapons to Jack, who promptly caught them. Searching the man's duffels, he found what he was looking for; documents on the man. But these weren't ordinary; in fact, they bore an AA stamp. Crusade. Dutch pocketed the documents, wrote down the man's name on a piece of paper, stuff it in his pocket, and grabbed the man by the back of his shoulders, dragging him out of the building. Once outside, Dutch slung the man over his shoulder, and began back towards camp with Jack. "It would be foolish to just kill him."

Cerebral plague22:03, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack chuckled. "We should give the little shit to Jacob, and lock the two in the tank. Their won't be nothing left of the bastard in the morning!" Jack started mess around with the guys guns. Knife painted black? Silenced Sten gun? AK-47 with a drum clip? Mother fucker had some odd equipment. It was Jacks now though, maybe one of those merchants back at camp would be interested into it?

Fireman0504

Stefanie was awake after hearing a small commotion out in the darkness. Sounded like some explosions and a bunch of yelling. She couldn't quite tell though. She looked around at Vlad and Jacob, who were staring intently into the darkness, with weapons drawn. She stood up, fitting her own Power Fist onto her hand and popping in a Buffout. Then she noticed that Dutchie and Jack were gone. Where could they be? she thought, considering that they were probably the source of the commotion. Hopefully they were ok. Stefanie stood up and walked over to where the Warrior Weapons were standing, looking, watching, waiting. "What's out there?" she asked.

KuHB1aM22:10, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Put all three of us in there, and the inside of the tank..., well the entire tank would be destroyed." Dutch said. It was almost 2:00 am in the morning. Noting how the frag grenades and gunshots had woken anyone up except for Jacob, Dutch and Jack creeped back into camp, dragging the assassin with him, Jack following up. Tying the man to a log with some rope, Dutch made sure he was tightly secured, and looked towards Stefanie, who was completely confused. "Well, your up early, ma'am." Dutch said, trying not to wake up the rest of the group. He gestured towards the captive.

Twentyfists22:24, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Huh, so that's what's making all the ruckus," Vladimir said. He gestured with his scoped G3A3. "I couldn't see the bastard from here. Lucky thing you saw him, and that Jack took so long in getting back from taking a piss." Vladimir was slightly irked. He should have seen the man before they set up camp. If Dutch and Jack hadn't seen him, Vladimir was sure the man would have eliminated much of the camp. Vladimir extended his hand to Dutch. "Nice job there, Shades," he said, complementing the man. They had gotten off on the wrong foot, and Dutch seemed like a good enough guy.

User:Ramsey22:36, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

He's with them. He's here for your blood, your life, your soul. He's killed all that you've loved and cherished, and yet he still walks without a hint of regret. Kill him. Take his life for all the lives he has taken. An eye for an eye.

Aaron woke up in a flash, slightly confused by his strange dream. His mother had always told him that dreams were prophecies, that they meant something. Although Jean was dead, and she wasn't his true mother. It was unmistakable that the man in his dreams was the Enclave man with them, Dutch Holmes. One side of Aaron craved his blood, his death. The other side, likely the more reasonable side, stated to give him a chance, let him prove himself not to be a soulless bastard. Of course, as with most revenge-crazed people, the first side was the dominate. Riley and the others were still sleeping, with the exception of Stefanie. He heard chatter outside the trailer, and he could've sworn that he heard gunfire earlier. Putting his shirt on, Aaron stepped out into the night sky. Holmes, Jacob, Vlad, Jack, and Stefanie were all outside, along with an unconscious stranger. Jacob and Stefanie turned to greet him, "Mourning" Jacob said, sarcastically. Aaron scratched his head.

"What was all that commotion a few minutes ago?" Aaron looked behind Jacob to see the tied up man, "And who the hell is that?"

KuHB1aM22:44, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Wow... Aaron really hates Dutch, doesn't he? Then again, he doesn't stand a chance, lol.

Dutch took Vlad's hand, shook it, and patted his resident captive on the back. "Little bastard grazed my cheek." Dutch said, brushing his hand on his cheek and coming away with blood. Then he noticed Aaron looking at him again with disapproval and a strange look of vengeance in his eyes. Dutch passed by Vlad, patting him on the back, and moved towards Aaron, who stared at Dutch with massive enmity. Pushing his shades down, Dutch stared his blank eyes into Aaron. "I presume you have something to say to me. Unless you want me to persuade you to tell me." Dutch said, flexing his hand and balling it in a fist to intimidate Aaron, who blinked, but still remain defiant. Replacing his sunglasses, Dutch knew this man wasn't going to say anything. Over-confident coward.

Radiation King22:57, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roland walked softly over to the two standoffish men, edging bteween the two. The merchant knew if he were to end up in a head-on confrontation between himself and Dutch, he had zero chance of winnint, but at least he would slow Dutch down, and maybe give Aaron a chance to escape if he didn't 'tard out and attempt to attack the blind Warrior Weapon. "No fighting," he reminded the two angry guys before he backed out of the argument and sat down back in the trailer.


--Cerebral plague23:00, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Our captive Aaron. Now, I suggest we play a little game. Each one of us goes up to torture the man, the first one that breaks him gets the guns he carried with him." Jack took out the die he had in his pocket, and started to etch the initials of each group member into it. "Now, who wants to roll the die?"

KuHB1aM23:04, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I don't consider it fighting, Roland. More like a pre-disposed duel of sorts." Dutch said, then moved to sit back down near his weapons. Removing his jacket and leaving only his undershirt on, Dutch rubbed his chest where his old wound's bandages were, grabbed a seat on a log next to his captive, and quieted himself down, and began humming "I Don't Want to Set the World on Fire to himself while cleaning his katana yet again in an OCD manner. Looking towards Jack, he shook his head. "Not quite yet. What good would come from torturing him while's he's basically asleep?"

Cerebral plague23:11, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// We shoot him in the legs till he wakes up then!
User:Ramsey23:12, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Aaron hates Dutch because he has a strong hate for the Enclave. And he is halfly Schizophrenic, causing some massive Paranoia.

Ignoring Roland pass by, Aaron continued to star into Dutch's blind eyes. "You know what your people have done, you've probably done some of it yourself." Dutch's eyebrow rose. Aaron continued, "Your people have made my home into a living fragment of hell, a shithole of pain, despair, and suffering. I've seen your people fucking murder children in plain sight of their mothers, going by without a single hint of regret." At this time he nearly shouting, but made sure the others didn't hear. He didn't want to cause a scene. Holmes simply sat, humming a pre-war tune. "You fucking disgust me, I have the right mind to-" Aaron's hand was on his shotgun, ready to blow the bastards face off, but he was interrupted by Roland, who had stepped in before Aaron made quite a mistake. Aaron breathed deep and walked over to the rest of the group, who were busy messing with the poor captive. Roland asked Aaron what the was about, but he waved him off, telling him it was nothing. If Aaron was going to kill that bastard, it wasn't going to be here. Dutch walked over to the group aswell and began to talk to Jack.

But what did the man do? Aaron hadn't known him until a week ago. No, no, no, he was evil to the core. He had to be.

KuHB1aM23:19, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch grinned. "Now here's a man with some balls." Dutch said, standing up unarmed as Aaron's hand went for his shotgun. He moved up to Aaron again until he was breathing in his face. "Your parents must've dropped you on your head or something, bud." Dutch said, poking Aaron in the chest. "So yeah, I'm an Enclave. Damn near the worst kind of Enclave. Gonna shoot me up some wasters, yes I am." Dutch said sarcastically, inciting Aaron's anger to the point where the man would foolishly pick a fight with him. "Gonna shoot the fuck out of the Brotherhood, yes I am." Dutch said. He wasn't being sarcastic about that last tidbit either. He was seriously gonna fuck up the Brotherhood. He stared at Aaron, his face showing delight and chuckling. "I presume you have that shotgun loaded." Dutch said, testing him. "I am unarmed, buddy. You so angry, go ahead and shoot. Hell, your probably doing me a favor." Dutch said, smiling.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:21, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Sebastian beagun to wake up,. Sure, he was still groggy and his head hurt like hell, but, he was awake. For better or for worse. What he saw though made him groan. The same two guys that brought hm here in the first place, and then the rest of the group he was spying on. There as one that he saw before. Jack, was it? Yeah. Same guy at the Rascon place. Same with most of the others. Now, he was captured. Alive, and with his geasr gone.

"Alkright, since you all want to play sadsitc gamer with me, should i just let you guyskill me, or can we work something out?"

--Cerebral plague23:24, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack rolled the die, landed on the initials J.D. Jack Damask, that was him. Walking over to the prisoner, he smiled. "Well then, were going to torture you for a little while, then were going to brutally kill you, or let you go. Depends on how many limbs you have left at the end of it." The prisoner seemed unscathed, this was going to be fun. Drawing his knife,

Twentyfists23:28, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Sorry, edit conflict. Vladimir does what he wants, though, so just roll with it.

"Well, look who's awake!" Vladimir sneered. He'd seen this man's tags. Crusade. Vladimir remembered those Crusade assholes from Nevada. They were as bad as the Raiders. Time to make them pay, one man at a time. Vladimir walked over to him. "'Let us kill you'? Did you really just say that? You don't 'let' us do anything. We do what we want. And, by God, if we decide that we're going to fucking kill you, we'll fucking let you know, by fucking killing you. Learn your place, boy, lest the men teach you a lesson." With this, Vladimir swung his hand, hard and fast, slapping the spy across the face, just like how he would use a four-finger rake in combat. Painful and humiliating.

KuHB1aM23:28, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch turned towards the captive, moved Jack and Vlad aside, took his hand, and flogged him off the back side of the face. His Enclave instincts were taking over. Bending down to the tied man's face level, Dutch ripped off his mask and hood, revealing a scarred man. Flogging him again, Dutch motioned for everyone except for Jacob, Vlad and Jack to go about their business, preferably out of sight. He turned towards the man again. "The name is Holmes. You, my friend, are Sebastian Vakas. But for now, I'm just gonna call you Asshole." Holmes said, and punched Asshole across the face, bloodying him.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:34, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Shit!"

Sebastian manged to gasp out. His mask and hood were off. His mask over on the grund, his hood back to where it normally is when its not on his head. Of course, by now he had a broken nose, he was bleeding from the lips. Next was problay going to be a black eye.

"And..i'll call you princess. You'd like that, would'nt you? Hitting a defenless person princeness, 'eh?"

Sebastian manged to wheeze that out before taking a punch in the gut.

Cerebral plague23:37, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Yes, the stool appeared from no where

Jack just punched the man in the gut. Annoying ass hole was what he was. Spying a near by stool, Jack went over and grabbed it. Walking over, he swung it at the spies head, breaking it and bloodying the mane even more. "Do you want me to find another stool, or will you tell us what you know?"

KuHB1aM23:38, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Asshole." Dutch said, and swung another punch, hitting him directly across the face near the eye, hitting him with such force that a small gash appeared. "Now, Mr. Asshole, this 'princess' will wupp your ass. And you try anything, Sunshine, Cupcake, and Big Bertha over there will fuck you up aswell, ok?" Dutch said, referring to the trio next to him. He slammed his fist into Asshole's face, then took his other hand and punch his face in a reverse direction. By this time, Asshole was pretty fucked up.

Twentyfists23:45, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Hey, hold it, Princess!" Vladimir said. "Sunshine here wants to have a little fun too." With this, Vladimir balled his hand into a fist and smashed it onto the spy's head in a downward hammerfist, then boxed him across the ears. Vladimir stood and addressed Dutch, making a mock bow as he did so. "Your highness, permission to start drawing blood with my knife here?" he asked, motioning towards his tanto.

KuHB1aM23:50, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

Doing a mock curtsie, Dutch motioned for Vlad to take his turn. "Consider it an official royal order, Sunshine." Dutch said, smirking. He looked towards Asshole. "I told ya so, Asshole. Unless you want to say something that can plead your case to the royal court." Dutch said, grabbing his jacket and putting it on. He bent down to Asshole. "I'd reconsider. Sunshine over there is pretty hand with a knife." Dutch said, and walked off for a moment, grabbing four beers from the trailer. Tossing them to Vlad, Jacob, and Jack, he sat down next to Asshole, drinking the beer right next to him. "Mmmm."

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:53, 21 May 2009 (UTC) 

"No need to, you guys won."

Swebastin spat out a glob of blood on the ground, his head down. He knew he could'nt take much more. Eventtly, it would just get worst and worst and he would then die. His boy would grow up wwithout his father, which he kinda is. At least when he's doing this job he's sending money back to his son. now, to hope that they don't kil lhim outright. Who knows, maybe the Crusade might know that's he trouble. Problay not, but, hey. You never know.

"I'll talk. "

KuHB1aM23:58, 21 May 2009 (UTC)// Traitor! You broke!!! Now the Crusade is compromised, fool!

"Good." Dutch said, and pulled out Asshole's documents he had pocketed earlier. "I've been reviewing your contract, Asshole. You've got military bounties on me, Jacob, and at least a half of the group. You've also got orders to capture me, Jacob, Connor Strauss, and Jack and send us specifically to Norfolk with the intention of capture." Dutch said, throwing the documents on the ground and stepping on them in the dust of the night. "They gave you a suicide mission." Dutch said, laughing slightly.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:05, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Your hired a freelancer! Deal with it! lol.

"Well, someones got to pay for my son. I mean, what am i supposed to do? Scrap 10 caps together a month, or get 600 caps a month? Sure, i'm not around all the time to watch him grow up, but, at least i put food on the table."

Seabstin was now look up a Dutch. Odd, now that he realized it. they sai that he was blind. But, he seemed to be a very good fighter.

"Now, if it was suicde, maybe. I was just going to watch you guys, but, then you guys started to find me. I holed up in the building over there, but, being the hwros you are, you just had to pull me out, did'nt you?"

--Cerebral plague00:09, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I find it ironic Mr. Sebastian. That you, are telling us that you kill people for money, and then want us to pity you for having a son." Jack drew his .50 magnum, and blew out the mans knee cap. "Tell us everything you know about the Crusade, or I blow out the other knee."

KuHB1aM00:17, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Going offline after this.]]

Dutch smiled. "I'm no hero. Farthest thing from it, Asshole." Dutch said, throwing his beer aside. He looked off to the stars above. "I don't care what you actually came for. I neutralize threats. You were armed. I was bored." Dutch said, looking back down at Asshole. He picked up the crumpled orders. "This is self-explanatory. Your a professional, but not one of my level. Nor the trio." Dutch said, gesturing to his companions. "I presume that, even if you didn't know, CCI is observing you right now. Which means we are being watched." Dutch said, drawing his katana and standing up. CCI always sent observers; more specifically, CCI snipers, to hound their bounty hunters should they be captured. Dutch looked off into the night. There was nothing. No. That's not right. Then he saw it. Three figures. One-hundred yards. DKS-501s? Yeah. Body Armor? BRAs, A2. "Jacob, Vlad, Jack, we've got company. CCI." Dutch said. His sight, however, was at it's very limits. What he saw could be more or less than the actual number.

--Cerebral plague00:30, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack was off running by the time Dutch said "Sniper". He had gone to the house in which the spy had hidden earlier. Jack reached the house, and gone in. It was still their, the whole in the wall which lead to a road. On that road their was a bus, covering him until a bush. Quite lucky was he that day, as he ran at the bus. No gun shots, they hadn't seen him yet. Going for the bush, Jack tried to keep low. It seemed that these guys were focused on the duo interrogating the man. Jack was close enough to use the M79 grenade launcher. Dutch would signal him too shoot, and the snipers had little chance of seeing a man thirty feet away, hiding in bushes, wearing a poncho that covered most of him. He was a shadow in the dark, waiting for the bitches to make a mistake.

Fireman0504

Stefanie turned as a single shot rang out. She felt a stabbing pain, like white hot fire in her chest. Time seemed to move in slow motion with dead silence as she watched the rest of her friends get up and scatter. She felt weightless and short of breath as well as a weakness that gripped her knees. Her world began to turn slowly sideways as she saw someone mouthing something to her. She couldn't tell who it was. She felt a wetness begin to form around the pain as she looked up into the starry night. She tilted her head back further and further until she finally felt her back hit the hard rocky ground. Stefanie McRae allowed her eyes to close as she layed motionless, gasping for breath. Trying to get all the oxygen to her body she could. She felt the blood pool on the ground around her.

--Cerebral plague01:26, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Stephanies dead? Well, this causes a time paradox.
--Fireman050401:29, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// She's not dead if someone does something about it.
--Cerebral plague01:36, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Jack will avenge you

Jack heard a gun shot. Probably from the snipers, Jack blew their asses back to hell with his grenade launcher. Running up the hill towards the snipers position, he noticed Stefanie was bleeding in the middle of the camp while every one else was taking cover from the snipers. Sighing, he started running down the hill as people soon started to notice the bleeding woman. Soon, Riley was at her body, desperately trying to heal the injured woman. Another man was next to him, and with Riley and his voodoo and the mans healing skills, Stefanie would be alright. Maybe.

Twentyfists01:37, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// I don't think so, Jackie. She's not dead yet. Chivalry, to arms!

Vladimir swore as Stefanie dropped. He asked the woman if she was alright. That was stupid. She made no response, and the gasps for breath she made obviously meant something was wrong, especially as they pushed the blood out of her body. Vladimir, in the heat of the moment, suddenly invoked all that he knew about chivalry. He sprinted to the wounded woman's body and stabbed one of very few stimpacks into her stomach, and another around her collarbone. "Come on girly," he said, "this isn't a good place for you right now." The Cossack scooped her up and sprinted to the cover of El Oso. Once there, he began to go to work. The woman was bleeding. That was bad. Vladimir saw that the bullet had lodged in her body. Vladimir tentatively attempted to dig it out with his tanto, but went against it. Instead, he grabbed a length of burning mass and used it to cauterize the woman's wound. That would do, for now. Just to be sure, though, Vladimir took out a length of bandage and wrapped it around the woman. Hopefully, that would work.

--Cerebral plague01:50, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

Riley went for Stefanie. Jack looking from the hill, noticed what he was doing. Vlad was trying to heal her the best he could, but then came the psychic dude to the rescue. Bastard had a first aid kit, the rarest thing you could probably find in the wasteland. Bastard went to work, removing the bullet part psychic, part knife. Bandaging the girl up, he seemed relieved. Little guy had the medic genes alright.

Riley ran over to Stephenie, the girl barely breathing. Taking his med kit out, he tried to remove the bullet with Telekinesis, but soon realized how dangerous that would of been. Switching to a small knife, Riley got the bullet out quite soon, all the while trying to reach Stephenies mind. Stephenie, can you hear me? Everything is going to be alright, got it? Nearly done with the bullet removal.

Fireman0504

Stefanie felt nothing. Or was it an inkling of nothing. But nothing was something right? No, nothing was nothing. She looked around her as she stared straight ahead. All the wonders of the sky laid out before her. She heard the whispers of a friendly voice. She felt her breathing slow and then felt it speed up. She felt blood leaving her, but at the same time blood being made. The white hot fire that had been present a second ago turned cold as ice as she listened closely to every single beat of her fluttering heart. She felt weightless as she stood wide-eyed gazing upon familiar faces. She saw her parents. Could it be? No, it couldn't. Where exactly was she? She had no idea. They seemed to be pushing her away. What was happening? She felt a tingle in her chest. Like she wanted to breath, but it just wasn't there. She tried again. Nothing. She tried a final time, inhaling as deep as she could for as long as she could. Nothing. She mustered up all the strength she could and tried one last time.


Stefanie gasped deeply and writhed in agony as her eyes fluttered open. She felt absolute pain wash over her and began to cry as she looked at the familiar faces staring at her. She remembered instantly where she was and who they were. She'd never experienced a wound this traumatic or this painful and she'd never been as close to death as she just had been. Now only two things were on her mind:pain and vengeance. The latter would have to wait as the former took precidence. She breathed in heavily and felt excruciating pain at her movement. Then bliss as someone injected her with a Med-X, then a Stimpak. She could hear gunfire and yelling, but couldn't help. She was alive. She breathed deeply again as the events went on around her.

KuHB1aM10:28, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch drew his Tar-21, adjusted the ACOG scope behind the cover of El Oso's trailer, and tossed another stimpak to Riley, who caught it hurriedly and jammed it in a second time into after the Med-X. Turning around the corner, Dutch knew his CQC skills would be useless from this range. Poking the weapon around the corner, he began an advance through the brush, being careful to put objects between him and the snipers. Where are you? Dutch continued looking for the first of the snipers. The shot had come from this direction. He knew it. They had to be here somewhere. Then he missed it. A simple tripwire. Easily avoiding the frag grenade loosened from the dead tree, Dutch barely had time to role away before automatic fire began spraying him. Trying not to get shot up too much, Dutch dove behind the tripwire tree, poked around the other side, and found his first target, hidden in the bushes. Aiming and letting loose a three round burst, Dutch felt adrenaline return as the figure dropped, blood coming out of his masked face. His orange eyes were lifeless, and he dropped silently. However, there were still two more. Well, at least I'm close to them now. Dutch thought, and drew his katana and M1911, putting away his assault rifle. He had always preferred handguns and swords.

Radiation King11:20, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Oh, gracias mis dios! Muchas gracias!" Domingo shouted as he leapt out of the cockpit of El Oso and down to the ground, a sniper's bullet pinging off the chassis behind him. He smiled, wrapping Stefanie up in an embrace. You know, the kind bears use to crush their targets to death.

"I thought you were dead!" Domingo said, somewhere between fatherly worry and joy at the pit fighter's newfound lease on life.

Solbur14:49, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Sorry for not posting all of yesterday

Strauss watched as Dutch made a move on one of the snipers. That was two left. Cranking up the dial on the side of his Laser Rifle to its maximum setting, he paused to look at Domingo and Stefanie before leaving his cover (in the form of a large rock not too far away from the tank) and rushing towards one of what he suspected was a sniper's position, flicking down his helmet's scope as he did so. This shouldn't be too hard. After all, Power Armor was built to replace tanks in the field, right? He clamped one eye shut and, with the other, stared down his scope as he lined up a shot. He squeezed the trigger once and watched as the sniper's cover seemed to melt in a burst of red light, steam of the miniscule amounts of moisture that had accumulated from the air around his rifle's barrel filling his vision momentarily. There was still a good fifty yards between them. Suddenly, a gunshot rang out.

Strauss tapped his still-intact chest armour, then raised the same hand and flipped off the air.

"Hey dumbass! Ya missed! Aim for the head next time! Shit, don't they teach you anythin' in sniper school!"

He immediately took cover behind a conviniently positioned thick tree-trunk as another shot came in his direction, and turned down the dial on his rifle to its standard setting. Another shot at full power would probably melt the barrel. Such was the problem with retrofitting new features onto weapons. He almost flinched as he realised that a frag grenade was hanging from a string on a shrivelled treebranch, so, rather than trip the wire he couldn't quite see, he grabbed it, pulled free the pin and launched it in the direction he'd last seen one of the snipers. Hopefully Dutch would be doing a better job.

Vegas adict17:52, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis looked on as dutch and Strauss atacked the snipers.Stefanine had been hit but it looked like she was ok.Another bulet flew past his head.Shit he thought that was close.Another shot impacted with the shoulder piece of his armor.Stupid fool should have aimed for the head or a joint where his armour was weekest.He jumped down into the relative cover of the rocks around the tank and started the warm up period on his rifle.He saw that to the left of him strauss was shoting the snipers ans alexis moved towards him.As his rifle's dial moved from charging to ready he raised the antique weapon and fired a single shot in the direction of the snipers.The kick was imperesive and the flash of lite the weapon gave half blinded him.Crouching down neer the tank he set his weapon to recharge.

Run4urLife!18:10, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal had been in cover, watching the snipers. He had watched as Dutch and Jacob moved up towards the bastards with their glowing eyes. He had watched, helplessly as the snipers rained lead on him and his friends. Then he had seen the shot hit Stefanie. Something had snapped just then. Something he hadn't felt in over seventy years returned to him in a flash of fire and God-knows-what. The need to kill. It went beyond the desire to kill these guys for capping Stefanie. They had to pay for that. Darting from tree to tree, he outpaced the tripwired explosives as they fell. His heart was pounding, that old berserker streak boiling violently back to the surface after he had spent so long trying to deny his Feral side.

Jacob rolled over and opened fire to cover the venerable Ghoul, who was moving at a speed the group had only seen from Jacob and the other Warrior Weapons. The sniper was desperately reloading as Jackal bore down on them like some flash of lightning, bearing steel-edged death in each hand as the ancient Ghoul drew his machete in his right hand and his SCM sword in his left. Years spent among the university Martial Arts clubs came back to Jackal like old friends. Clumsily flourishing the blades, Jackal knocked the sniper's weapon to the side, stabbed with the sword, then the machete, and finally made the coup de gras by sweeping both weapons around and decapitating the bastard. He turned back, watching as Stefanie struggled to her feet. Jackal exhaled heavily. Had he been holding his breath the whole time? His lungs felt like they were burning, so it was quite likely that he had been. He dived for cover as more snipers opened up. Jacob just stared after the maniacal Ghoul, while Dutch and Vlad seemed to go into goldfish mode, lips flapping, but no words coming out. Jackal ignored the stares and sat down against a boulder, shots cracking over his head. He was getting waaay too old for this shit.

KuHB1aM18:14, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Yo Run, are we still gonna finish the battle parts, or should we skip ahead to All My Sins Remembered?

Skillfully dodging enemy fire as the snipers switched to automatic weaponry, Dutch rolled face to face with the closest marksman, coming directly into contact with his fiery orange eyes and rebreather mask. "Hey there, beautiful." Dutch said, smiling, and slammed his fist into the man's mask, ripping off his mask and revealing his balaclava. Basically wrestling him into the ground, Dutch punched the man several times in reverse directions, then broke his wrist as he tried to grab his .357. Grabbing the man's own handgun, Dutch fired the Deagle into the man's face, wiped off the blood now all over his face, hair (he doesn't wear that stupid hat from the pic, if you're wondering that), and jacket, and jumped up, aiming the Deagle at the last opponent, this one's cover... vaporized? Aiming directly at the soldier, Dutch motioned with his head for the man to stand up, his hands raised. As soon as the man turned around, Dutch grabbed him on the shoulder, shoved him in the direction of the building where they had seized Asshole, and motioned to the group that he would take care of it. Shoving the soldier into the house, Dutch kicked his knees out, dropping the soldier into the floor. Taking the .357, Dutch put it up to the soldier's head, who was whispering some sort of prayer with a picture in his hands. Ignoring it, Dutch did the merciful thing any Enclave soldier would do; he shot the man in the back of the head, emptying the clip into his body. Bastard. They were traitors of the worst kind. Sure, they were brothers, but the fact they hadn't bothered to even contact friendlies, and had then gone on an unsanctioned genocide was unacceptable. Tossing the weapon onto the man, Dutch swiftly turned out the door, fixing his clothes and sunglasses and walking out.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:54, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

As for Sebastin, hwe was still cowering near the tr,ee, bassicly hugging it, to make sure that no bullets would hit him. Of course, some people would still kick him when they walked by, wehit on accident or on purpose. Now that the gunfire ended, Sebastian peeked over his cover. Seeing the man that captured him, Dutch, was it? Yweah. Walk back to the camp, he sighed/ groanded. If this was going like he thought it would be, there would be more beatings, or, more questions.

Twentyfists20:47, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

Vladimir had not been idle while Dutch was dealing with the problem. Far from it. He had seen a ripple or something in the distance, and closer examination revealed those ripples to be stealth fields. Judging by looks, there appeared to be three of them. Vladimir had no idea how long the stealth fields had been running, but it was a safe bet that they weren't going to be running much longer. Vladimir drew one of his Glocks and stepped around the edge of the tank in one fluid motion. He spoke to the figures as he leveled his pistol at them. "Excuse me, but entrance to this camp is by invitation only. Time for you to go."

The figures did not even respond, instead rushing forward towards the lone Cossack. Vladimir fired off two shots, quickly dropping the first CCI sneaker. The second took three bullets, but they apparently struck nothing vital. Vladimir felled the man, though, by striking him hard in the side of the head with the butt of his pistol. By that time, the third man had already closed distances with Vladimir, just his stealth field powered down. The CCI spy carried a Trench Knife and was poised to strike.

Vladimir dodged back to gain a little time, then holstered his pistol. Before he had time to draw his tanto, the CCI fighter struck again. Vladimir narrowly caught a quick stab, then tried to respond with a strike of his own. The fighter dodged. Both Vladimir and the spy traded blows, the spy switching hands and striking with a variety of slashes and stabs, while Vladimir threw ridgehands, knifehand strikes, backfists, and punches. Suddenly, the man stabbed a narrow gash into Vladimir's stomach with a quick stab. Vladimir gasped as the pain shot through his body. Vladimir's vision blurred slightly, but he was still standing and ready to fight. Before the man could strike a killing blow, Vladimir caught his hand and threw a brutal palm-heel strike into the man's face. The strike broke his nose, shoving up into his face and into his brain. The man went cross eyed and fell as his blood gushed over Vladimir's hands. Vladimir had won. He sat down and began the process of repairing his wounds.

Vegas adict20:57, 22 May 2009 (UTC) 

While the others had been fighting alexis was sitting in cover waiting for his Mk1 Laser Rifle to recharge.The light flicked back to ready and he scaned the imediate area for posible hostiles.To the left of him was a glimmer that he first dissmised as a heat wave.Turning back though he noticed that the glimmer was moving towards dutch.A man in a stealth boy.Using the full power of his rifle he fired one shot at the glimmer,there was a whump and the man turned to ash.

User:Ramsey22:44, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Going offline for maybe a day or so, just RP Aaron along.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:55, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Mmm'kay. Speaking of RP...i'm kinda waiting to see what someone will do to Sebastain after the shootings done...
Run4urLife!23:02, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Jacob's gonna throw a fridge at him
Twentyfists23:03, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// While Vladimir smokes the joint of power.
KuHB1aM23:06, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Maybe the Warrior Weapons should make a theme song. Hmm. Well, we already set the world on fire a second time, we stung more than the bee's stinging the stingiest, so what else can we do?
Twentyfists23:09, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// "Maybe" they'll kill you!
Run4urLife!23:12, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Their theme song is is already set. Domination by Pantera
Radiation King23:14, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Well, they are "Mighty, Mighty Men" after all. And how about something by Lamb of God instead?
Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:16, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Scream by Avenged Sevenfold seems...fitting.
Run4urLife!23:20, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// No Shelter by Rage Against the Machine might be better.
Twentyfists23:29, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Lamb of God? "One Gun", definitely.
Run4urLife!23:32, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Not a Lamb of God fan. I'll stick with Domination
Twentyfists23:29, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Don't know what that is. Now, before the edit conflict. Of course, Indestructible, Sacred Lie, Violence Fetish, or Fear, all by Disturbed, are good choices.

If you're gonna go Sevenfold, use the Waking the Fallen tracks, as that's A7X's best album. Of course, I believe this may be the song of choice

Run4urLife!23:43, 22 May 2009 (UTC)// Domination by Pantera. Its a good song, and suitably brutal-sounding
Twentyfists00:13, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// My post isn't showing. :(
Run4urLife!00:18, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Fixed
Radiation King00:27, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Time for a page 6?

Act 6[]

Radiation King00:52, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// It's thick in the air, the irony.

His reunion with Stefanie over, Domingo quickly broke the embrace and ran for the cockpit. "If those snipers are dispatched like it sounds like they were," The merchant said, "then we've probably got very little time to move on out of here." Tabbing on the ignition, El Oso and her mighty floodlights roared to life. He called out to Dutch, Vladimir and anyone else who was interested in retaining their lives, he shouted: "Come on, time to go! Train's leaving!"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster01:03, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Ahem?"

Sebastian was still tied to the tree trunck that Dutch AKA "Princess" had tied him to. Of course, he would'nt really care if he was left, but, it would suck since he was also tied to a tree. And he was starting to loose circulation in his hand, in which case, he would later have to cut it off. But, since he did'nt have a knife, he would have to bite it off. And Sebastian REALLY did'nt want to do that.

"So, you guys going to leave me here, or, do i get to go along for the ride?"

Radiation King01:12, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roland strode over to the Crusade spy and handed him a pocket knife and injected him with a Stimpak before clasping the bladed implement in his right hand. "Use it to cut the restraints. By the time you're through, we'll be good and gone. I'll see you again some day, maybe." And then Roland was walking toward the trailer of El Oso.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster01:17, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

"T-t-thanks! Holy shit, Thanks!"

Sebastian simply sat there, Mouth a-gap. A guy was simply giving him his freedom? Sure, he had no suppiles, but, FREEDOM! He could go away. Hell, the Crusade problay thought he was dead. Of course, he could try to re-pay his debt he owes to that man. But, he wil do that. He has to. But for now, to get the ropes off.


KuHB1aM02:11, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Lol, "applied correctly."

"Hold on one second." Dutch said, striding back over to Sebastian. Taking the pocket knife, he placed it on the ground just an inch away from his reach, then punched him in the face one last time for good measure. That being said, Dutch jumped back into the trailer, slammed on the trailer wall to signal Domingo, and sat back down, taking a seat next to Stefanie. Checking to see that her bandages were applied correctly, he grabbed his duffel, placed it underneath the bench, and yawned, grabbing a blanket. He really needed some sleep.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster02:22, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

Agian, Sebastian was specchless. His chance of freedom was out of reach. It...was...out...of...reach. He tried nearly everything. Reaching as far as he could, wiggling the rope so it slide down as far as it could down his wrist which was'nt very far, even trying to use his feet to grab it. Nothing worked. The knife came closer, but, it was still out of reach. Luckily, he had already went to work. Maybe he could bite through the ropes. Sighing, Sebastian began chewing on the rope that was keeping his wrist attached to the tree. It might take a hour or so, but, he will get free. However, there was something he needed to say.

"FUCK YOU PRINCENESS!"

After yelling that, he went back to chewing on the rope in order to free himself from this bondage. He will get free, and when he does, he is going to get revenge. Not on the man that tried to help him, no no. Just on Dutch Homles. If that was the last thing he ever did, he was going to get revenge.

Fireman0504

Stefanie grimmaced at every little bumb as she was jostled around in the trailer. She was vaguely aware that someone had helped her into the trailer. The pain was still so intense that she couldn't quite recall who. To her left, Dutchie was falling asleep. She had remembered opening her eyes to see Riley and Vlad applying meds and dressings before Vlad ran off and Domingo jumped off El Oso, wrapping her in a hug. All this time she thought she meant nothing to anyone but money, sex, or a pair of fists. These were real friends. Friends who'd risk it all to get her out of harm's way. She owed them much. Even Dutchie had cared for her. She tapped him on the shoulder and smiled at him, though she didn't know if he could see it. "Thanks Dutchie, for checking on me," she said. Dutch grinned, "I just didn't want you to get blood on my jacket." He rolled back over as Stefanie chuckled. Across the trailer, Jackal was cleaning and sharpening his blades. He smiled that ghoul smile of his. She was starting to think of him as a sort of fatherly figure, though she figured he didn't give that much of a damn. He'd probably met so many folks in his 200 odd years, what was a strange former slave to him? Oh well. Glad you pulled through she heard a voice in her head. Riley was smiling too. She owed him a lot. She also owed Vladimir. Were it not for his chivalry, she'd've bled out in the middle of camp. She owed everyone a lot. She promised herself she'd find a way to repay them all. She grimmaced again and closed her eyes for the night. She just needed to get better first. The bullet had been removed, so with any luck, she'd be back to her old face stomping self within a few weeks, maybe even a few days if she was lucky.

KuHB1aM11:53, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Run4, we gotta finish up the Crusade part of the story.

Yawning, Dutch tossed the blanket over his head, trying to maintain some level of awareness. It wasn't that he wanted to fall asleep; it was just he was used to being on guard duty, or in a trench line fighting at night. Instead, he was probably in the safest spot in the entire wasteland, riding in the back of a run-down tank trailer with several wasters armed to the teeth with who know's what. Subconsciously, he was still a soldier of the Enclave; he still owed a sovereign duty to the President, former President Eden, and former President Richardson. He owed allegiance to the Enclave Armed Forces. He was supposed to be killing Crusaders and burning settlements right now. How was he serving his duty by simply removing raiders and scum who could be doing the job for him. Consciously however, his loyalty to the Enclave wasn't absolute. Loyalty, however boundless it seemed, was never absolute. No. What are you thinking? Stop the trailer. Leave. You need to. Dutch's mind was screaming mixed thoughts. No. Stay in the trailer. You have something you never had in the Enclave. You have friends now. Dutch couldn't take it anymore. His mind was being bombarded with mixed thoughts and feelings. "Dammit!" Dutch roared, slamming his head and fist against the trailer and gritting his teeth. "Stop the trailer! Stop it right now!" Dutch said, grabbing his duffel. The tank stopped as Domingo popped up from the top of his tank. Hopping out of the trailer, Dutch grabbed his blanket and duffel. Taking them in his arms, he simply left the trailer. "Where the hell are you going?" Weston yelled after him, the group watching. "Jerusalem." Dutch said, turning back briefly. "I am a soldier of the Enclave, Weston." Dutch said as Weston walked up to him. "No your not. You haven't been ever since you popped up in the hidey hole. Hell, you're the farthest thing fro----." Weston's sentence was cut short as Dutch grabbed him by the collar, lifting him up. "I am a soldier of the Enclave, loyal to General Ibram Chase, the Enclave Armed Forces, and most of all, first and foremost to the President. You got that, scrubs?" Dutch said, dropping Weston, who backed up a bit, wide-eyed. Turning away again, Weston called after him. "Where are you going?" Weston asked him. Dutch replied "Jerusalem." Moving off in the direction of urban D.C., he once again moved through the wastes.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster12:40, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Shit..."

Weston said trhrough his gritted teeth. He did'nt apporve of beating up the Spy, even though he was following him. I mean...he was still a human being, in a way. Rubbing the back of his neck, he had mixed emotions. Dutch was his friend, after all, but...he just could'nt. He could'nt do back. He had spent hours hiding in a ruined raider camp so the could ambush a Crusade Patrol. Then, he had to run longer then he ever had to run, and faster he ever ran before in order to get away from the mortars that fell down onto him. He still walked with a slight limp because of a piece of shrapnel. He...he clubbed a man to death with a butt of his assualt rifle...he...watched them die. He pulled McRae out of a crashed VTOL. He still had nightmares. At first, he was everynight. Then, it came everyfew days. Now, it comes maybe once a month. But, he could'nt. The voices of the dead shouted at him, SCREAMDED at him, asking one question "Why?". Why did he join up with the group, Why did he take shots that the other group could have taken. Why did he even find the group in the first place? Why did'nt he run when he told them to. WHY?! Why this, why that! Its rakking his brain and he did'nt know if he could contain his fear. (Anybody get that line? Anyone? Its from a song..). He wanted nothing to do with another attack on Jeurslm. He did't want to be a Hero a second time.

Radiation King13:32, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// And thus Dutch Holmes drags us kicking and screaming into the final phase of the rolepllay.

Roland sat at the radio console directly adjacent to Stef's bed. Seeing her stir weakly while he continued his radio report ("Domestic or Demonic: The Difference Between a Tame Yao Guai and a Wild One"), he looked over briefly from the console and smiled, tapping her lightly on the shoulder with one of his cold steel arms. The warming circuits on the exterior of the arms had long since been scrubbed away to oblivion, leaving in their place the rubbery overlay. He smiled a bit. "Glad to see you're coming back, Stef." And then Roland went back to his radio broadcast, continuing with, "Remember Wasteland, if you see bigass teeth and claws and it looks like it's snarling, it's probably wild..."


Meanwhile, Domingo, in the front of the tank, watched as Dutch sprinted off in the direction of some place called "Jerusalem". Funny thing, the merchant thought to himself, I thought Jerusalem was in Saudi Arabia. Sighing, he pushed the T-Bar forward on the tank, hoping to head for Megaton and arrive before noon the next day before he realised: This wasn't the Jerusalem in Saudi Arabia.

This was the Jerusalem here, in the Capital Wasteland.

The one the Crusade were using as a base.

Hopping out of the back of the tank, he ran down the spine of he trailer, banging his fists against the walls to wake everyone up. When he finally arrived at the open back door, which had remained open for most of the day (Domingo's inital thoughts were something along the lines of Why weren't they shut?) "Everyone, wake up!" Domingo shouted as if his pounding hadn't already woken everyone else up. "Dutch has gone ahead to Jerusalem alone!" `

Run4urLife!13:55, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

It had been almost a week since Gilead. Roarke smiled. This is where it would end. He had scattered Moore's loyalists then. He would bury them now. He sat on a folding chair on top of a hill overlooking Jerusalem from some distance away. He was watching through an observation telescope, eyeing the defences. An attack from some months ago had breached the wall. That was where they would hit. Once that breach was big enough they could break through and those rats would have nowhere to go, with those once-thought-impenetrable walls. He flexed his fingers around the hilt of his sword, watching the defenders running around like ants. Like ants he would crush this very day. He'd burn their ant hill to the ground.

Roarke stood up as a sapper came walking up the hill towards him.

"How go the preparations, Dignitary?" Roarke said. He had kept the old Crusade ranks for the sake of the old military order, and as an affront to Moore.

"Almost finished sir. We'll be ready to begin bombardment in the next two hours." The Dignitary responded.

Roarke smiled. He had spent days working out this fireplan. The ground would shake with terror when those big guns opened up. Jerusalem would break. Because even if Roakre's men slept, and the guards lay at ease, everyone knew full well that big guns would never tire.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:12, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

"And he can go by himself. I've been there once too many. If any of you guys are going, you can go without me!"

Weston was looking out the back end of the trailer, with his feet sticking out. To somone else, he looked like he sopaced out. To those who knew him, they knew what was going on. He was reliving it. It as in the horror, the pain, the suffering he felt. He woukld'nt gop. Well, he might go. If EVERYONE that he knew, trusted and fought with went. So, Dutch already went. If Domingo, Roland, Jacob, Jackal and Miss. McRae went, he would go. Even if Conor Strauss did'nt go. Well, that would count, but, he'd problay go. Weston lit a cigartte, and tried to push out his memoires. It did'nt work. Maybe the only way to deal with them was to face them agian?

KuHB1aM18:04, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// I'll return to Dutch later on. Run4, did you just use a spinoff from Killzone 2's trailer?

Major Frederick Thomas (lol run4) stood in Jerusalem's courtyard. He eyed his men; several hundred Airborne Shock Troopers, the finest of the finest, stood ready to die and kill for their Marshal. They were the most elite; for every Airborne Shock Trooper, there were ten dead Last Legionaries. They had been in reserve since 2279, their numbers having been thinned at Capitol Hill. Now, facing an enemy three times their number without so much as a smile and salute, they were in fact true Crusaders for the Cause. "Men and women of the Airborne! This is your time! Roarke has tainted your names, seduced your comrades, and now he thinks he can march on us and burn our home to the ground!" Thomas roared. The men, rows of power armor and weapons moving, made the ground shake as they cheered and fired their weapons into the air for the last time. "You've done well, Major." A voice called out behind him. It was the Field Marshal, clad in a grey overcoat and wearing power armor. Thomas immediately straightened up and snapped a salute. "At ease, Major." Moore said, surveying the troops. "I've arranged to have you transferred to New York should you survive this battle. There, you will assist in removing the Brotherhood from their alamos and destroying them permanently." Moore said. Thomas smiled inside his head. Moore was making room for plans that wouldn't even be carried out! Thomas watched as Moore moved to address the Airborne. Thomas couldn't help but feel astonished at how cool Moore was at the moment. It was almost awe-inspiring.

Run4urLife!20:30, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Haven't seen the trailer, so, no, it wasn't. Which part, just out of curiosity?

The sun cracked over the horizon, illuminating Roarke in a bright haze as he stood on a hill, facing his army. Facing his forces. The Last Legion. The true Crusade. Jerusalem would be theirs. They deserved this glory. They deserved every last bit of it. Ignored, shunned and repressed by their own leaders in favour of the Airborne Elite. The mere fact that those inbred flyboy degenerates called themselves an Elite was reason enough to wipe them out, in so far as Roarke could see. Fortunately, he had every living Crusader outside of the Airborne gathered before him, and they shared this view. Roarke paced on the hill, before coming to a stop between two desecrated Crusade banners, which were fluttering pathetically, so tattered that they barely caught the wind any more.

"Templars, Last Chancers, sons and daughters of the Crusade, today is a glorious day. Because today, Jerusalem, the jewel in Moore's crown, the greatest prize in the Wastelands, stands before us for the taking. Moore's crown will be shattered, the prize will be ours. Those Airborne Elites will be taken down from that high horse, their name smeared in the mud. They will crawl on their bellies, begging for mercy, before we are finished. We all felt the cold in their shadows, we, the true heroes, the real elite. Did we get our due? Hardly. The glory earned with our blood and sweat and tears went to those inbred savages in their Vertibirds and tin can suits. But now, now they are the foe. They cannot take our glory this time, they cannot swoop in when battle is already won to claim victory. They cannot take what they never earned. But they will at least have the honour and the glory of dying at the hands of true soldiers." Roarke shouted to the gathered crowd.

As a roar erupted from their lines, dozens of makeshift war drums were moved into the gaps between regiments and up around the forces of the Last Legion. After a minute or two of listening to the racous cheers, he raised his hands, silencing the crowd with a mere gesture. Roarke then continued.

"This is our time to take glory. None can take our victory. None can stand against us now and snatch this from us. We have walked for too long in the shadow of Moore and the Airborne. For too long we have been seen as a lower breed. For too long, we have been spat on and shamed for victories we won. For too long, we have suffered all this and remained silent. For too long, we have suffered this humiliation, this degredation. But not now. Now, we throw off our chains. Now, we cry freedom, we cry havoc. Now, we will grind Jerusalem, and Moore, and his precious Airborne to dust. Now we will shatter those who stood in our way. Now, we will shatter those whose shadow we stood in. Now, we will feel the sun on our faces, and the wind on our skin. Now, we will take what is owed to us. Now is our time!" Roarke shouted.

The roars returned. Soldiers shouted themselves hoarse, but screamed even so. The calls of the Last Legion could be heard for miles around. And then, something else rose up, undercutting the shouts and cheers and war songs. The sounds of battle drums, sounding a dread tattoo over the Crusade's holy ground.

A shudder ran through every man, woman and child in Jerusalem. War was on their doorstep, and they were trapped like a rabbit in the headlights. Then, undercutting the drums and the shouts, came the roar of heavy guns. The scream of falling shells mingled with wild cries and deep drumbeats. The thud of mortars and the roar of howitzers, the cries of the God of War, lent their voice to the Last Legion.

A very human chill gripped the hearts of the "invincible" Airborne. Each and every one had been faced with an emotion not one of them knew. Abject terror.

Fireman050420:37, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// It's Huron Blackheart, or Lufgt Huron, whichever name you prefer, the Tyrant of Badab from the Warhammer 40,000 Universe.
--Cerebral plague20:43, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// WHat?

Jack watched Dutch Holmes walked away, unscathed by Westins warning. Bastard didn't have his army of uper ninjas with him that time, he would die there. Probably slowly and in a hale of mortar. Jack got up, and started walking away from the group and the tank. He didn't feel like wasting his time getting drunk and killing raiders. Boris probably had some thing in store for him to do, and Jack probably wouldn't like it.

Radiation King20:50, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// WH40K joke.

Domingo still stood at the foot of the trailer. The sound of explosions could be heard in the direction Dutch had been going. There was no way the Warrior Weapon could have been there already, though... There had to be something else. "Come on," He shouted to the remaining members of the group and letting Dutch go past. "We have to go! Dutch could be in trouble!"

Run4urLife!20:53, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Huron Blackheart. I'm a Chaos devotee. Well, was, I've neglected the hobby for a few years now. Shame really, it was fun when you got into it.
Fireman0504 // I'm big into the Imperial Guard. I still model and paint them but haven't played in quite a while.

Stefanie stumbled out of the trailer and staggered and fell. She was still very weak and in pain from being shot. The group looked at her before Roland ran over to help her up. "I'm going too," she said. Stefanie was determined not to let her friends down. Even in excrutiating pain she wanted to help. "Don't leave me behind," she said to the rest of the group, "I can still help out."

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:08, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

Weston was now looking at his group of friends. It seemed that they were ALL going back to Jerusalem. Sighing, he put away his cigartette. He really needed to kick that habit. Looking over his assualt rifle, he laid a hand on it. He earned that one back during the first assualt on Jerusalem. Back when he was ready to take on a whole god-dammned arrmy by himself. Now, not oso much. But, if all of his friends were willing to fight for Dutch, then why not.

"Fine. I'll go. Better not fucking die there."

Radiation King21:12, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Aww, how cute. Stef's still trying to help.

"Easy does it," Roland sighed, looping an arm under Stefanie's and holding her up. "You lost a lot of blood, and that bullet might have bruised some organs. You're a very lucky woman to even be breathing right now." Roland looked over at the woman. The wound was still heavily wrapped in gauze and more than a lot bloody. He took a syringe of Med-X from his pocket and injected it into her. "You go back into the trailer and get some rest. We're heading for Jerusalem, and you can come along, but don't leave the trailer." And with that, El Oso rumbled to life, everyone clambered back aboard and Domingo steered towards Jerusalem.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:32, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// EVERYTHINGH!


"Look at the bright side. At least you get to help. You get to guard the loot!"

Weston, triing to lighten up the mood, was granted a middle finger and a angry scowl. So, putting on his Combat Helment and grabbing his Assualt rifle, he put his legs outside the trailer. Looking back to his assualt rifle, his thoughts drifted back,. Back to a time of chaos. Runied Dreams. A Wasted shithole. Now, he was going back. This was going to be fun. Real, joyus fun. Hopefully, he won't die. And that the geopraghy does'nt change. And that a Riely-type guy shows up agian.

Fireman0504 // Stefanie considers ALL of them as friends. She doesn't want to be left behind.

"I want to fight," Stefanie said, "I don't want to sit behind in the trailer like a useless lump. I'm going with you guys." Stefanie looked down at her blood-soaked bandages. She needed a way to heal up fast. The bullet was out, but the wound was so painful. She popped a Buffout in and swallowed it, feeling slight relief. Stimpaks were working a little too, but she didn't want to use the supply up. She could here the sounds of far off artillery. Gunfire and explosions carried on the air like thunder in a summer storm. Stefanie closed her eyes and moved her arm slowly, working the pain, as she'd done so many times in Zanadu. It hurt like hell, but it was necessary. She moved her arm slowly back and forth, taking deep breaths, finding the ability to draw more air in with each one. It was still terribly painful, but Stefanie wanted to be able to fight when the time came. Despite the protests of her firends, she continued as the tank ground forward.


--Cerebral plague22:10, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Why would westin follow Jack? Besides, Jack likes westin. He reminds Jack of an earlier him, before he got trained to be a world class assassin.

Jack sighed as he continued walking down the road, Boris or that scavenger douche who set up the radio would call any minute now. Jacks pip boy vibrated, he had turned off the sound long ago, right after he was sniping and Boris called. Awaking the whole camp, and giving Jack several bullets lodged into his right arm. Answering the message, Jack put the pip boy close to his ear. "What do you want me to do now?" It seemed that the Scavenger was on the other line. "Boris wants to meet you at Jerusalem, bring your repeater, and the grenade launcher." Jack sighed, it seemed he had walked toward the make shift camp Boris was currently using for nothing. "Be there soon". Jack started running, he would have to make up for lost time.

KuHB1aM22:25, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Run4, it's the part where the Helghast leader says "our guns never tire." Lol, Jack is most likely right. However, Dutch is... ok, he's not different. Let's just say he holds preference to this group. Jack, you sound jealous *Giggles, then realizes how gay it sounds* No, anyhow the group has to come. How the hell is Jacob supposed to kill Roarke without his crew?

Thomas smiled as the Airborne silently shifted ranks to minimize mortar causalities. They moved as Thomas gave a signal to head for battle stations. The Airborne saluted, as friendly mortars and artillery opened up in the courtyard, firing a retaliation strike and smashing the first enemy soldiers as Thomas watched them from his binoculars. 30 cal. machine-guns opened up on the walls, aswell as automated turrets, tearing through enemy ranks as they moved towards the recently repaired breach. However, that was where Thomas had placed the majority of his Airborne. It would be a slaughter on both sides once that wall gave way to enemy action. Drawing his new sword, his earlier one having been broken at Gilead, He waved it again as the mortars fired a second salvo, this one also a response to the enemy mortars. Looking up into the sun, Thomas grinned. It was a good day to die. lol cliches ftw


Dutch moved at a fast-paced sprint, his duffel on his back and his hands on his weapons. Why had he ever signed up with the wasters? No. They're your friends. His mind said. No, Dutch. You are a soldier of the Enclave. His mind said again. Pushing both ends of the spectrum, Dutch stopped as he reached the ridge's edge which overlooked both camps; the fortified position known as Gilead Point, and the fortress known as Jerusalem. Watching as the first Legion charge was cut down with ease, Dutch began his descent into the warfield. Then it hit him. How the hell was he going to get inside? For another matter, why didn't he just let the Last Legion do the dirty work for him? Pondering this, Dutch grabbed his assault rifle, and moved into No Man's Land.

Radiation King22:34, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Domingo shows pretty much the same attachment to Stef. Just pretty much nobody else.

Roland looked over at Stefanie, concerned, before throwing another syringe of Med-X her way as the tank ground onward towards Jerusalem. ALong the way, he flicked on the radio.

"Hello Wasteland," Roland said hesitantly. "This is Strauss Radio Mobile, and I'm your DJ, Roland Rockfort on our third broadcast. We're broadcasting today from the middle of the D.C Blood Pit, on our way to Jerusalem. That's right, the center of the Crusade's infestation, and we're going to hit it up now. Word has it that there's an army already over there, so if there's anyone you can spare out there to help the fight, anyone at all, we can really use the help.

"Seriously, this is the biggest undertaking the wasteland has seen since the days of the Lone Wanderer and his sojourns against the Enclave. If there's evere a better time to prove how much you love living here, living here as a free person, come out and prove it by lending us your arms. If we fail today, the Crusade will come down harder than ever, and we're all going to pay. This may well be the last broadcast of Radio Strauss Mobile, so keep tuning in every now and then, Wasteland, because I'll be keeping you updated all the way. This is Roland Rockfort, signing you off, and "Crossroads Blues" by Robert Johnson signing on to keep you entertained." Roland then put in the vinyl record, turned on the music and turned off the mic.

--Cerebral plague22:37, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Drafting waste landers to die? Sounds like the Claws to me.
Radiation King22:41, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// It wasn't a draft, it was a request. No-one has to show up.
--Cerebral plague22:44, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// I believe thats what the Claws did too. Also, it seems that my key board is breaking, as half the keys I press don't work. So that may be whats pissing me off.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:57, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

Weston semi-listended to the Radio broadcast. Last time he heard something on the Radio about Jeurslm, it was on GNR. And he was'nt even mentioned. Only Jacob and a few others. NHe was dooomed to die without fame. Which, in the bigger scheme of things, was'nt that big of a deal. But, he at least wanted a statue made from the power armour of Dead Crusaders. A Baseball bat slid past him. Which, for one, was a little odd. But, it was a free weapon. Grabbing it before it fell off, he looked at it. Domingo wrapped it in Barbed Wire and Put nails through it. Thing looked deadly...and that it could hurt. Grinning, he grabbed it with his hand and slung his Assualt Rifle over his back, playing with his new toy. There was a few instances of Close Combat fighting back in the first time he went to Jeruslam. LAast time he had to use a stock as a weapon. Now...now he had a real wepon. Throwing his nail board into the back of the tank, he put the baseball where his nail board once was. Seeing it did'nt fit, he grabbed a saw and went to work. He had to saw off the handle in order to make it fit without stabbing himself. Tnhey did'nt have tetuins shots in the wasteland anymore, at least to his knowledge.

"Hey, wait. Does'nt someone know something about relgion here?"

--Cerebral plague23:11, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Guys, if anyone here has a rapture company member, feel free to use them. Even if there just planning on making one.

Jack ran to Jerusalem, panting. Boris was standing some ways off, signaled to Jack, and went immediately back down. Jack started to run over.

Boris got up, and signaled to his apprentice. That head strong assassin of his, was going to get him self killed one day. He was lying down next to a few soldiers, the best and brightest of the Conscripts. All of them were equipped with sniper rifles, and they would be helping out the horde. Boris had no allegiance with Crusade, nor their damned counter part. He would be helping the horde, and only the horde. The horde would be slaughtered too, by the last legion as soon as this was over. The damn fools, they had nothing to accomplish here! "Remember Comrades, aim for the Crusade or Last Legion."

Run4urLife!23:15, 23 May 2009 (UTC)// Presumably, this is all preparation for the first Horde assault on Jerusalem, which is set to take place two days after the Last Legion take over. Which is after a four-day barrage and a few pushes through the Breach.

Fireman0504

Stefanie jabbed the Med X into her arm. She kept moving it, but it was starting to feel better to be alive. The pain was still there, but it was being dulled. Probably by all the meds. Without the bullet in her, she rediscovered her range of motion. She hadn't lost it at all. It was painful now, but she could move everywhere still. She looked around as the tank bounced forward. Roland had given a radio broadcast but Stefanie hadn't been listening. She was eyeing up the hunting rifle she'd borrowed earlier to use for the battle. She reached for it, wincing as she picked it up. She examined the chamber and loaded a clip into it. She winced again as she hoisted it to her shoulder and aimed out of the trailer. She didn't want to be completely useless, at least if she couldn't get out of the trailer she could pop shots off at targets on the battlefield. She fitted her Power Fist onto her hand as she leaned back, grunting as the weight of it bore down on her. She began moving her arm in the Power Fist, testing it's range of motion. She had little time to prepare before the battle was upon them too.

KuHB1aM23:25, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

Thomas watched several yards away as the breach imploded in rock and concrete, sending soldiers flying. 30 cals. opened up into the breach, cutting down soldiers as they rushed inside and engaged the Airborne, all of whom were wearing power armor. The Airborne easily dispatched their initial attackers with close-quarters weaponry, protected from snipers by the walls around them. Thomas, rallying the men around him, waved his sword as more attackers pushed inside, mercilessly cut down as the Airborne, twice the soldiers that the Last Legion's men would ever be, again engaged more soldier with sword and gun, arms, heads, weapons, and other various objects flying everywhere in a fantastic display of blood and gore as both sides collided at the breach. Imagine the scene from "Kingdom of Heaven" where the crusaders and the muslims push foward against one another at the breach "Push them back!" Thomas roared, whirling his sword and slicing off the head of a Legionnaire, the helmeted head of his BRA suit flying off and the corpse falling over dead, blood everywhere.

Run4urLife!23:52, 23 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roarke watched, his arms folded, as the Airborne hurled themselves at his Legionnaires. They wouldn't be able to throw the Last Chancers around like that. Not least because he had replaced the Last Chancer's BRA with Power Armor, taken from the still-warm corpses of the inbreds. He smiled inside his helmet. The sheer numbers, and the avenging fury of the Legion, were forcing the Airborne back from the breach. He gave a hand signal to a mortar team to open fire on that jalopy that had just swerved in at the back lines. Entertaining as it was to watch a tracked monstrosity lurch around through a telescope, if that thing got loose among the artillery, well, it would throw a giant spanner in the works.

Then, part two of the fireplan kicked in. The howitzers and the other big guns stayed pounding the walls, while the mortars began launching their shells over the walls and directly into the breach. That hole in the wall would run red with blood. If in fact the Airborne did bleed. That stuff leaking from their corpses was probably just exceptionally runny shit. These guys took being full of it beyond the metaphorical. Roarke sighed as he realised he should have said that in his speech.


Jackal was the first to hear the whistling of descending mortar fire. They pounded the land just beyond El Oso. Ranging shots. Fuck. The next salvo would be directly on target. And then, as a comedian once said, they'd all be in the shit. Whether or not they had their wellies. He looked at Domingo, who had turned a nice shade of peuce when those shells had come screaming towards them. The trailer jacknifed a little as he turned El Oso as quickly as it would go, and made a bee-line for the relative cover and dubious safety of travelling in the opposite direction.

Jacob had grabbed Stefanie, Weston, Roland and Riley and pulled them down to the floor of the trailer as the shells screeched over his head. That had been waaay too close. Then he rolled over as Domingo made the wise choice of spinning El Oso around, in spite of the risk of flipping the trailer. Jack and Conor looked a little peeved that he had gone for the others first. Alexis just looked at Jacob, apparently surprised that he hadn't crushed them under his weight. Jacob sighed and sat down as Domingo flashed off some morse code at the Last Legion ranks with El Oso's search light that was, presumably, supposed to mean "We're on your side". Domingo had actually spelled out "We're sn ysur oide". His morse code needed a revamp, apparently.

KuHB1aM00:05, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// Going offline.

Thomas ducked as a heavy round from a howitzer smashed the wall, widening the breach. "Hold the line!" Thomas roared as mortars dropped around them. The Airborne knew their duty; they would hold no matter how many of their number thinned. They easily ripped through the Legionnaires, firearms ablaze and swords and rippers whirling. A rumble flew overhead. Watching the last of Jerusalem's VTOLs, Thomas smiled inside his T-51b helmet. They weren't evacuating. They were strafing and doing kamikaze runs; even yet, other strafed the defenseless artillery positions. There must've been twenty of them just doing crazy acrobatics and suicide attacks as they caused the Legionnaires to break and run from their first charge of the siege. "Push them out!" Thomas screamed, rushing forward and slamming into the back of an enemy soldier as more mortars fired down upon both sides. Driving his sword deep into his back, Thomas withdrew it, motioning for his men to stop at the breach. They complied completely, not pursuing their former comrades, who had been thrown in dis-array. Thomas said a prayer for the VTOL crews. Their dazed suicides had saved the day. But how long until another charge?

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:12, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Shit!"

Weston hauled himself from the floor. He had nearly stabbed himself with his now sawed off baseball bat. Sliding it into place where a nail board once was, which was something like a tube on his back, he looked around the trailer for something else that might look useful. finding a .44 Scope, Weston checked to see if Domingo was looking before attaching the weapon. Slinging it over his shoulder, Weston stood up and grabbed onto the trailer, leaning outside of it. What he saw looked like madness. VTOL's were strafing throusands of soldiers, heavy artillery was booming. And lots and lots of Red Eyes. Sitting back down inside the Trailer, he put his back to a wall. Rubbing his neck, Weston looked back outside the trailer. He was reminded of a song, Requim to a Dream or something like that. it seemed fitting right now. Still, no one answered him about the relgion question. Maybe Jackal would know. But, he could'nt ask him right now. Turning back to the group, he repated his relgion question.

"Agian, does anybody know anything about Relgion?"

Run4urLife!00:22, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// Goin offline after this

Roarke sighed as he watched the last VTOLs from Jerusalem strafe and more than a few crashed, their fuel detonating spectacularly. Then he smiled. He had been right to use those CCI spies for the forlorn hope. Then he laughed as a stray mortar shot clipped a VTOL and sent it spinning into the breach, scattering the defenders for a moment. The vocalizers on his helmet turned that laugh into a jarring, almost demonic metallic gargle, like a man being drowned in mercury. The glowing red lenses, taken from a BRA helmet, did little to reduce the unsettling image. He signalled for the AA guns to begin firing. Two Vertibirds, the last he could see, went down in a blaze of smoke and flak. Sadly, they landed on the retreating spy bastards, killing them all. Sadly. As fucking if.

Roarke signalled for real Legionnaires to begin advancing. The war drums started up again as the artillery barrage spread across the walls, crumbling the ramparts and crennelations, sending vast chunks of masonry, mingled with limbs, crashing to the ground. This place would be almost indefensible once the big guns were done with it.

He watched as the soldiers, in their BRA, marched along the ground, in loosely-packed units, covered by snipers to take out the machinegunners and to perform a little counter-sniping. Roarke watched through his telescope as shells wracked the upper walls with high explosive and the associated shrapnel. He smiled. The rats were cornered. A cornered rat could still bite, but it was nothing more than a futile act of defiance in the face of a superior foe. If the rat was the better creature, it never would have let itself get cornered. And now, the Dogs of War were moving in for the kill.


"I know some lad. Most of 'em involve denouncing the Devil. For us, there's no point in making an enemy of our future landlord." Jackal shouted from the tank.

"Religion is not the thing to be discussing right now, Weston." Jacob snapped. Why was the boy talking about religion? Jacob knew Jackal was a Catholic. Jacob himself had lost faith in God when his family were killed. He still believed in hell though. That was where the people he killed went. It was also where he, himself, was going.

"Whaddya want to know?" Jackal barked as he clambered from tank to trailer with all the grace of a drunk elephant on stilts.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:36, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Alright, if i was drunnk, right, and then i sorta blacked out and i awoke next to a whore is that ok?"

Weston, asking this n complete serouiness quickly recived laughter around him. Expect for Jacob. Starting at Jackal, he was wauitng for the answer. What ever it might be.


Vegas adict07:56, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// Im going to use my rapture company member for this K plauge?

Alexis managed to stop laughing long enogth to answer westons question."Depends on what religion you follow boy and if you don't follow one then it doesn't matter"


Alfred Hardy disengaged his stealth boy and looked around the imediate area.He was suposed to meet Boris and Jack around here to help them with this fools atack on jeruselum.Scaning the area he noticed jack running towards a cluster of people.How stupid that cluster he had thought to be just random wasters was boris and his men.Running as fast as his ghoul body would allow him he sprinted towards the people.He arived about the same time as jack."Well boy looking forward to the battle are you?"

Radiation King12:50, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// Oh no they di'int!

Domingo heaved his tank to the right, feeling the trailer attempt to haul itself over onto its side as he jinked away from another mortar blast. The idiot last Legion were still firing at him! "IDIOTS!" he shouted through the open pilot's compartment hatch, turning away from the visible artillery range and heading for where the infantry were wheeling towards the breech. Combat was everywhere; vertibirds screeching overhead, artillery exchanging fire from miles away, infantry up close and personal in the trenches. He headed for the infantry because that's where the artillery probably wouldn't hit him.

--Cerebral plague14:24, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// I am not done with Boris's equipment yet, but he's wearing a Russian variant of power armor (They had a spy in the works, who managed to find out about it. Although he was shot dead right after he alerted the Russians. Americans thought he was Chinese.) and they developed a weaker version of it, which had built in binoculars and the like. Give me a few hours to finish up both pages. And to find a free image editing site. Also, is the horde going to betray the Last Legion?

Jack smiled, same old Alfred. "You can't kill enough Crusaders in one day Alfred! Besides, I'm always ready to kill some douches." Alfred smiled, he was the newest of the seven, and was the only one Jack hadn't fought with so far.

Boris reloaded his dragonuv, and frowned. Alfred had arrived, who was talking to Jack. Alfred always seemed to arrive late, even when he was warned early on. "Ok, lets roll. Jack, I want to see how you do in a leader ship position. You lead the recruits on the right, aim for real Crusade, not the last legion. Everyone else, come with me. Were going to aim for the fakes. We all know what the horde does to the Last Legion after this." And with that, the killers ran off into the night, getting closer and closer to Jerusalems walls. Boris reached his destination first. "Everyone, aim for your targets. You know what to do, were invisible from here." Their in a prone position by the way

Run4urLife!14:27, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// Have you even read the Horde's page? They never worked with the Last Legion. They were a third party in the war. And this Horde attack fails. I've set my Last Legion up for a very dramatic fall.
--Cerebral plague14:43, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// I read the early version of it, which I thought had some thing to do with allying with the last legion.(This was wrong, I think I skimmed that article) The new one however, has made it much clearer. I'll edit my post soon.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:38, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

As for Weston, a little caught off guard by Domingos sudden turned, poked his hands out the trailers door and flipped the Crusaders, both the loyalists and the Last Legionites, off. Brining his hand back in, he light a cigarette before putting away his lighter. Thinking back eariler to a movie he saw abou the Amercian-China war, there was this one scecne in it. A bunch of soldiers were in a airplane, and they were about to go into battle. Some were reading some book with a women on it, another few were smoking. A couple were talking. But, there was this underlying sense of 'Shit, were screwed man.' A feeling like this ran up and diown Westons brain. Not able to shake it off, he looked back outside the Trailers open end. Another Vertibird run was coming in. Punding the ground with missles and laser fire, he flew away when some missles and what llooked like cannons firing a shell that goes boom in mid air started to vcome close to them.

"So, does anybody have a plan? Or are we just going to rush around like last time?"

Vegas adict20:01, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis was jolted back as domingo made another swerve shit.This was it he was going to die here at the hands of mad men.He was going to die.He ducked under the wall of the trailer and looked as a another bord flew overhead."Shit is there anything we can use to fight the birds"


Alfred turned to jack."Honor be with you son of god.And with you boris" with that alfred activated his stealth boy and left for his posistion overlooking the base.Let boris and his men use pathetic sniper rifles,Alfreds weapon packed a litle more punch.His gauss rifle had the power to penetrate 4 inches of steel.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:11, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

"No, not really. Well, wee have that one gun that Rascon gave us, but, i sauy that we let the birds fly around. If they ai'nt shooting us, then, well, it's better then last time."

Weston put away his Cigarette and looked at the Vertibird that was flying overhead. It looked like it was heading somewhere to re-arm. Figures. After shooting that many rockets off, they problay need more. Hell, there problay using more ammo theu normally use per week in one day. Taking out his telescope, Weston sat down on the end of the trailer and looked at the battle. It looked like the last legion was starting to gain the upper hand, but, the Loyalists were still giving them hell. The battle was still at the breach, and looking as bloody as ever.

"Alexis, have ever seen combat before? I don't mean 5 on 5. I mean something big. Speaking of combat, how much ammo you got?"

Vegas adict20:19, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis considered westons question."Ive seen plenty of combat with Mutants and ferals but the largest human on human combat iv'e seen was the LVBOS/Crusade conflict neer rivet city.As for ammo i have 30 bullets for my .44 magnum and about a 100 micro fussion cells for my Mk1 rifle."Alexis looked back up at the birds when an idea struck him."Does anyone have a pulse grenade!"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:25, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 


"Ok, first of all," Weston said while sliding a small box of .44 bullets to Alexis, "your going to need more ammo. Secondly, take that conflict and imagine it even bigger. Finally, i really don't think your idea will work. Saw a bastard try and do that once when i was heading to Rivet City after the 1st Attack on Shithole. He//he did'nt throw it high enough and it made the piolt very,very mad."

Weston half smiled before looking at the Vertibird. He was far out of throwing range, escpillay not for Alexis. Maybe Javcob, but, he could could take down the Vertibird with a baseeball. Closing his telescope and putting it inside a small bike-couriertpye bag on his gunbeklt, Weston checked his own ammo. He had 15 extra clips for his 10MM and 10 Extra clips for his R91. Plus, if he ever ran out he could just grab a Crusade Weapon. Or use his newfound ?Baseball bat.

Vegas adict20:33, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

"You have the wrong idea weston.I don't need the grenade what i need is the detenator as it emits a small EMP field.You wire that into a bullet and fire the bullet at the target shorting out all the electronics.So all i need is a good sniper and a pulse grenade and i can bring down that bird."Taking the box weston passed to him he loaded them into his gun.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:43, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

All Weston did was blink. Well, blinked, techinally because he did it twice without saying a word.

"Alexis, thats the dumbest idea ever. Just shut up."

Weston just shook his head and went back to stareing out the back of the trailer. Somebody really should close that, now that he though about it. If a shell landed close then sharpenl could...

WHOOP

A Mortar shell landed a good footbal yard feild away from the trailer. Sitting there, Weston just looked ast the crater the moratar made before standing up and closing the trailer. Well, tyrying to. He manged tgo close on half of it, before almost falling out. NMoving to thee very back of the trailer, Weston sat there, guarded by several bodies. Cowardly, yes. But, he was'nt going to die BEFORE they got there. It would be anticlimatic to hiis life story.

Run4urLife!21:12, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob wanted to hurt Alexis badly after hearing that batshit insane plan of his to try wiring a Pulse Grenade detonator into a bullet. Firstly, the idea in and of itself was possibly one of the stupidest and most poorly thought out ideas Jacob had heard. Secondly, there was no way you could wire a mine detonator into a bullet. Thirdly, if by some miracle you did, it wouldn't fit in the Rifle chamber. Fourthly, if it did fit in for some reason, the detonator would explode, and kill the moron firing the gun. There was something missing in Alexis' brain. Jacob snatched the grenades from the fool boy before he hurt anyone. Jacob shot him a vicious look as Alexis looked at him as if he was the one doing the stupid shit.

"Boy, loading a detonator into a rifle is a one way trip up a certain creek without a paddle." Jackal grumbled, clearly annoyed that it hadn't been him to snatch the grenades from that idiot. What poor village was minus a simpleton because Alexis was inflicting himself on them?


Roarke, meanwhile, had moved a flank guard between his own forces and the fuck-ups in the jalopy. He didn't want that thing exploding on a zig-zag near his men. He signalled for another push to the breach. The had forced a wedge of soldiers in last time, and now all they had to do was push one more time. And it would be the Last Chancers, 7th Hell Zulu Company to do it.

"Victory or death!" Roarke shouted as he charged down the hill towards the breach, his chosen soldiers at his back.

The 7th Hell Zulus burst in the breach like a bolt of lightning. Roarke cut the first Shock Trooper to come within reach in half, letting the weight of his Field Ripper carry the swing around and open the chest of enemy numero . . . Two. He wasn't good with odd languages.

--Cerebral plague22:51, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// Rapture bad asses, are ready to kill some bitches.

Jack aimed and fired, cracking the scull of a crusader. The rest of the group was firing, killing any one who even looked like a crusader. Then he saw the tank rumbling down the hill, getting shot by artillery. Getting a couple of friends, the stupidest fucking thing he ever did. Activating his stealth boy, he ran toward the artillery shells firing, and then he saw Alfred. It seemed they had the same plan.

Run4urLife!23:10, 24 May 2009 (UTC)// Oh dear lord, he's goin for mah artillery. Don't screw this up. The Horde aren't even here yet. And don't just throw them in, they're too disorganized to pull that off

The mortar teams had ceased firing at the tank by now. It was getting too close to the Last Legion advance. The advance led by Roarke. They knew he'd be in the thick of the fighting, outside of the mortar's arc of fire, but he'd have their heads if they killed a single Last Chancer. They surveyed the area, and then shifted back beyond the flank guard, who were tightly packed enough that the molrtar teams bumped into them as they passed. It was a precaution taken against Stealthboy wearing CCI agents.


Roarke cut another Shock Trooper in half with an pverhead swing, and then folowed up with a thrust, impaling the next soldier. Then, he saw Freddy in the whirling melee again. Captain Frederick Thomas. Once, he'd been like a little brother to Roarke. Now, he was a rat in the way. Roarke shoved his way through the press of bodies, punching, elbowing and headbutting, sweeping his Field Ripper around in great gory arcs as it cut down Shock Trooper after Shock Trooper. With a final, brutal swipe of his massive blade, Roarke split Thomas' last bodyguard from head to groin. Then, with strength he hadn't felt since Capitol Hill, Roarke roared and made a wild swing for Thomas. Catching the Captai off guard, no, he was a Major now, Major Tom. Did he get many calls from ground control? Anyway, The swing caught him off-guard, and his sword barely intercepted the attack. Fat orange sparks flew as Roarke and Thomas met in a breach again. Frederick wouldn't escape this time. Roarke didn't want him to this time.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:24, 24 May 2009 (UTC) 

Weston now noticed that the guns firing at them have stopped, at least for a short while. Climbing over to where Domingo was, he pulled himself into the cockpit.

"Hey, where exactly are you going to drop us off?"

Saying that, Weston went to where the .30 Cal that had gotten from Rascon was. (I'm assuming its a seat right next to xdomingo or something) sitting down next to it, he quickly checked it arc of fire. Side to Side was fine, up and down was terrible. If a Vertibird came in, they were scrwed unless he boted down a Missle luancher somewhere.

--Cerebral plague // Rapture is the only people attacking right now for the horde, and their walking away with zero casualties. Because first of all, the enemies are focusing each other. Second of all, their with in the sniper rifles minimum range to attack, and prone. Jack is going to disable a few of Last Legions big guns to maximize Last Legion casualties.

Jack activated another stealth boy, putting two on top of each other. Wouldn't do anything but add on some more time to his rampage. He loaded his grenade launcher, and started to Rush the artillery. Alfred had a few tricks, or grenades, up his sleave as well. Aiming for the artillery, Jack fired, blowing it to bits. Firing it twice more, he soon started to run away, Alfred also finished up planting his bombs. Jack soon was out of sight, the night helped him out severely. He hoped that Alfred had already escaped, and soon was completely invisible in the night.

Fireman0504

Stefanie felt herself bouncing along in the trailer as the tank made it's way over the shell pocked terrain. She was feeling much better now, breathing deeply and almost pain-free with her range of motion. She was now able to wear he Power Fist again. She sat with her hand braced on the floor and she was holding a .32 Hunting Rifle. She had her eyes closed and was trying to not think about the slaughter outside. She'd been in fights before, she'd been in small combat before, but she'd never been in an actual organized battle. The whole thing seemed somewhat surreal to her. She was trying to focus on surviving. She'd already had one close call. She didn't feel like another.

Cerebral plague00:51, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

An artillery gun exploded, and three more followed soon after. Then, Cháy Sáng emerged from the shadows. His stealth boy had failed thirty minutes earlier, that was what he got for using the american technology. A nearby soldier had seen him, and drew his pistol. Whipping out his twin hooks, he quickly combined the two and slashed at the foolish crusader. He soon fell to the ground, still as the ground he lay on. Drawing one of his daggers, he threw it at the next men to attack him, perceiving his lungs easily. Spinning around, he decapitated the Crusader next to him with the twin hooks.

KuHB1aM01:35, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Thomas rallied the men again as more "chancers", as Roarke referred to them as, charged the widening breach, this time penetrating. The entire courtyard was now a coliseum, with a mix of soldiers duking it, as L.L. howitzers and Loyalist .30 cals opened up on either side, tearing through the men in the courtyard. Pistols misfired, swords collided, rifle fired wildly, and amid the confusion, Roarke was no where to be seen. Typical. He was a coward. Bringing his sword to bear once again, Thomas moved to engage another chance, ripping his power armored head off with ease at the neckline with a graceful swing.


Dutch moved ever silently into the southern perimeter of the Last Legion's camp, easily evading and neutralizing the guards and sentries who had been in his way. Moving into the artillery range, Dutch quickly snapped the neck of a passing officer, pulled him into a tent, grabbed his power armor and put it on, and exited after several minutes, his command insignia still on his shoulder pauldron. This wouldn't take long. He'd neutralize the Legion's command, neutralize the Loyalist command, then send them spiraling downward with the removal of their final, highest commanders. Being careful to put his duffel behind his back and use the officer's own weapons to fit in, Dutch grabbed the man's Desert Eagle, checked the clip, and then slid the handgun into it's holster. Fixing the helmet and adjusting it, Dutch looked around, and headed for the command area.

--Cerebral plague02:09, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// FUCK YES! Chay and Boris vs Dutch. What do you think?

Boris came rushing down the hill, like a mad fucking boar. His comrade was in trouble, and surrounded by Crusaders. Drawing his field ripper, he cut off the first crusaders head he saw. Charging towards his comrade, he took out his .50 magnum and blew out several crusaders head. One got a little too close too Boris, and he stabbed with his ripper at his stomach. His organs were soon just blobs of red shit on the asphalt. "Looks like you got yourself in trouble Chay!"

Chay equipped his Emei Daggers and backed up. A slash from a crusade sword nearly beheaded him, and he was trying his hardest for that to not happen. Stabbing at the eyes of a nearby crusade officer, he impaled them. He withdrew them, and noticed the eyes were still on the daggers. Stabbing about Crusader, he heard the sound of a field ripper, wielded by a angry Russian. That was Boris alright. "You should not of risked your self to save me friend!".

Vegas adict06:19, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Now all we need is twentyfists to use eugene

Alfred looked down from his rifle scope,Bellow Chay and boris were stuck in the midle of a group of crusaders.What would his father say if he knew he was leaving his allies in danger."For honnor" he muttered quietly and drawing his quaterstaff(it has blades on) charged towards them.He sliced two crusaders in the gut and caught another in the neck.He tried to yank the blade out but it was stuck.Droping it he drew his two swords and ran towards them.He sliced another crusaders neck off before reaching them."So Chay finding it dificult are you"

KuHB1aM12:15, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Bring it. Run4 has already put a hole in your theory, so we'll see, muahahaha. Dutch is wearing power armor though, and that's a minus rather than a plus. He's more of the agile, CQC kinda guy. Find Dutch when you need him. He's about to put a hole in the Legion Command.

Checking his helmet to see it was again fairly perfect, Dutch headed towards the field command, where several majors, aswell as a few captains, were gathered about inside a tent. One of them looked up to greet him. "Good morning, Captain Jay. We were just about to..." The major's voice trailed off as Dutch brought up his desert eagle, aimed, and fired at the unarmed officer, taking his unhelmeted head clean off. The officers, all unarmed, charged Dutch, intent on neutralizing. No matter how experienced they were, it wouldn't work. Easily gunning down three more officers, then breaking the neck of another, Dutch had cleared the tent in seconds. Not that it had been a surprise to him. Silently beating the last officer to death with his pistol, Dutch proceeded to remove his power armor, once again wearing his trademark jacket, shades, and jeans. Discarding the handgun, Dutch strapped on his M1911 holster and weapon, sheathed his katana to his belt, reloaded his assault rifle, and stepped out of the tent, being careful to make his way through the back.

Run4urLife!12:45, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Eh, CP, Vegas, you're playing 200 year old Ghouls, not Warrior Weapons. Try more Jackal, less Jacob. And KuHB1aM (your tag is a BITCH to type), Roarke just made a wild swing at Major Tom! I'll fix it

Right. That wasn't Freddy who Roarke had just caught by surprise and cut in half. Slightly annoying. He moved on through the crush of bodies, his Field Ripper creating a nice circle that was death to any Shock Trooper to enter it. Then Roarke saw movement. That thrust he had taught Freddy. No one else other than himself and Taggart knew that little trick. And the Taggart boy was dead, so it had to be Freddy. Roarke stepped forward, splitting another Airborne Shock Trooper from head to groin, and moved towards Freddy's little screen of bodyguards, a group of now power armored 7th Hell Zulus moving in behind him. This would end here. He cut down the last man separating him from Freddy.

"Well, looks like you've come to the end of the line, Freddy." Roarke said. He really wished he'd said something more dramatic just there.

He swung his Field Ripper around at Freddy, who barely managed to parry on time. Fat orange sparks flew as Field Ripper met SCM Officer Sword again. Freddy had changed wepons. This sword wasn't missing chunks of blade after the violent attentions of a Field Ripper. Roarke made a second attack, blades clashing again. Every attack had to hit. This Field Ripper was too heavy to miss with. If he did miss, he'd be hanging in the wind while trying to recover his balance. Thankfully, every strike was starting to throw Freddy off-balance. All Roarke had to do now was push Major Tom till he fell. Then it would be over.

KuHB1aM12:57, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// NEVER!!! Rally to me, Airborne!!!

Thomas blocked blow after blow, slowly being pushed backward. Then he took a wild chance. Using only one hand's strength to block the field ripper for a single block, Thomas grabbed his Deagle from his holster, flicked off the safety, and used it to fire into Roarke's grip of the field ripper, the heavy .357 slugs slamming into the handle and armored hand. Not wanting his finger to get blown off, Roarke struggled to hold the weapon as Thomas fired into his hand, tearing away at the power armor. Taking his sword hand, Thomas slammed it into Roarke's head with one last bit of strength, sending him on his back. However, Thomas was exhausted. Falling on his own back, Thomas was pulled away by Shock Troopers as others filled the gap to engage Roarke, who was regaining his composure. Shaking his head and trying to get some oxygen, Thomas ripped off his helmet as he was pulled past the sandbag fortifications where the .30 cals were firing from. It was apparent to Thomas he was fighting a losing battle.

--Cerebral plague13:03, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Dutch is facing three three hundred year old ghouls though. All of which have been killing for fun, for money, and trained to be bad asses. Just wait till we get the Mexican special ops, and the Aussie. Everyone there was trained by a military, a ancient temple of kick ass, and the mafia. So, still think you can win?

Cháy Sáng cut through the last of the Crusaders, impaling his head onto that ripper of Boris's. "We should leave soon Comrade!" Walking toward the camp, searching for any and all survivors. Then, something exited a building in the camp. "I think this is the last one!"

Boris already was rushing the man, clad in power armor. He drew his katana, the fool thought he could win with that? Boris jumped back. The man edged silently forward, trying to back Boris up against some thing. Boris charged, along with Alfred Hardy. Chey Sang would approach from behind in a defensive position, striking at every possible moment. This man was fucking screwed.

An airborne soldier watched, his friends? Dead. His wife and kids? Probably dead. Here he was, bleeding on the floor like a dying animal. If anything, he would die protecting the field marshal. Using all his strength he got up to his knees, and tackled the bastard in power armor who was destroying all that he loved. A ripper growled through his armor as he jumped, cutting his stomach open like one would stuff a turkey before thanks giving. He had succeeded how ever, in giving his air borne brothers a chance to kill this horrible abomination. As two soldiers charged the demons left, while one charged his back.

Run4urLife!13:12, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// That would have made them 100 years old at the times of the bombs. The radiation would have killed them, rather than Ghoulifying them, I think
--Cerebral plague13:13, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// two hundred then.
Run4urLife!13:16, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// I'd still worry about their survival. Dutch's Memory Grafts have failed. Means he's as close to Jacob as another Warrior Weapon can get.
KuHB1aM13:17, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// 98% chance that I'll win. Btw, Dutch got rid of his power armor.


Dutch turned, drawing his katana, as he watched a ghoul charge him. Sensing someone behind him as well, Dutch kept his other hand on his holster, ready to adapt. There was something... different about these ghouls. They definitely weren't standard ghouls. Taking his katana, Dutch easily blocked the first and second field ripper blows and sending the man off balance, he then took his katana and made a horizontal slash across the chest, cutting through the man's clothing and armor if there was any. However, the ghoul hardly reeled, drawing his massive revolver and aiming dead straight at Dutch, who promptly dodged off the left as the slug missed, and almost hit his comrade behind him. Breathing alittle heavier than normal because of the field ripper, Dutch raised an eyebrow, lowering his shades and revealing his blindness. "I presume I have a right to know my attacker's name?" Dutch said, twirling his katana as the other ghoul beared down on him.

Vegas adict13:22, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"so do i Chay so do i". Alfred shock his head and drawing his sword charged with Boris.The man was screwed even more so if Chay got to use those swords of his alfred was a good swordsman but chay was in a whole other league. He cried out as he charged. "For honor!"

"No you don't bastard" Alfred growled. Catching the mans katana on his sword alfred deftly twisted the blade sliding it past his neck. The man swang back and he caught the blade on his armour. "Die you asshole!!"

KuHB1aM13:28, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// I got rid of the power armor!!!

Dutch aptly grabbed the man's arm as he moved even closer, then slid down to his wrist, all the while dropping downward as his own blade came closer to his shoulder. Gripping the ghoul's wrist, he easily snapped it into an awkward position, the ghoul crying out in pain. "Will you tell me your name?" Dutch said, re-aligning his own blade as he extended it in the direction of the other ghoul. Observing that the ghoul would say nothing, Dutch gripped tighter, made the sword fall to the ground, kicked it to the side, picked up the ghoul, and sent him hurling several feet into a wall. "You should've told me your name." Dutch said.

Vegas adict13:34, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Never not even my friends know my real name!".Alfred grimaced that fucking hurt.No one had ever bested in in a sword fight though.Whoever that guy was he had serious mussle.The man and boris were now fighting and stagering to his feat he picked up his guasse rifle and shot the mans foot nocking him back."Tell me yours asshole!"

KuHB1aM13:38, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch went off balance as a round went off near his right foot, causing him to swerve and go off balance. Barely catching himself, Dutch made a circular motion with his entire body, using his spin to propel his foot, which promptly sent the other ghoul on his back. Standing up, Dutch dodged another gauss round which almost connected with his face, and then opened fire with his M1911, catching the ghoul in the hand and throwing his hold and aim off completely. "Dutch Holmes." Dutch said. "Soldier of the Enclave. Well, not a standard soldier, anyway." Dutch said, holstering his M1911, and grabbing his duffel from the ground. He didn't have time for this.


Cerebral plague13:40, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// He got rid of it in thirty seconds? Bs! Also, he has to have it off now. You already said so. It seems that you've forgotten that Shaolin monks spend nearly all their life training in their selective martial arts. Spetsnaz are trained in one of if not the deadliest combat system, and Alfred is too big a douche to not of learned how to use a sword well. Jk

}}

"You really should learn how to shut the fuck up and fight!" Boris attacked, swinging his ripper wildly at the man. The man blocked the attack with his sword, blocking attack after attack. Boris slashed out one last time, as the man with the Katana tried to stop the attack. The katana soon gave way, breaking into small fragments on the ground. "It looks like you lost this one asshole!"

Chay swung out with his Shaolin Twin Hooks. The man winced, as the large gash appeared on his back. If Chay was an inch closer it would of killed the man, with in seconds. Swinging the Twin hooks again, the man dodged the attack, now defenseless.

Vegas adict13:44, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alfred was in huge pain.Still chay had opened the men up to an atack and grabing his sword in his undamaged hand he stabed it into the area of flesh just under the knee.Gasping alfred droped back against the wall.

Run4urLife!13:46, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob rolled over. It had taken some serious detouring to make it from the trailer to the rear echelons of the Last Legion forces, but it had been worth it in the end, to land a little sabotage. The last thing he wanted was Roarke and his barbarians having artillery when the Horde, or whatever those nuts called themselves, got moving. They had tried to recruit him once. He had not-so-politely turned them down. He had spiked a few guns. Well, he hoped he had. His Warrior Weapons training had not involved artillery maintenance. He knew how to mess up a mortar. Just load a shell in backwards. Doing that with the Last Legion big-bore siege mortars was incredibly difficult. Then he had been attacked by an artillery captain, who had somehow managed to blindside him.

Jacob kicked upwards into the soldiers groin and then jumped to his feet. He reversed the man's pathetic punch and threw him to the ground. Jacob finished the job with an axe kick that caved in the soldiers skull. Jacob moved along, trying to figure out where the command tent was. Then he saw a group of haphazardly dressed soldiers of some description attempting to mug Holmes. Jacob rolled his eyes. If Holmes was here, Jacob's plan of hollowing out Last Legion command was already done. So all that was left to do now was get Holmes out of here. One of the - Ghouls, they smelled like Ghouls - was about to take a swing at Holmes with a Field Ripper. Jacob jumped, bounded off the top of an ammunition crate to gain some extra height, and came downwards, kicking as he went, right on top of the Field Ripper toting Ghoul, flooring him.

"Looks like you were trying to steal all the fun here, Holmes." Jacob quipped to Dutch as the Ghoul got back to his feet. He kind of reminded Jacob of Jackal. Still crouched, Jacob kicked backwards into the one with the Twin Hooks, flattening him too. Jacob stood up slowly, and stepped up back to back with Holmes, then eased into a calm fighting stance.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster13:50, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Hey! Eat this!"

Jackson shouted as he burst from the treeline. Firing a Chinese Assualt Rifle madly, he skideed to a halt when he found that two guys with guns were pointing at him asnd were busy kicking his bosses asses.

"Uhh..."

Slowly backing up, he looked at both of the men before making a mad dash to a runied wall, which he then took cover behind. Of course, he'd problay have hell to pay back at the base, but, hey. He was a Consrpict after all.

KuHB1aM13:52, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// I don't want my katana to be broken... sniff

Dutch, easing out of a stance protecting his centerline, nodded towards Jacob. "I had it covered." Dutch said, rubbing his back. Picking up his katana, Dutch kept his 1911 raised at the newcomer, and looked towards the ghouls. "You should really pay more attention to your surroundings than talking. Especially ten-ton super weapons dropping onto you like bombs. Me? I'm just a five-ton asshole with a pretty nice sword." Dutch said. Damned ghouls with their fancy pre-war what-nots and doo-hickie weapons.

KuHB1aM13:58, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Promptly knocking the hook out of the air with his pistol, Dutch limped slightly as the round connected with his leg. "Son of a bitch." Dutch said, and switched his aim to the ghoul. Firing twice, each shot connected with either a arm or hand. "Don't fucking shoot me." Dutch said, and looked down at the field ripper ghoul. "Name?" Dutch said. "I really want to know your name, so that I can dismember you and post the nametag above your corpse on my wall." Dutch said, his blank eyes staring into the ghoul as he removed his shades.

Vegas adict14:02, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// eh ku the bullet hit jacob and chay threw into your eye.Also which ghoul are you talking to Alfred,Boris or chay?
--Cerebral plague14:03, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Fucking Davidson..." Boris thought to himself, as he slowly got back up. Taking out his last stealth boy, he tossed it Chay. Then slowly started walking back wards, along with Alfred.

Chay caught the stealth boy, and put his Shaolin Twin Hooks together. He had an un orthodox move that he learned after watching a yao-gai try to attack him. Activating it, he started twirling them in his hands, a flashy move that wasn't very effective. Except when you used it while tossing it from hand to hand, nearly cutting open your stomach each time. Making it so that anyone that approached five feet of you, was cut in half. Then it was really effective. Chay attacked from one side of the Enclave pricks, then immediately jumped to the right of him, putting a large gash in his stomach.

KuHB1aM14:05, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Any throw would be horribly weak. Your in a bad state, after the fight. Dutch is post-human. He can block that stuff because he can.

Dutch smiled as his combat armor underneath his clothes deflected the blow. "Nuh-uh-uh." Dutch said, wagging his finger. Bringing his pistol up, Dutch merely slammed into the man's face as he spinned, sending him on his back. "Combat armor, bud. Any smart guy has combat armor on." Dutch said, pointing towards it on his chest. "Eat it, cupcake." Dutch said, picking up his duffel. "I'm done with this fight. Don't have time for this." Dutch said.

Wrong ghoul again chay only got kicked in the chest nothing happend to his arms]]  

Watching chays masterfull display of sword work alfred edged his way back with boris."boris hold my rifle steady im going to shoot one of the buggers".Boris complied and alfred squezed of a round at Dutch and the other man.

--Cerebral plague14:10, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Shaolin Monks take forever to fatigue. This is there daily routine. They wake up, they train. They eat, they train. They meditate, they train. They be bad ass, and then they train. Alos, the hooks are made of steel they rip right through combat armor. Combat armor was made to deflect bullets, not crazy shaolin monks with five feet long twin hooks when put to gether.
Run4urLife!14:12, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Longer posts. You're giving everyone fuck all to go on

Jacob snarled as the bullet clipped his leg. He watched as the shimmer of a Stealthboy moved around and around him, whirling his odd weapons. Jacob drew his SCM Sword and thrust it right into the centre of the shimmer, there was a loud clash of steel on steel, and the shimmer staggered. Jacob followed through with a solid kick, staggering the Ghoul. Jacob followed up with a jumping punch to the head, before wrenching the Stealthboy from the Ghoul. Then he headbutted the Ghoul in the face, flooring him.

"Eat it ya shambler." Jacob sneered.

--Cerebral plague14:17, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Wait, did Dutch just deflect shaolin monk spinning steel blades fifty miles per hour with combat Armour? Are you serious?
KuHB1aM14:18, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Dammit! Truce! The only thing that's gonna happen here is... well, three dead ghouls and a squad of conscripts. But lol, after several hundred years, you'd think he'd get a wee bit tired, CP? And yes, I'm serious, muahaha!!! score one for inadequate protection!!!

Dutch instinctively dodged as another round almost hit him. "Dammit!" Dutch said. He was sick and tired of this bullshit. Drawing his alien rifle, he aimed it one-handed and fired, the blades making a chopping motion and moving incredibly fast at the enemy ghouls. "Let's see you flaky ass panzies dodge that!" Dutch said, laughing and grinning. The blades were almost upon the pair. Fist-bumping Jacob, Dutch kept his 1911 on in his other hand as he put away the alien rifle.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:20, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Squad, enter battle!

Jackson Upham peered from the wall. Seeing that the two men were stil lstanding, even though one was shot in the leg, he quickly made a motion of "Get the hell over here fasst" with his hand. Quickly, 5 men armed with a assorment of weapons came to his postion. One, armed with a Assualt rifle and nicknemd Sarge took command.

"Alright, i want this by the numbers! We go in there and take those two men down. Without leathl force, we take them alive. Got it?" Thwe Sarge half-whispered.

The rest of the Squad nodded. Heavy just grunted though. Burstinf out of the Wall, they spritned into the camp, Weapons trained on the 2 men. 3 on the Jacket wearing one, and the other 3 on the one that just got shot.

"Uhhh, drop your weapons?" Jackson asked/ Commanded while the restr of the group was yelling "Drop your fucking weapons!" heavy just grunted really loud.

Vegas adict14:21, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// logic says the 3 ghouls should have beaten Dutch

Alfred looked on hin horor whoever these people were they did mess around.He turned to boris "lets get a move on i don't wan't to be here when the horde arive".Sliding his blade back into his stabbard he turned and continued to back away from the madmen."Chay get out the horde will be hear soon"

KuHB1aM14:22, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Going offline. Run4, take care of Dutch and keep him RPing along, k? I don't want my entrails and eyes and chest ripped out and open, k? Also, logic says that a post-human can beat three ghouls
Vegas adict14:25, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// no we had numbers and more experience.Also run/Plauge im going to be off for an hour or so,Could you keep my char's Rping

Dutch waited to hear cries of pain but didn't hear anything. Chay had blocked 7 of 10 Alien Laser blades with his Twin Hooks, which were now scorched red and had red blades sticking out of them. "Try harder," Chay exclaimed, the other 3 Alien blades missed and went off in the distance to a tree."Now stop shoting at us your not crusade were not crusade,For now at least we are on the same side"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:27, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// WHAT! You ignored my squad...twice!
--Cerebral plague14:28, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// No, he wouldn't. Me and Tehk were just talking about this on Irc. I how ever, have to go after this post. Also, you'd be suprised how high a shaolin monk can jump, and how well Boris and Alfred can dive. Also, just lye on the floor till the conscripts leave.

Boris and Alfred immediately dived the second the man fired his alien rifle. Chay how ever, jumped, dodging the large rounds as they tore through the air. Boris looked over to Alfred and smiled. "Sniper support took a while, eh?" Soon, bullets were landing all around Dutch and Jacob from the snipers on the hill. "Looks like you jack asses lost!" Chay, Boris, and Alfred soon started running toward the hill, as sniper fire tore up any chance of survival for the two Enclave soldiers. Boris looked back, as he several bullets land in the two assholes, and they fell to the ground. Signaling for the snipers to stop, Boris thought that the two soldiers were dead.

Run4urLife!14:30, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// And we had training, intelligence, and vast physical superiority

Act 7[]

Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:36, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

The squad, being in the camp with the three Rapture Company ghouls and the two soldiers that were holding there own, hopped around a bit, trying to dodge Sinper Fire from their OWN side. When they all finnaly stopped, Jackson flipped them off and went back to pointing his Assualt Rifle at the man who had not fired that crazy gun.

"Hey..uhh, could surrdener?"

Jackson looked backwards from his gun, before snapping back to looking at the man. He looked like he could kill the entire squad with his barehands. Montioning them to move back a little, they took a few steps back. Heavy, carrying a minigun, was right next to Jackson who had a Chinese Assualt rifle who was next to Kane, carrying a Assualt Rifle who, agian, was next to the Sarge who was carrying a assualt rifle and, finnaly, Bourne, carrying another Assualt Rifle.

"Back away...slowly and put your hands up..." The Sarge snarled.

KuHB1aM14:40, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Gotta say something before I leave. I shot Chay twice, broke Boris' elbow, broke Alfred's wrist, disarmed all of them at some point, and yet they can charge up a hill? How?
Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:42, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Who, the Consrpicts? They were ignored. We were yelling at the Warrior Weapons, and everybody ignored us.
Run4urLife!14:44, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Apparently, being 200 years old means you can be beaten around by a super soldier
KuHB1aM14:45, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// I was talking about the ghouls. They should be VERY fatigued and weak by now. Dutch is a post-human. He can deal with the major amounts of stress and pain. Ghouls, no matter what military lineage they have, should have common sense and breaking points. Hell, I shot Chay twice, broke Boris' elbow and slashed his chest, broke Alfred's wrist, disarmed all of them at least once, and have fought them continually as if they had shrugged it off.
Run4urLife!14:47, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// And then Jacob joined in. And did very little because of stupid short posts conflicting my good posts
Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:50, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Like wise. I had this post that described the Squad moving into postions, setting up a minigun, the works. Then vegas posted.
KuHB1aM14:50, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Yeah, see what I'm talking about Run4? Sure, I may have dodged a silver bullet with the combat armor thing, but at least I've taken my wounds into account! (even if they had no impact on my fighting capability). Weston, sorry for not noticing the squad. Next time I post, you'll be sure to be included.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:53, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// You should be sorry! and don't kill them all! There all vet's, rember that. They all survied when no one else did. So, that means there A) Lucky (In Jacksonns case), B) Skilled (In Kanes and Bournes case) or C) thats just how they roll (Sarges and Heavys case)
Vegas adict // Chay threw a knif in your eye!!!
Weston "Henchmen" Foster14:58, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// No he did'nt. i reread the entire posting thing with the RC ghouls fighting Dutch. No kinfe in eye.
Run4urLife!15:00, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// The knife in the eye thing was kinda Godmodding, and the post was short and disruptive. You'll get kicked out if you keep that up
Weston "Henchmen" Foster15:01, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Anyway, to RPing!
Vegas adict // and warrior weapons arnet godmodding??
Run4urLife!15:03, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// We're not sticking knives in another PLAYER Character's eyes. Or kneecapping them.
Vegas adict // he's alreddy blind!! why would it matter! you warrior weapons can pull it out with 0 hp lost!!
--Cerebral plague15:06, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Woah there! The snipers already filled Jacob and Dutch with lead, yet their still alive. (Although Boris and the others don't know that) So just let Rapture Company escape this place in peace!
Run4urLife!15:11, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Actually, Vegas, our characters take their injuries into account. We're not the ones throwing knives around in a one-line post while in the middle of a brawl with two of the most dangerous soldiers in the area

Jacob punched Holmes as he went to take a shot at the passing Ghouls. Exposed on the hill as they were, they wouldn't last long. Sure, they could kill the Ghouls at a better time. And there would be a next time. Those assholes were running around the rear-echelon of the Last Legion forces, attacking the artillery positions. Jacob knew he'd meet those Ghouls again. And when he did, he'd kill them. No two ways about it. He'd kill them, their snipers and anyone who tried to stop him.

--Cerebral plague15:18, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Next time Jacob sees us were going to have all of Rapture Company at our back.

Boris went over the hill, along with the other soldiers. He saw, he knew that the men were still alive. Riddled with bullet holes, they were still some how alive. Boris sighed, he didn't want the soldiers to worry about these bastards. Chay probably knew too, they would talk about this at base. "Head to the vertibirds, two miles south west of here. Follow Jack, or Alfred, they should know where they are."

Solbur15:20, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Whee, time to fight with myself!

Strauss grunted as he brought Impact down in a surprisingly fast but nontheless devastating strike on one of the guys in the BRA suits, killing him instantly. Dumb bastard had went at him with a trench knife. He couldn't really tell which side he was on - Crusade loyalist or Last Region, or whatever they called themselves. They were still the same bigot bastards in Strauss' eyes, worthy of nothing else but an untimely death. "Take a break," He quipped as he saw that the man's neck was now positioned in such a completely wrong and unnatural way, it had to have been snapped by the strike. He glanced around. No-one else in the vicinity, just him and the corpses. It was almost as though somebody else had been downing the Crusaders with him. That couldn't be true though. Nah, probably just lost track of myself in the fighting. He focused his attention on the small fight between Jacob, Dutch and a bunch of Ghouls. And six guys in Combat Armor that nobody seemed to be really paying attention to. He began making his way towards them (they were a good ten metres away). "Time to enter the fray," he told himself.

"Not a fucking chance, ya wanker!"

What? That sounded like a Ghoul, but with an accent Strauss didn't recognise. He peeked over his shoulder. Nobody was around to say that. Not as close as that sounded, anyway. He turned back to face in front of him - just in time to see a Stealth Boy disengaging, ripples travelling through the air in the shape of a man that became more and more permeable and visible until it gained colour and coherency. A Ghoul in Combat Armor and a coat with an ornate-looking V emblem on said coat's breast pocket. He didn't look too impressed. Neither did the H&K CAWS in his hands, pointed at Strauss.

A deafening bang, hampered only by his Power Helmet's audial stabilisers, no doubt designed to protect the ear against loud gunshots, and Strauss found himself staggering. He'd just been shot. No pellets had penetrated his armour. At least, nothing he could feel. While he was caught off-guard, he heard the unmistakeable chikt-chikt of a pump-action mechanism being operated and out of the corner of his eye saw an expended shell fly off into the nearby foliage. As he raised Impact, ready to retaliate, another helping of pellets were already flying his way. He felt a tell-tale sharp pain in one of his pectorals that he identified immediately, which illicited a gasp of pain and Impact slipping from his grip. Power Armor wasn't meant to let this happen, damnit! He was meant to be like a fucking tank!

He saw the shotgun fall to the ground, and in the Ghoul's hands in a flash were a pair of... sword... things. Strauss dropped to one knee and reached for his Super Sledge, bringing the haft up between two hands just in time to parry a downwards strike the Ghoul had executed with one of the swords. He threw the Super Sledge forwards at that, sending the Ghoul staggering by the weight of the weapon and the force he'd applied with his armour's servos. As Strauss reached for his D'Eagle, another strike came at lightning speed, cutting through into his unarmoured elbow joint, through his Recon Armor undersuit and slicing into his unprotected flesh. Strauss yelled out in anguish and finally secured a grip on his sidearm with the arm that retained mobility, raising it up in front of him and firing. The bullet hit nothing. The Ghoul was nowhere to be seen. Suddenly, Strauss felt his helmet rise off his head and a dull throbbing in the back of his skull. He felt dizzy. Then he saw the floor rushing up to meet him.

"Twat," Sean Abbott (Page coming eventually!) muttered as he slid his blades into their sheathes, picked his CAWS back up and slung it over his shoulder before sprinting off to catch up with Boris, Chay and Alfred, firing up his Stealth Boy once again and fading from a hidden Crusade sniper's view.

Run4urLife!15:23, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Jacob and Dutch's ARMOUR may be full of holes, but THEY aren't. As with any other Warrior Weapon, high velocity lead is quite harmful to them
--Cerebral plague15:35, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// There wearing a layer of combat armor, a duster coat, and some more cloth under that. It can't be that protective.
Run4urLife!15:39, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Jacob has combat armor, clothes, and a Kevlar bodysuit
Weston "Henchmen" Foster15:45, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Lets go Marines! I mean, damn it, Surviors!"

Looking at the Sarge for a second, the Squad keep there guns trained on whereever a enmeny might pop out from. Then, breaking into a jog, they reached the VTOL.

"Postively Badass! Get in the Vertibird!"

"Hell yeah!" Shouted Kane.

Strapping themeslves in, the Vertibird lifted off, while the soldiers talked among themselves. Jackson was busy trying to beat Bourne in a game of cards. Well, Go Fish, really.

"Got any threes?"

"Nope. Got any twos?"

"Damnit! I think you cheat Bourne, i really do."

"Just like how your girlfriend cheats with me!"

A peroid of laughter erupted within the hold, with similar jokes about each others mothers, girlfriends and sisters. That was, until the Sarge yelled at them. Then the ride was a bit quieter on the way home.

Radiation King16:08, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Wow, I can feel the hostility from all the way over here. Let's get this straightened out and stop arguing so we can get back to the thread... Please...

Domingo looked over th rim of El Oso and its cockpit, and drew his SAA. As it turned out, Domingo was wedged diagonally, nose down in a trench with the articulated joint holding the trailer facing upwards. Grumbling as he pulled back on the T-bar, he eventually sighed in defeat, noting that El Oso was stuck facedown in a deserted trench in the middle of a battlefield. Not a good place to be, especially considering he had just managed to dodge out of the way of artillery. Pulling himself the rest of the way out, he immediately rolled off the side of the tank and down into the trench as a Vertibird strafed El Oso, narrowly missing. Domingo stood, ankle-deep in thick, sucking mud, and ran off down the trench. There was nothing he could do to save his beloved tank right now, he would have to come back for it later.

One of the Last Legion soldiers, dressed in his fearsome BRA (I just realized how rediculous that sounds), levelled an R91 assault rifle at Domingo's face. Domingo rolled forward, using his momentum to sweep the Legionnaire off his feet and onto the ground. With the soldier facedown in the mud, Domingo proceeded to press the man's face into it, only realizing thirty seconds in that the man was wearing a fucking respirator. Sighing, Domingo instead whipped the hammer back on his gun and fired a single .45 Colt round into the back of the soldier's head. Looting his Field Ripper and placing it on his back, Domingo took off down the trench.

Vegas adict16:10, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// thats some serious armour run4.I still think though that the 3 ghouls could have beaten 1 WW.But nevermind,Also when does all my sins remembered start

Alexis jumped off the trailer onto the ground.Crusade loyalists and legionaries surounded him.Drawing his pistol he shot 2 in quick sucsesion.Struass and Jacob were some way up ahead.As he ran towards the direction he had seen struass headed."Strauss Where the hell are you!".He stoped yelling as he saw struass colapsed on the floor.Runing over to him alexis opened a stimpack and injected into struass."You ok strauss?"

Run4urLife!16:15, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// It starts as soon as KuHB1aM gets back and we can finish the Crusade/Last Legion storyline. Jacob stole his armor over a ten year period of rampaging all over New England
Vegas adict16:21, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// is it ok to bring the EMAA or LVBOS back into it for a final fling in it?
Solbur16:24, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// In All My Sins Remembered, probably, but wait for Run's say-so. Bringing them in now would just prolong an already closing RP, though.

Strauss slowly opened his eyes, his ears ringing as though a bomb had went off next to him. Or a Yao Guai had done a charging headbutt on him. Or he'd been kicked in the back of the head by a crazy Pre-War former special ops Ghoul. Couldn't really differentiate. His hearing adjusted in time to hear Alexis asking if he was alright. His first response was an indecipherable groan - the next consisted of turning over, looking at the Magnum-toting historian and nodding weakly. He pushed himself to a kneeling position as the Stimpak took effect, reached for his helmet and pulled it over his head before looking around for Impact. "... are Jacob and Dutch alright? I was meaning to go and help them, but... this Ghoul guy in a coat... damnit, he handed my ass to me!" His speech quickly became audibly frustrated as he pounded his fist into the dirt, before Alexis helped him up to his feet (or tried to).

Run4urLife!16:26, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// As long as we don't have a re-run of the cock dangling that accompannied them in the other RPs they were involved in.
Vegas adict16:31, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// so no tanks :(

Alexis pulled strauss to his feat.He needed to get proper medical treatment before he could fight again though."Come on Jacob and dutch were shaken up by 3 kickn ass ghouls but there ok,You need to Ol Elso so we can get you back to Rivet city.".He picked up impact from nearby and passed it to strauss."Youse that to help you up.",The two of them started back to the tank.

--Cerebral plague16:39, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// THE HORDE!

Boris took out the radio next to him, Cerebral Jack was flying the vertibird. Finding the Horde signal, he waited for them to reply. "Hey assholes! We just took down most of the last legions artillery, go in there and kick their asses already, just remember the deal." A horde commander answered, and after a bit of vulgar words (mostly by Boris) he hung up. "Lets get out of here man, I don't want to be around when this shit hits the fan."

Run4urLife!16:46, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// You do get that this is the attack that fucks up, right? And Talon Company didn't work with the Horde! Why would they work with Wastelanders?
--Cerebral plague16:51, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// My lack of a memory is starting to annoy me. A lot. Fixed it though
User:Ramsey16:59, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// I'm gonna have to leave this RP, finals and such are coming up and I truly don't have the time. Good writing with you guys. I'll continue to read this though.

Aaron poured the last bit of cold, purified water into his dry mouth as he walked the scorching wastelands of the east coast. It had been almost two days since he left Stefanie, Roland, Domingo, Jacob, and the rest. They wanted to run after Holmes and help the bastard. That was something Aaron had no part in. He hoped Holmes died, no, he hoped the Enclave man got his legs and arms blown off and was left to die in the wastes. Aaron shook his head, why he hated that man was still an enigma to him. Sure, he was Enclave, but he helped those wastelanders, his friends. No, he would forget about Dutch, much bigger things were going to come into play besides him. Almost a state away and Aaron swore he could still hear the thundering pounds of mortar shots and artillery. In the back of his mind he could even still hear the voices of his former companions, of course that was just the schizophrenia talking. But he still clearly saw Domingo's happy face, cigar and all; Stefanie's shining compassion and bravery, her beautiful smile covering her innocent-looking face. He saw the rest, all of them ready to die for each other, weather they be a stranger or a life-long friend. The Austinite took one last look backwards, in the direction of D.C, inhaled deeply, and continued on into the rising sun. Night was darkest before the dawn, and dawn is here.

Aaron was heading home.

Run4urLife!17:02, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// There's a perk for Schizophrenia
User:Ramsey17:03, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Hah, that's pretty cool. I'll be sure to add that to Aaron's page.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster17:04, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Medic!

Climbing out of the tank, Weston looked around. Strauss and Alexis were moving to the tank, and Alexis looked like he was about to be crushed. Running to him, Weston grabbed Strauss and helped him to the tank. However, they needed to get acrosss the treanch. But, they went around it.


The Crusade sinper looked at the tank. Then looked around the tank through his scope. He spotted three figures. The first armed in power armour looked to be helped by non-Last Legion soldiers, sighting in one with the assualt rifle...


"Alright Strat, stop fucking scriming! We have to go around this trench..."


He was ready to fire. Taking a deep breath, he aimed for the chest. Easy shot from here. Squezzing the trigger, the bullet flew in a path aimed for the Assualt rifle armed young man. Bring bakc his sinper rifle, the sinper moved to a new postion. He had more problems to deal with. One down, a Legion to go.


"Alright Strat looks like your all se- SHIT@"

A .44 bullet hit Weston in the side. Flying the oppostise way the bulelt came, he felw onto the ground, screaming in pain. Injecting some Med-X into his system, he quickly crawled to the trench, where he hunkered down. Strat and Alexis seemed to have the same idea, since they joined him in the trench. Grimancing and Screaming in pain, he checked where the bullet went into. He had no armour there.

"Goddamn it..fucker got me...Alexis, go get someone to help."

Run4urLife!17:15, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// NOOOOOOOOOOO!!!!

"Wrong shot to take." Jacob snarled as he stabbed into the relocating sniper's neck and ripped sideways. The man spasmed and gagged as his lifeblood fountained across the trench wall.

Holmes jogged up behind Jacob, watching the body fall. Those assholes had disappeared. The Ghouls, and their buddies with the automatic rifles. Jacob threw the carcass aside and moved towards the tank. Without a word, he lifted Weston over his shoulders and lumbered back to the trailer, Holmes covering them. He laid Weston down in the trailer, injecting him with a Stimpak and some Jet. Fingers crossed that cocktail of drugs wouldn't kill the boy.

Jackal crouched next to the prone form of Weston, imagining "Knocking on Heaven's Door" playing in the background as Weston coughed in the bed of the trailer. Riley was sitting on the far side of Weston, rummaging through his bag to try and find any meds that might help a gunshot wound of that magnitude. Cat was licking Weston's hand.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster17:25, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Good dog...good dog."

Weston coughed agian. This time, it was blood. Groaning, he looked around. Nearly everybody was huddled around him. His friends. Jacob, who picked him up, even through enemy fire, amnd brought him into the trailer. Riely, the man who could tlak with his mind. Homles, the asswipe that got him into this. Domingo, the tank driver who became a good friend in the short time he had known him. McRae, the ex-slave turned pit fighter turned friend. Jackal, the funnyiest ghoul he'd ever met. He...he could'nt die. No, not yet. What was it that they told the people about to die? Run from the light? Thats what h e needed to do...just...run. NO! DON'T CLOSE THE EYES! DON'T CLOSE THEM! Just...just look at cat. Pet Cat.

"Am...am i going to die?"

Weston asked with the innonce of a child asking if santa was real.

Solbur17:28, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"No! No... no, you're not, Weston, o-okay? You're not going to die. You're gonna be alright. Don't die on us. Just... keep breathing, keep your eyes open, stay focused. Focus on... um... Cat. Yeah, look at Cat. Isn't he a lovely doggie?" Strauss said in a vain attempt at sounding reassuring. It didn't quite work as he sounded far too panicky and nervous. He reached over to ruffle the dog's fur, who seemed to be enjoying the attention despite Weston bleeding to death. Strauss shot a worried glance at Riley as he sorted through his bag for medicine, so Strauss shuffled away from Weston and decided to do the same.

--Cerebral plague17:40, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Westons dying? NOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOOO!
Solbur17:42, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// NO! I won't let him die! *strangles Weston* STOP DYING!
Weston "Henchmen" Foster17:44, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Weston began to lose some breath. His breathing became harder, and harder.

"Strauss..."

"Yeah, what is it?"

"Your kneeing my chest."

Looking at his knee, he could see that a powerarmoured knee was on Weston chest. Removing it, Westons breathing became normasl.

"Thanks."

--Cerebral plague18:03, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Wow Struass, you don't have to knee peoples chests all the time. Weston could of died!
Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:12, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Your not even here...waahh...
User:Ramsey18:17, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Weston, you sly dog. What was that a reference to again? I have the scene fresh in my mind...
Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:19, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// What reference? If i made one, i made it without knwoing it.
--Cerebral plague18:24, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Boris was waiting in the vertibird, and looked over at his apprentice. "You can go." Jack simply looked at him puzzled. "What sir?" Boris pointed to the parachutes, and to the hatch. Under that mask the ghoul was smiling. Jack grabbed one of the parachutes, and jumped out of the vertibird.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:31, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Weston saw some one falling out of a Vertibird. Then, a large cloud of cloth pillowed behind that said person and they fell gently to the earth. Trying to look up, he had a hand be placed on his chest by Jacob. He did'nt say anything , he just nooded no. Laying back done, and grimancing everyonce in a while due to the massive pain inflicted by the bullet, he began to feel weak in the legs.

"Hey, is it good or bad to not really feel your legs?"

Weston asked. He was starting to get a little deluisonly, but, he was still alive. He was'nt really on his last few breath, he more was on the edge. If there was nothing to help him soon, he could very well die.

Solbur18:35, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"... Oh, fuck, fuck, fuck!" Strauss snapped, emptying out his bag onto the floor of the trailer. Evidently, rummaging through it was not fast enough. Eventually he retrieved a Stimpak and jabbed it into Weston's wrist, presumably near the vein. "Alright, that should help! Weston, um, I'm not sure about the numbness, but you'll be okay. Alright? Riley, see if you can get the bullet out!" The psychic Wastelander nodded and got to work. Strauss followed up with half a standard dosage of Med-X. Any more would probably knock Weston out at this point, which was the last thing he needed.

--Cerebral plague18:37, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Jack will see weston die, if he has to go to hell and back for it!

Jack approached the trailer, seeing everyone inside of it. It wasn't that large of a trailer either, so he assumed that it was important. Walking in, he saw Weston. "What the fuck happened to you buddy?"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:42, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Oh...i got shot."

Weston said clam and relxed. Problay due to the massive amount of drugs in his system. He could feel Riely squeezing around in his side looking for the bullet. Weston grimanced and had a even harder time breathing whenever he did that. It hurt even more then the time he had been hit in the gut by a baseball bat. That tht hurt for a week. Biting his lower lip, tears were rolling down his eyes when Rielt looked inside his body. Still, no bullet could be found. Problay due to the face that it's mixed in with blood, guts and organs. If he made out of here, Weston tought, he was getting power armour.

--Cerebral plague18:48, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"That's happened to me a few times, hurts doesn't it?" Jack sat down next to Weston, and took out some Vodka that he had been drinking earlier. "Want some?"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster18:53, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Sure, why not?"

Weston took the bottle and took a small swig of it. It dulled the pain, a little. Still hurtt. He had no clue if thedigging around inside of his body was doing good or more harm. Right now, it seemed like it was doing more harm then good.

"Reiley...stop for a mintue. GHurts like a bitch."

Weston layed his head agiasn t the floor. However, his head was quickly lifted up and a bag of softer materils was put in its plavce. a little comfort in his pain.

Vegas adict19:11, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis crouched over weston looking in his bag for his med kit "give me a stim-pak med ex and alchohol".taking the items he rinsed a bandage in the alchol and aplied it to the wond before injecting the stims."i can stableise him but he needs help from a proper docter".Alexis looked back over,the damage wasn't to bad but the bacteria was the problem."Domingo take us to rivet city i need to speak to Dr.Preston"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:27, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Alexis, your the dumbest piece of shit. The front end of the tank is in a trench. We can't back out. And with the fucking battle going around, hell, i'll problay not even make it there!"

Weston half-talked, half wheezed. It was starting to get to a point in which it was getting painful to talk. Weston ran a mental checklist in his head. He could'nt feel his legs, he was semi-delouionly, and it was getting hard for him to talk and breath. Great. Out of all people the sinper could have shot at, he could have shot someone wearing FUCKING POWERARMOUR. Not just wearing a jacket and some clothes! He was lucky though. If the bullet hit one of the clips he carried inside his jacket, it could have set it off and simply tore him to sheards. Still...he was getting weak...and sleepy...

Radiation King19:32, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Alright, did you even read my last post? El Oso is stuck in a trench and Domingo is well out of earshot.

Apparently Alexis hadn't noticed the fact that the trailer floor was at a slant, or that all movement had ceased in terms of El Oso and its forward motion. Or maybe he hadn't noticed that Roland was currently outside the tank's trailer, taking potshots at approaching Last Legion soldiers and Crusaders alike. A round wailed right towards one of his arms and embedded itself in the metal endoskeleton. Slightly annoyed that his favorite arm had a bullet in it, Roland sprayed down the last few Last Legion soldiers, retreated back inside the trailer and shut the door again. A few overhead lamps flickered to life. "The tank is wedged in a trench, Alex." Roland's eyes looked tired. "I don't know if you've been paying attention for the last ten minutes, but it's stuck at a forty-five degree angle with the treads embedded in the trench wall. It's not going anywhere iwthout a crane or some two-ton car jacks."

Roland turned on the X-ray scanner in his right eye, looking Wston's torso over around the entry wound. "Riley, your forceps are off by a fair distance. You need to go in farther; the slug is embedded in his pelvis, he took the shot low in the torso." Roland was working quickly, slapping Weston across the face with his acrive arm to wake him up and forcing a pair of caffeine pills down his throat.

"Stay awake, Weston. You're too thick to die in the back of a goddamn trailer."


Domingo struck another Crusade soldier with the butt of his SAA, throwing the unfortunate grunt into the reinforced wall of the trench. He checked the dressing on his arm again; a Crusade Airborne Trooper's laser rifle had grazed it and caused some burns. Despite the fact that the wound should've automatically cauterized, Domingo's hemophilia was coming through at the worst possible time and it was bleding like crazy. The dressing was already soaked with blood, and the cigar smoke in his face probably wasn't helping. At least the bastard got his arm torn off..., Domingo mused to himself as he shot another Last Legionaire in the arm, sending the man spinning to the ground. He stopped and took another length of gauze, cloth and sterile padding out of his small medpack and tied off his arm, watching as the blood flowed in. Domingo popped a Vicodin into his mouth, took another drag on his cigar and pistol-whipped the Last Legionnaire as he attempted to stand, crushing his windpipe and causing him to fall again.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:37, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"What?"

Weston was half statrled awake, and half because Roland nearly chocked him by shoving caffiene pills down his throat. Looking at Roland, he semi lost hearing for a second due to the slap, but, he read rolands slip. Something about a pelvis and it was a low shiot.

"Hety...what does being too thick mean?"

Radiation King19:42, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roland smiled. At least Wston was still semi-coherent. "It's an, uh... It's a complement. Means you an take a lotta shit and give it right back." The wastelander retreated to the corner of the trailer where he'd been almost the entire time, returning to his radio broadcast and keeping an eye on Stefanie, whi was still working to regain her full range of motion.

--Cerebral plague19:43, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jack chuckled. "Weston, you might be on your deathbed, and you might of just asked "What does being too thick mean" as your final words?" Weston started to laugh, but was stopped by his choking. "So, do you want me to go out and kill some Crusader dipshits for you?"

KuHB1aM19:47, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Vegas, no matter what you think, the fact concerning WWs is that they are post-humans. Even as pre-war military professionals, they shouldn't even be able to fight against a WW. They simply don't have the reflexes or power that a WW has. Plus the fact that Dutch's memory grafts have failed make him a very powerful opponent. And you cant tear my eye out.

Dutch kept his pistol out, surveying around El Oso as the group tended to Weston's wounds. He turned towards Jacob. "I think we should start moving." Dutch said, stating the obvious. He wouldn't be accompanying the group if they did head for Rivet City, but maybe he could cover for them. A massive tank wasn't exactly the hardest of targets to hit. However, if the tank was gonna move, it needed to be pushed out of the trench. With Last Legionnaires advancing, Dutch turned towards the crew. "I hate to break it to you, but you need to decide if your staying or leaving. I can't wait here." Dutch said, his head still watching the enemy.

Vegas adict // can't riley just "pull" the tank out of the ditch..??

Alexis knew if the membes of the group who had been shot wanted to live they had to get out of here."Dutch you know as well as i do that if we stay here Weston is likely to die.We have two choices if we want him to live 1.We somehow get the tank out of the trench and drive to the nearest place with a doctor or one or more of us get him there some otherway."He turned to weston "Now can you feal the bit where you were shot?"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:56, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Yeah...."

Weston breathed. He was getting tired agian. His eyelids would fall about halfway, then be forced open by Weston, where it would stasy for a few seconds, then fall back down, and the cycle was repated. He saw that Roland was busy with his radio, but, he did'nt hear what he was saying through the background noise of the battle. He did'nt want to die...but...it hurt so much... He took a .44 to the gut. to a Unarmoured section of his body. On second thought, the only part of his body armopured was his head, and that was just with a combat helment...mus'tnt...fall...asleep...

KuHB1aM20:01, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// I don't think his powers are that strong.

"Well, provided I get some help, I can move the tank. However, that will withdraw most of our protective fire-power, and I don't want to get shot again so soon." Dutch said, rubbing his leg. He was sure he could move the tank; it was just a matter of getting some help. However, it would leave all of them exposed, with minimal cover fire. It would deprive of them of several key heavy hitters, Dutch being amongst the number as #2. With only Roland, Stefanie, and Domingo to cover them, they'd be hard-pressed to get the tank out under the threat of snipers. Slapping Weston on the side of the head, Dutch looked into his face. "Don't fall asleep, or you'll find out what I'll do to you." Dutch said, sarcastically threatening him. It wasn't true of course, but Weston would know all too well the consequences of falling asleep.

Solbur20:01, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Teh Krush just asked me to post that. I don't think he's strong enough to telekinetically move the whole tank, but what I've got in mind should help a bit.

"Alright!" Riley suddenly blurted out. "I've got it! I've got the bullet! I'm gonna try and take it out now. Jack, top him up on vodka." Weston was about to say something but the bottle was in his mouth before he could spit it out. He seemed to be biting into it at first, but soon stopped as alcohol flowed down his throat. Riley meanwhile managed to pry the bullet free with his forceps, and then flicked it out of the back of the trailer. Alexis briefly attempted to clean the wound, but blood was pouring out at a phenomenal rate, so he simply dressed it with some gauze and a bandage and applied as much pressure as he could. Strauss injected his final Stimpak into Weston. Riley brainstormed while he caught his breath. Weston would probably be alright, but there was still the matter of the tank being stuck in a fucking trench...

Then he had an idea.

"Strauss, I need you to go out and unfasten the bolt holding the tank to the trailer." Riley said, suddenly. Strauss nodded and climbed out of the trailer, doing as he was instructed. "Right. Everyone else, focus on moving everything that isn't bolted down outside. That means Weston as well. Then we're gonna have to wheel the trailer away from the tank. And then, um, I'm gonna need somebody to go into El Oso and move everything that isn't bolted down, again. Try and reduce its weight as much as you can." Strauss poked his head back into the trailer, having listened to him rolling off orders. "Just what's this all about, Houdini?"

"Getting us moving again." Riley replied.

Vegas adict20:07, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Shit he's fading."Im sory to say this jack.Unless we get him to Dr's Preston in a day or so hes gone,The bleedings to strong As it is i need to keep him awake,Ok?".Alexis injected another stim pack into weston, there was nothing more he could do other than pray.He walked to the back of the trailer and bowed his head,"dear lord please save this soul from death".He had done all that was posible and he turned to obay riely by lifting weston up.Shit he was heavy,"Strauss help me with him"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:10, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 


Weston agian had tears rolling down his eyes, and was screaming through glenced teeth. He was carried outside along with several other items, and Weston had been given a light pistol. Just in case he had to defend himself. Huddling behind what little cover there was, Weston looked up at the sky. A couple of vultures were already coming for the dead. He hoped that he was'nt going to be one of them.


Sebastian slowly pulled out his .44 Repeater. He was late to the battle, for sure. He had tio go to a Safehouse to re-arm. He grabbed a new knife, a SCM .357 Auto-Revolver, and a G36C assualt riflwee. Attaching the scope to the .44, he looked at the battle from his prone postiobn. He was still cut uo and bruisesd preety badly, but, it was the risks of the job. Now, he had to feed info to the CCI inside Jesurlam for info. He was effectivly now just a Recon soldier. Looking through his scope, he saw a small group of people....around a tank that looked stranely familiar...

--Cerebral plague20:16, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// If Sebastian gets with in one mile of that tank, Jack's going to rip his fucking balls off.

Jack grabbed anything he could from the tank, taking it out. The rest of the group were grabbing anything inside the trailer, including domigoes weapons. Jack took out a large crate of ammunition, and put it down near the trailer. Looking upward, Jacks saw the outline of a familar shape. Putting his hands around his mouth, he shouted. "FUCK OFF PRINCESS!"

KuHB1aM20:16, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// When is Hennard gonna come back?

The trailer was taking more fire from enemy troops, as the group became caught in another battle outside the walls from a returning Loyalist company that had stumbled upon the scene after heading back from Norfolk. Both sides were pounding the group, which was now in the middle of a second-war zone. Holstering his pistol, Dutch managed to grab his Tar-21, sliding into the trench where El Oso had fallen. Picking targets at random, Dutch began firing bursts at different targets on either side. They needed to get moving. "Jacob, give me a hand with this!" Dutch said, moving to push El Oso backwards. He yelled to Domingo. "You need to put this thing in reverse, Dom!" Dutch said as Jacob joined him. Using one hand and his back to push upwards against the tank, he fired one-handed with his assault rifle at charging Legionnaires, the closer of the two sides.

Radiation King20:20, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roland scowled at Alexis, looking over at the prayerful historian with a wicked grimace. He turned, lifted his cybernetic arm and bitch-slapped Alexis right across the face. The historian was swept off his feet and thrown to the floor of the trailer, a bruise already forming over his right temple- the ultimate "shut the fuck up" gesture.. He then turned to Riley and nodded, picking up an armful of boxes. "Let's go, people," he said as he led the way out of the trailer. A sniper's bullet smacked into his back, but if the bullet found its mark it didn't show. Roland put the box down, pulled a grenade off his chest, threw it at the marksman's last known location and walked away. The sniper's corpse bobbed in the air for a few seconds before falling back to earth.

Dutch's shouting fell on deaf ears. Domingo was well out of range of the Warrior Weapons' shouting, having made his way well down the trenghes and into the Crusade lines. However, Domingo realized how deep he had penetrated into the trenches and turned back, towards El Oso.

The horde was losing, badly, as evidenced by the mass piles of Wastelander corpses mingled amongst the Last Legionnaires that had passed on.

Vegas adict20:24, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Oh fucking hell and to make it worse he had been nocked back by roland.,They were being atacked again and weston wasn't geting any better."I need cover for weston!".He raised his MK1 rifle and fired one of its trade mark high-power blasts.As the dial switched to charging he swaped it for his magnum and fired it 3 times at aproaching legionaries."Struass i need to get weston somewhere safer!"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:27, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Sebastian shouted back: "I'M ASSHOLE! GLASSES GUY WAS PRINCESS! SHUT UP, BIG BERTHA!"

With that done, he went back to his sitting postion agiasnt a tree and looking at the Last Legion forces, talking on his Radio.There was a fuck lot of therm, all of them with the creepy red eyes...which remainded him. What if Jersulm feel? He'd be out of a job...who'd pay him? Maybe he could talk to the Last Legion, and they could give him a job. Or possibly the AWA. They were having a bit of trouble with the Rebels from Red Faction. Maybe even Rascon could give him a job. Looking back to where his jeep was, he smiled. He loved that thing. Walking over to it, he grabbed some bincolars, drove the jeep up closer, tuned into a Radio broadcasting that was apperntly near the battle, talking about someone wounded. Shrugging, he countied to watch the battle, talking into a handheld Radio.


Solbur20:29, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

As everyone unloaded the contents of the trailer and tank onto the dry Post-War grass, Riley climbed down into the trench El Oso was stuck in. This wasn't going to be easy, not by a long shot. "Strauss!" He called out. "Ya got a rope?" There was a moment of silence (well, what could be called silence, gunfire and explosions ignored) before he responded. "Yeah!" Strauss yelled back. "Tie it around the bit where the bolt that connects the trailer to the tank slides in! Okay?"


Strauss got to work quickly, tying the rope where he was told in the most ridiculously tight knot he'd ever done. There was still a good four metres of rope left. Gee, it's a good thing I keep all of these things handy. Especially since that god damn turncoat robot had decided to hide in Hamilton's appropriately named Hideaway while everyone else did the work of fighting the Crusade. It was also a good thing that the rope was reinforced with steel wire or whatever it was called, if Riley was planning what Strauss thought he was planning. Strauss started taking pot-shots at the Crusaders in the trenches rushing towards El Oso, while occasionally turning to cover Weston and Alexis. "Put him back in the trailer! Here, I'll give ya a hand!" Strauss then helped Alexis carry Weston back into the trailer, which had indeed been moved away.

KuHB1aM20:33, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

The tank was moving, but hardly, as Dutch and Jacob struggled to move the massive tank. Why the hell wasn't Domingo putting the tank in reverse. However, Dutch barely had time to think about it as Legionnaires jumped down into the trench. Moving to engage them, Dutch could no longer divert attention to the tank. Aiming his assault rifle, Dutch fired three times, each shot slamming into the chest of a BRA-wearing Legionnaire. The shots penetrated, sending the ripper-wielding L.L. spinning as blood began to pour out from the hits. Turning towards another L.L., Dutch slammed the butt of his rifle into the soldier's face, kicked his chest, and sent him backwards, the ripper in his hand flying from his grasp. Emptying a clip into the bastard, Dutch couldn't even reload as a third ripper-wielding L.L. charged him, this time actually reaching him. Dutch brought up the rifle to block the ripper, the chainsaw tearing through the rifle frame and rendering it useless. Holding two pieces of his rifle, Dutch did the only logical thing he could think of; he used both pieces as weapons and slammed both sides of the soldier's head using such force that his BRA helmet collapsed under the pressure, most likely killing him. Dropping both pieces to the side, Dutch made a heavy chop to the soldier's neck, and kicked his legs out, de-commissioning the man. Yet a fourth soldier charged him, with more on the way. Not having time to grab a weapon, Dutch looked to the side as Jacob engaged several other chargers. This wasn't working. Dodging to the side, Dutch found a ripper on the ground, recently discarded. Taking it, he turned to launch it into the man's chest with the switch flipped on, ripping into his BRA suit and tearing through his body. The man fell backwards, blood kicking up from his stomach.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:37, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Fuck it."

Sebastian aimed his .44 at the Charging Last Legion soldiers. Aiming for the head of one, he slowly puilled the trigger. A few seconds later, he lsaw that mans head expolode in to a mush of brains and gore. The lifeless body swayed there for a moment, before falling in the trench. Simling under his mask, he worked the level and brought another round into the chamber. Amig into another Last Legionite, he fired into the man charging towards Dutch and Jacob. If hisplan did'nt work, he problay could get browine points with his surpoirers for being a minor help in the battle.

Vegas adict20:38, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis nodded his apretiation to to strauss "Ta".He got back to work on weston.He was stabalising and if he was lucky he would live without a vist to a real doctor.He jumped back out the trailer "Thanks Riely what you did might have helped save westons life,"Crouching by the trailer he set to using his rifle again,It was slow but every time it made contact with a crusader the man was going to die.

Solbur20:46, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// This is probably gonna seem really cheesy, but let's just say Riley is very imaginative.

Riley swallowed and rubbed his hands together as he prepared himself, popping a single Mentat pill. He'd need a lot of concentration and force of will to pull this off, so hopefully the chem would help. Alright. Okay. You can do this. He told himself, running a hand through his sweat-drenched hair before narrowing his eyes and focusing on the tank, and a mental image he'd produced within his mind.

He was standing there, alone, in the trenches. None of the rest of the group were there. Nor were the Horde, the Last Legion or the Crusader Loyalists. Just Riley. Everything seemed a lot more peaceful. He had his hands under the front of the tank, pushing with all his might. He seemed to be doing a pretty fine job at it too. Concentrate. Focus. The tank started to budge. Riley was struggling, contorting his face in exertion, but it was moving. He was moving it. He could do this. You can. It was moving! He was lifting it! Nothing else seemed to matter. Focus...


Although it was being lifted slightly by Dutch and Jacob in the trenches, and the group pulling it up by the rope, the rate at which the front part was rising had increased significantly. Both the Warrior Weapons found that their workload was seemingly lessened by an unseen force.

KuHB1aM20:48, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch didn't even blink as two L.L.'s heads exploded, the distinct crackle of a .44 repeater firing in the distance. Looking in it's sound direction to see the figure of "Seabass" in a prone position, Dutch wasn't thinking the words "Thank You", but rather that he now had to contend with a sniper. Having a brief respite of several seconds, it was enough for Dutch to grab his standard issue backpack (yeah i dont want to use a army duffel anymore), he slung it on his back, then drew his pistol, firing in calm, consistent shots as the trailer escaped without El Oso. It soon became apparent to Dutch that he and Jacob were the only people still fighting in the area that weren't aligned on one of the dominant sides.

Twentyfists21:21, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Not anymore! Feel my animal fury! He's going to escape if he doesn't die, by the way.

Hennard sniffed the air. Blood. Fresh blood. Feed. Simple animalian thoughts swirled around in the creature's dense brain as it shifted its massive, painful bulk in the direction of the battlefield. Tin-man fight red-eye. Food. Many body. Food for Hennard. Hennard unslung Belton from off his back and pulverized the soldiers that got in its way. Those unfortunate souls wouldn't have their bodies brought back when this was over. Suddenly, Hennard's predatory eyes caught movement. Prey-movement. Prey move on ground. Coat-father want prey die. Suddenly, a sterile, yet sharp, pain burned into Hennard's brain as a voice calmly said, "Dutch Holmes spotted. Eliminate. Use all force necessary."

Hennard put Belton back in it's place and pulled George off its back. The animal's muscles bunched as it crouched, then leaped into place. It bared its teeth, filled its lungs with the burning air of the Wasteland, then, with all its might, howled a roar of challenge. Hennard swung George into place and began firing as it roared at its prey.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:28, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"What the fuck?"

Sebastian shouted. This giant, hulking monster with a minigun kinda popped out of nowhere. Getting in his keep, he turned off his Jeep Radio and unclipped his Handheld Radio.

"Base, this is Gather, do you read?"

"MAKE IF QUICK!"

"Doo you know of any crusade experminets with ginat fucking men?"

"No gather. Out."

Sihging, he put the Radio back on his belt and watched the monster fire randomly. He tought about helping, but, it was'nt in his paycheck. So, he lit a Cigar and watched the battle, feet up onto the Jeeps dashboard. He had his mask off, but his hood up. He did'nt want to get sunburn, after all.

KuHB1aM21:33, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Looking up to see the source of the 5mm gun-fire, Dutch's face turned into horror. That thing followed me here! Son of a bitch! It was Hennard. Jankowski's pet-project. Dutch had even faced the thing a couple times during it's training. It was, in fact, capable of beating the hell out of Dutch. "It's the fucking abominable snow-man." Dutch said, staring at the monster, still behind the cover of the tank. The 5mm rounds tore through the remainder of the L.L.s and the Loyalists, leaving this part of the war-zone barren except for Jacob, El Oso, Dutch, and Hennard. Dutch had to admit; it was the one thing that scared the living fuck out of him. It wasn't even technically Enclave controlled. It was more of a secret, unsanctioned project. It had one purpose- kill every single damned Warrior Weapon. It probably could, too. Not having a long range weapon, Dutch ducked down as he turned towards Jacob, who was curious about why Dutch's blank eyes were resembling fear. Fear was a new concept to Dutch.

Radiation King21:46, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo popped his head out of El Oso's cockpit, noting that the tank was now firmly on the ground with the trailer parked nearby. The merchant silently admitted to himself that his little group didn't make too bad a maintenance crew... But then he noticed a massive mound of flesh, metal and fear. Domingo immediately pulled his revolver and shot five of the six rounds in the chamber at the beast.

Meanwhile, Roland, standing guard at the trailer, was out of the beast's line of sight and the two were mutually invisible.

Twentyfists21:47, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// If Dutch is going to die here, can Hennard crush him to death in a bear hug?
KuHB1aM21:52, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// I'm not sure if I want Dutch to die yet. I'd have to delete part of his history. Let me think about it. Rest assured, though, that if he does die, Hennard will be the cause.

Dutch poked his head, then dove back down as 5mm fire pounded his cover, the trench ground kicking up dirt. "Fucking abomidable snowman." Dutch said, holstering his pistol. Replacing his shades, Dutch grabbed a G36C from the corpse of a dead Legionnaire, also pausing to grab his ammunition bandolier, as well as those of his former friends. Gonna need a couple thousand rounds for this one. Dutch thought. He didn't even have a couple thousand rounds. As far as he was concerned, he need a couple nukes to bring Hennard down.

Run4urLife!21:53, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Does Jacob kill him immediately afterwards or in All My Sins?

"A friend of yours?" Jacob said sarcastically as he pulled one of the myriad pistols from his duster and handed it to Dutch. A good, solid M1911, extended mag, customized Iron Sights. Dutch could wreak a lot of havoc with that thing.

Jacob unslung Mother's Woe, sliding a fresh clip of HEIAP slugs into the receiver. He took careful aim through the scope, looted from a DKS Sniper Rifle. Pointing it straight at the creature's bowling ball-like head, he inhaled and exhaled slowly, his finger tightening on the trigger. When one of its 5mm bullets tore through the trailer and missed Jacob by an inch. Sharing alook of mutual apprehension, Jacob and Dutch leaped in opposite directions. Dutch landed in the trench, while Jacob wound up behind a chunk of crenellated masonry blasted from the walls. He could see Last Legion and Crusade soldiers signalling to each other to avoid this area like the plague.

Jacob poked his head over cover, watching as the massive thing. Henhouse, Dutch had called it. No wonder the thing looked so pissed off, with a name like that. Then it spotted him and snarled something.

"Jacob Vaughton sighted. Use lethal force. Return head to father." Henhouse growled.

Father. Jankowski. Shit. Jacob was now neck deep in the smelly stuff.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:56, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Sebastian, looking threw his .44's scope, saw a familiar figure. Roland, he thought. Trader, or, at least thats what his file on him told him. He was the one who tried to give him his freedom. He owed him. He figure ths would count for something. Getting out of the jeep, He parked it in a group of rocks before sliding down the hill,towards Roland. Hitting the trailer, and putting him out of view of the beast, he tapped Roland on the shoulder.

"Hey, were about to become even!"

Thats when he popped out of cover and opened fire with his G35C. The beast ignored him and still went after Dutch. Great.

Solbur21:57, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss had slid down into the trench to pick up the now-unconscious Riley, who'd helped significantly in moving the tank but had passed out from the mental strain. Man, I hope he's alright. Lifting Riley up and placing him on the ground on the edge of the trench, the Power Armored Wastelander clambered up clumsilly shortly afterwards and was greeted by the unmistakeable sound of a minigun firing. He peeked his head out, the tank providing him some cover, to see there was this big hairy thing shooting at Dutch. Strauss did the first thing that came to his mind. He took his Laser Rifle off his back and cranked up the dial up to the maximum setting, took aim at Hennard and fired. "Hey big fuck! Taste this!!"

KuHB1aM22:00, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch caught the pistol and holster, strapping it onto his other leg. Cool. Now he had two kick-ass pistols. Keeping his head down as he slung his G36C, he answered Jacob's question. "It's Hennard. While you deserted, Raikov and Janice got in a fight. Chimera got exposed, see? Then Janice's crew got executed. Figures he has one shot left. Creates fucking abominable snowman, yes? Kills Freddy, Howard, Terrance, Urbik, and seven other first generations down south near Megaton right after the D.C. riots in an Enclave staging base. Who gets out? Me. Who doesn't get out? Everybody I just mentioned, as well as several dozen standard Enclave G.I.s. Janice went crazy after Honda failed." Dutch said, drawing both pistols.

Twentyfists22:06, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Well, if Dutchie doesn't die, Hennard's escaping. Personally, I want to see a one-on-one fight between Jacob and Hennard. All these edit conflicts are screwing with the continuity, too...

Hennard roared. Father right. Prey die by hand. George no good.

Hennard dropped George by its side, then moved forward. In its odd loping gait, Jacob and Dutch could both see that it could easily cover a lot of ground. However, neither of them were the first things to get in Hennard's way even as it made a beeline towards Jacob. Domingo was the first thing in its path. The tank-driving merchant began to empty his clip into Hennard's chest, but didn't get very far, due to a massive backhand slap the monster delivered as it rushed by. Domingo crumpled to the ground. Hennard loped towards the masonry that Jacob hid behind. It suddenly broke into a much faster speed, eating up the ground in front of it in a matter of seconds. Hennard smashed into the masonry, blowing a huge chunk of it away as it soared over Jacob's head. Hennard snarled and whipped around, then moved its great bulk towards Jacob.

Run4urLife!22:14, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Why is he saying my name and lethal force in the same sentence! Lethal force is my thing!" Jacob shouted to Dutch from behind his rapidly crumbling cover as Hennard fired on him.

Jacob rolled over onto his side and fired at Henhouse. The slugs overpenetrated, only one detopnating inside the beast, eliciting a grunt of confusion rather than pain. Jacob roared a stream of expletives as Hennard returned fire, that would likely have had more effect than mild surprise on Jacob. Jacob growled as his gun clicked on empty. This was one of those moments where that MR-5 the Outcasts had given him would have come in very handy. He reloaded and rolled around cover just in time to find himself staring into Henhouse's calf. The massive Chimera reached down, gripping Jacob by the collar and tossing him aside. Jacob landed in a heap, the wind knocked out of him. Henhouse fired again. Jacob rolled and skidded down into the trench.

KuHB1aM22:10, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch staggered backwards, holstering both pistols and Hennard leapt and landed straight in front of them. Grabbing a ripper from the ground, Dutch shoved it into the back of Hennard's body, ripping up flesh. It didn't even faze him. Hennard simply turned around, and before Dutch could dodge, moved frighteningly fast and picked up Dutch, who squirmed about to no avail. "Fucking man-handler!" Dutch said, spitting in the monster's face. It replied something incoherent, then chucked Dutch like a rag-doll into El Oso, knocking him against the tank and sending him falling back down. Shaking it off, Dutch flicked off Hennard, staggering to get back up.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:13, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Christ..."

Sebastian said. Thge guy just backhanded someone and he was either dead or knocked out. Pressing the clip catch, he brought another clip home before slamming it in and pulling back the leveer. Firing at whatever he could hit, Sebastian slowly moved in order to hit the back of the human...if he was that. He was more like a Super muntant that was much ibgeger. And with a purpose. And that did'nt die. Sliding into a trench, he ducked when the Creature looked. Hopefully, it did'nt noice him. If it did, well, it would'nt be pretty.

Radiation King22:22, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// And now I send Roland (my version of a superweapon) to take care of business.

Domingo felt the hand catch him in the chest. The hand was easily the size of one of El Osos wheels and carried enough force to kick a brahmin over. Domingo, of course, couldn't notice that. He was too busy being lifted off the top of El Oso and smacked over the top of the trailer and down in front of Roland. He tried pathetically to get up for a second and managed to stumble back into the trailer and lay down in the cot adjacent to Stefanie's.

Meanwhile, Roland stared at Sebastian. The spy, who had been working for CCI the last time they had met, was now assisting him in trying to repel Hennard. Not one to be outdone, Roland took out his Grease Gun, looking at the weapon. It had served him faithfully since he was at least eighteen, which was a long time ago. Now it was time for the old, scratched Institute piece to prove its worth. Spinning out from behind the trailer and briskly crossing over Sebastian's line of fire, Roland calmly walked over to Dutch and yanked the Warrior Weapon to his feet. "No resting on the job," the wastelander said simply before he turned on his heel, holding the Grease Gun one-handed (of course it was his cybernetic arm, but still) and emptying the 45-ound clip at Hennard.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:27, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Your monster killing skills are remarkable"

Seabastian said while reloading. The monster was busy with Roland, so, he took his chace. Emptying a clip nearly point-blank, he was shocked to see that the monster was unpahsed. Scrambeling out of the trench, he slid just in time to duck from a strike from heendard. Taking cover behind another runied wall, he reloaded and fired agian.

"Why won't this thing die!"

Twentyfists22:35, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// You gone done it now!

Hennard roared and broke away from Jacob. The monster wasn't going to deal with all this help. Hennard leaped again, closing distance with Roland remarkably fast. Hennard wasted no time, simply kicking out at Roland. The kick hit the unfortunate man like a freight train (not literally), bowling him over and knocking him several feet back. Hennard whipped around with his fist closed. Sebastian had gotten closer since Hennard turned his attention to Roland. The very tip of Hennard's meaty fist came into contact with Sebastian's nose. The poor man collapsed as the first fist broke his nose, while the second one smacked him hard in the ribs. Hennard turned his attention back to Dutch then, sprinting towards the gun-toting Warrior Weapon. Father, Hennard kill, he growled.

Run4urLife!22:38, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal jumped Hennard from behind, catching the immense beast by the scruff of the neck and stabbing into its back over and over with a trench knife, to no avail. He dropped from Hennard's back, and rolled through his legs as the massive Chimera lunged bacwards, attepmting to crush the spot where Jackal had been against the trench wall. Jackal jumped up, bringing his machete around in a wide arc, slicing into Hennards massive barrel-chest. He followed up again and again, pushing that stamina, cultivated over 200 years running from things that wanted to kill him, to the test. He hacked and slashed and hacked, like some deranged butcher let loose in a room jam-packed with cattle. Hennard just laughed. A sound like earth falling on a coffin.

"Couldn't you at least pretend that this shit hurts?" Jackal said as he stepped away to get a breather. Hennard shook his massive head and swatted Jackal, launching the Ghoulaway like a bit part actor playing in King Kong.

Solbur22:44, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss took a deep breath as he comprehended the situation, crouching behind the tank with the unconscious Riley. Okay, he thought to himself, so my rifle on the highest output setting didn't even bother this guy? He rubbed his forehead and sighed before putting his helmet back on. The only option he had that was likely to even make the big guy flinch as to run at him with Impact, but seeing what he'd done to the spy guy's nose just then, that was out of the question. So he was out. Unless...

Strauss smirked to himself as he climbed up on top of El Oso. Hennard was knocking the rest of the guys around like ten-pins. Maybe this would give him an edge against the big guy. Or make you a priority target, dickhead. Still, nothing ventured, nothing gained. He moved over to the mounted Gatling Laser, slipped into the seat clumsily and manned it. He span the weapon around to aim it at Hennard and pressed down on the trigger, the barrels beginning to rotate before spewing streams of glowing red death at the hulking mutant. "Yeah! Take this!" He yelled for no particular reason.

Twentyfists22:53, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Vladimir went home, btw. He'll be back to D.C. later...

Hennard howled in pain as the Gatling Lasers burned around him. "Pain, Father!" he howled to the sky. Far away, Crusaders and Legionnaires shivered in their power-armored boots. Hennard dove and moved out of the way, trying to get as far away as possible from the hated laser fire. He began to shift behind the tank. Conor tried to turn, but was thrown off when Hennard shifted direction suddenly, slamming into the tank. El Oso shifted slightly, but stayed in place. Suddenly, Hennard climbed on board the tank and, before Conor could turn, slapped him in the back of the head with one of his huge hand-paws. Hennard howled at the sky, then descended again to enter the fray once again.

Run4urLife!23:04, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob coughed. That was a cracked sternum, at best. No way he was going to overpower this thing. Now way he was going to tough out its onslaught. No way he was going to outrun it. Maybe a little agility wouldn't go amiss. Jacob moved subtly around El Oso while Strauss, rather bravely, drew Henhouse's attention away from everyone else. Jacob shed his duster and threw it into the trailer, shooting Alexis, Stefanie and Cat, who were back inside, trying to avoid the living WMD outside, a look that said "Do not touch". That or it said "Touch my stuff and I'll kill ya".

Jacob stepped back around El Oso, looking completely different, now bereft of his long coat. He was down to a pair of Pre-War military urban grey cargo pants, a grey t-shirt and a black kevlar bodysuit that went as far as his elbows, supplemented with Kevlar forearm covers, under his Steel Combat Gloves. Over this was his Combat Armor, shoulder pads removed. His iconography was on his duster, but this plating had a red stripe over the right-hand-side chest plate in honor of the Outcasts. His boots were cut from Crusade T-51b power armor after Fairfax. Even without his pistol-laden duster, he looked formidable and heavily armed. He held his arms out to the side, egging Henhouse onto him as Strauss lay in the drivers compartment.

"Jacob Vaughton here. Priority target, Henhouse. Come get some. Find out why Honda and Skyler failed." Jacob called to Hennard.

"Me Hennard." Hennard bellowed. Apparently, he did not like being called by the wrong name. He charged at Jacob, who sidestepped, rolling Hennard's momentum off his back and letting the beast charge onwards. He helped it along with a solid side kick to the lower back. Hennard roared, enraged, rather than hurt. This was going to take a while.

Solbur23:10, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss lay face down in the dirt, having been knocked straight off El Oso by the strike and now either severely dazed, unconscious or dead. Cat, meanwhile, lay down on Jacob's duster, rolling around on it.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:16, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 


A lone Vertibird flew in low over the group. Slowly circling around, whoeveer was looking at it could see that it was painted with Rapture Company colors, along with a Ace of Spade pianted on the sides. Coming in low for a second pass, A minigun opneed fire on hendared. Inside, the Surviors, save for Sarge, were getting ready to Rappel down. They had orders to find Jack, secure the area then bug out Boris was getting a little worried about him, so, he sent the best Consrpicts he had.

"Surviors!" Sarge yelled from the cockpit, "Stand up! Hook up! And shout our motto!"

The Hatch opened and Heavy, Kane, Bourne, and Jackson rappeled down, shouting "You can't kiill us!" Moving in a stargged formation, the sqwquad opened fire on the massive beast attacking the area around the tank. The Vertibird was flying close by, providing close air support.

"Kane! Fire a fucking grenade at that thing!"

Kane, nodding, took out his 6 shot grenade launcher nd fired towards hendared. It exploded near him, but, if anything, Hendard just got skme shrapnel. Moving towards some cover in the form of a few cars, the Squad continued to lay down heavy fire on the massive beast from hell.

Twentyfists23:20, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Hennard roared. "Vaughton fast. Fast prey, like birdie. Fast prey DIE!" Hennard whipped around and rushed at Jacob again, arms stretched out, hoping to catch the Warrior Weapon in its massive paws and crush him to death. Jacob rolled to the side as Hennard slashed at where the man had been before. Hennard turned a third time and began to advance more slowly, cautiously. Suddenly, it struck out, swinging its hands in massive bear-like slaps with its claws unsheated, trying to drive huge rents in Jacob's skin. Jacob dodged to the side, and Hennard spun, whipping its hands around like a ball on a chain. Jacob narrowly dodged the strike that would have no doubt played hell with his personal health. Hennard came in again.

Run4urLife!23:32, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob ducked, dodged, sidestepped and jumped out of every attack's way, evading by the smallest margins. He moved like quicksilver. Every time Hennard left an opening, Jacob would land a punch or kick. A lightning jab here or there, a quick front kick at the other place, then Hennard gave the golden opportunity. He overstepped. Jacob pulled off an impressive front sweep as Hennard slipped on the loose sand and dirt around Jerusalem. As the massive beast crashed to the ground, Jacob was right on top of it, punching and elbowing as Hennard bellowed incoherently. Jacob stepped back and landed an axe kick on Hennard's chest, but the beast grabbed his foot and tossed him like a toy. He hit the ground again, a good ten feet away. Damn, that Hennard was strong. Jacob rolled to avoid a diving kick and scrambled to his feet, assuming a combat stance just out of Hennard's reach.

"You're faster than that, furball. Give up trying to hit me and hit me!" Jacob sneered at it. Jacob hadn't noticed the arrival of the Survivors, due to focusing on the big hairy thing trying to kill him.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:38, 25 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Fuck it, Kane!" Heavy shouted.

"What!" Kane repiled

"Blow that fucking animal sky high!"

"No problem. 1 pile of gore, coming up!"

Whilwee the rest of the squad was firing, Kane moved up and aimed his grenade launcher. Firing 5 grenades, 3 of them over shot, 1 of them came to close, but, the last one hit perfectly. It stuck to Hendards back. Now, to wait for the 10 second fuse to go off. Moving back to the rest of the squad, he switched to his Submachine gun and joined in on the unreantling fire.

KuHB1aM23:41, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Don't worry, didn't shoot down the VTOL. Just damaged it.

Opening fire with both pistols, Dutch began to fire at the base of Hennard's neck, chipping away at his tough flesh with .45 ACP rounds. However the rounds near no effect. Continuing to fire, Dutch heard the words "You can't kill us!" Hardly. Dutch thought as he looked upwards, eyeing the VTOL firing down on Hennard. Sure, they weren't firing on him, but they annoyed him with that phrase. Aiming both pistols, Dutch fired at the propeller-VTOl connection joints, cracking them under intense, continuous fire. As the last man rappelled down, the VTOL spun out of control, de-stabilized by the damage. Then the VTOL turned it's lasers on Dutch. Not wanting to get deep-fried, Dutch, moved out of the way as the VTOL pumped smoke, unable to maintain a steady aim.

Twentyfists23:50, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Goddammit, Weston! How the fuck will I survive that? I'll post as Hennard as soon as you answer that question.

Eugene Randolph whistled a merry tune as he strolled by, watching the fight at Jerusalem from a nearby ridge. Always nice to see a battle from a safe distance away, he thought. Might even be able to pick up something new. D.C. was all abuzz, and Eugene was intent to know every bit of what was going on. His rotting brow furrowed as he noticed a Rapture bird dropping off troops, then getting fired at after it dropped off it's load. The other Rapture soldiers had been dismissed, by Eugene, a while ago after they finished sniping. Eugene had no idea where Boris and the others had gone. Eugene's brow furrowed more when he saw a large creature as the source of the Rapture soldiers' attentions. They should be completing their mission, not hunting. Eugene went to put a stop to that. He ducked and dodged through the scrub until he made it to the location of the soldiers. He noted that they were the Survivor squad. A good squad, if a little course and haphazard in their dealings. He approached their leader. Sarge, was it?

"Sergeant, if I may have a word with you." Eugene said at the large man's elbow. The Sergeant nodded. "Sergeant, you must know by now that I am a proponent of the Rapture Company. Now, you're a good chap and all, but you must certainly know that I value completion of the mission above all things, and I doubt that killing large," he glanced at Hennard, "monsters is part of your mission. Am I right? Now, I suggest that you get a move on and complete whatever job Boris or any of the other Top Seven put you up to. Up, up, Sergeant, now's not the time to be lazing about."

KuHB1aM23:54, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Simple. The grenade malfunctions. It's a dud.
Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:59, 25 May 2009 (UTC)// Damnnit! Thats what i said then you posted!

"But, Sir! This is our mission. Were supposed to find Celbral Jack, sir! This was his last location...sir!" Sarge added.

The Rest of the squad, meanwhile, spilt into teams. Jackson and Bourne whent to find the asswipe that shot at their VTOL. Heavy and Kane countied to fire at Hennard. Or, as heavy called it "The big fucking monster peice of shit!". With Minigun fire and R91 fire barely phasing it, they cointuied to wait until the grenade went off. It did'nt. The rest of them went off, but, that one did'nt.

"YOU'VE GOT TO BE SHITING ME!" yelled Kane, throwing his helment on the ground before quickly picking it up and puttng it on.

Jackson and Bourne, meanwhile, were creeping up on the sunglasses wearing pistolero...

Run4urLife!00:07, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

"That one would be the dud, wouldn't it." Jacob grumbled as he dodged from another surge of furry death. Hennard just wasn't tiring. Skyler was exhausted by this point in the fight. Of course, Jacob's attacks had actually hurt Skyler. Where was the crazy bastard when he would have come in handiest. Probably off galavanting around California with that Tenkage fucker. Something caught Jacob's eye. The soldiers who had been shooting at Hennard. Accompanied by another person. A Ghoul. Were these guys with those Ghoul fuckers from back in the Last Legion camp? Fuck Hennard, Jacob wanted to fight something he could actually kill. He wasn't used to being on the underdog side of a fight, and he didn't like it one bit. He allowed Hennard to swat him in the direction of the newcomers, landing heavily next to the Ghoul. Hennard returned to attacking Holmes. So Jacob promptly kicked the ghoul in the gut. But the Ghoul blocked, with a Taekwondo style defence, if Jacob wasn't mistaken.

"Now now, old chap. Lets not be making enemies of strangers now." The Ghoul said, smiling a skull-like smile as he offered Jacob a hand. Was this guy high off his face on jet or something?

KuHB1aM00:10, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Holstering both pistols in an effort to actually keep them in working condition. Dutch dove to the ground as Hennard slammed into him, instead slamming him against a wall. Picking him up, Hennard breathed in his face, his horrible breath stenching Dutch's jacket. Spitting in his face, Dutch punched him across the face in an act of defiance. Any normal human would have reeled. Instead, Hennard gripped tighter with his massive paws, squeezing the life out of Dutch, who continued to squirm with ever less oxygen.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:12, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Looking back, Jackson saw that the one guy attacked one of the seven. Monting to Bourne to follow, he pulled out his pump-action shotgun.

"I like to keep this for close encounters."

"Shut up Jackson."

Pumping a shell into the rack, He saw that the two other surviors already was pouring fire into the ginat beast. Sarge, however, had his gun pointed at the other big guy. Bourne joined in on firing at the beast, while Jackson pointed his shotgun and the other guy.

"Have'nt i seen you before?" Jackson asked.

KuHB1aM00:14, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Another Aliens reference?
Run4urLife!00:16, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Gimme a minute there, 'Old Chap'. I've got a buddy to save over there." Jacob said, indicating Dutch's plight. The infuriatingly polite Ghoul indicated that Jacob should go help.

Jacob lunged for Hennard's left leg as Jackal returned to the battle and went for the right. They both tackled in perfect sync, launching Hennard to the ground, and launching Dutch from his grasp. Jacob rolled over, and began punching Hennard as Jackal got up and performed what appeared to be a jig all over Hennard's chest and face. Hennard, however, didn't appreciate Jacob's violence, or Jackal's dance, and he flung them both in opposite directions, Jacob landing near the Ghoul and rolled to his feet, who applauded Jacob's landing and recovery, while Jackal bounced off El Oso and rolled over, staring at the sky, seeing stars and canaries.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:21, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackson shotgun roared. Taking buckshiot in the face, Hennard stumbled back, roaring in pain. Racking another shell into the slide, Jackson placed the gun on the beasts leg.

"Eat this, bastard!"

Pulling the trigger, blood sprayed all over Jackson, who went blind for a few momentass from the blood in his eyes.

"AHHH, SHIT! AHHH, I CAN'T SEE! I CAN'T SEE!"

Stumbling around, he bumbed into Jacob, who sorta pushed him away. The Rest of the Surviors, looked at the beast, Weapons trained.

Run4urLife!00:27, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

In sorta pushing him away, Jacob actually tossed Jackson aside. Not like a ragdoll, just like a very large person shoves a smaller person away. Then he moved forward to attack Hennard again. He threw a few punches, this time actually hurting Hennard as he struck the already injured areas. That, however, only seemed to enrage Hennard further as he charged Jacob, forcing Jacob to backpedal up a vertical wall, a tanktrap left over from Pre-War times, trying to push Hennardis scrabbling claws away from his chest and stomach, while keeping a hold on Hennard's neck. From anyone else's point of view, it looked like a twisted parody of a party trick, a man holding himself up, his feet against the wall, using a friend as support. However, if the party trick failed, you got a bump on the head, and would have to live it down. If this failed, Jacob was going face-first into Hennard's mouth. He was busily trying to get a solid grip on the beast's neck and strangle Hennard, but with all the thrashing, it just wasn't happening.

Twentyfists00:34, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Going offline after this.

If Hennard was a bit more literate, he would have swore. This prey would not best him. He rushed again and again, but Jacob could hold him back. It appeared that they had reached an impass. Suddenly, Hennard stood up, carrying Jacob with him. He swung his neck and hurled the Warrior Weapon. Jacob thudded and rolled. Hennard rushed towards him, attacking again and again with large scything claw movements, then switched over to punches and kicks. Hennard fought like a demon, combining animalistic slashes, bites, and slaps with punches, kicks, and attempts to grapple. "Father proud! PROUD OF HENNARD! HENNARD KILL PREY! KILL VAUTGHTON AND HOLMES!" he roared in defiance.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:39, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Heavy charged the beast. He was a heavily armoured man,. He even manged to find a bullet-prrof pre war face mask. Carrying a mingigun, he fired as he charged the giant beast. Dropping the massive gun while he was charging, he pulled out a Shovel.

"Eat this, ya fucker!"

Hitting Hennadrd with a downward blow, it easily periced the skin. However, would it do much damage? He countied to hit, and the rest of the Surviors caught on. Pulling out a sssmorment of hand to hand weapons, they began to beat the giant beast senseless.

Solbur01:22, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Posted for Teh Krush, copy and pasted off the IRC with a few of my own additions as appropriate.

Riley awoke from his unconsciousness and seen Conor lying seemingly dead right next to him. He moved the tank, that was good, but now there was some huge mutant thing attacking everybody. Riley dragged Conors bloody, Power Armored body towards the trailer, and seen Cat laying on top of an old duster, "Eh, get off Cat," he said, Cat got off and went to Weston. Riley picked up the duster and rolled Conor into the trailer, he then put the duster on Conor as a sort of blanket. Riley removed Conor's helmet and, unconsciously, he started to drool and slobber on the duster as he slept.

"Good enough," Riley said, "Anybody else wounded?" he asked the people in the trailer, he couldn't make out their faces but he was pretty sure he seen Stefanie through his concussion. Riley then ran back to the tank and jumped into it, the hatch was conviently left open for him. He then went to the .30 caliber machine gun and opened fire from the inside of the tank, shooting the giant mutant. Inadvertedly, some of the Survivors may have been hit.

Fireman0504

Stefanie ran, half crouched back toward the trailer. She'd lost track of almost everyone in the battle, and likewise they'd done the same to her. It was ok though, she'd been popping off shots with her .32 Rifle, but she'd abandoned it when she ran out of ammo, having an abundance of targets. Crusaders had discovered her position, but when they'd gotten too close she'd beaten several of them to bloody pulps with her Power Fist. Now she was wielding it again, heading back toward the sunken El Oso. She was covered in the blood of her enemies and muddy from the torn up earth of the battlefield, but her tense muscles and ferocious look made her a somewhat intimidating fighter nonetheless. Her boots covered in mud and gore, she still moved gracefully, effectively, and efficiently toward her group's rallying point, the formerly sunken El Oso. She then noticed Jacob, Dutchie, and a handful of others she didn't recognize, in a fight for their lives with a large behemoth of some sort. The man was blinded and staggering around as the group was smashing him with a myriad of close combat weapons. Just my style, Stefanie thought as she headed toward the fight.

Vegas adict06:42, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// if im not on just keep alexis taging along,Also here come the BOS

Alexis had stoped firing with his magnum,It just wasn't having any effect grabing his Laser rifle he moved to the end og the trailer and shot herrnard once,The beast kept moving normaly that would kill a man but herrnard just dhruged it of,There was no point firing,Then the ground shook and men in power armour moved towards the tank.The man at the front alexis knew from the Crusade/BOS battle.That man had led the BOS in the battle.

Paladin marcus andrews of the LVBOS marched at the head of his coloum of men(10),They had been following the tank for a long time but this was the first chance they had had to catch up with them.Jacob and the others were fighting a huge mutant,"Lets see if they need are help boys."

Fireman0504 // I work the next 12 hours, so just keep Stefanie in the action without crippling her too badly or killing her. Thanks!

Stefanie didn't break stride as she ran up Hennard's back, a trick she'd used all too often with Super Muatnts. Her spiked boots dug into his skin as she perched on his shoulders, landing several downward blows with her Power Fist into the back of the beasts head. This'll getchia she thought wildly as she beat the man-beasts head sensless. She quickly began doging and ducking as the torso-sized hands began grasping upwards at her. she managed to backflip clear of him as he turned, landing in a crouch in time to see him screaming at the group. She thought of a place to go and prepared to roll out of the way as Hennard began a headlong charge toward her. He was, in turn, intercepted by Jacob Vaughton, however, who landed one of his signature torque punches. Any mere man would've had his neck snapped, but Hennard was no such thing, though the punch did devestating damage as Hennard staggered sideways, his attention turning toward the steady beating being inflicted by other combatants after Jacob landed is punch. Stefanie ran forward to join in, landing a few more Power Fisted punches before being swatted backwards like an annoying bug. She grunted as she got back to her feet and headed back toward the fight. Stefanie had never given up before, there was no reason she was going to now. Her friends still needed the help.

KuHB1aM11:53, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch, both his weapons holstered, had just started to get back up after being thrown a third time. Why the hell ain't he throwing other people around? Dutch began to get moving again, however, when Hennard shrugged off the damage caused by the others for a brief moment, and summoned another bastion of energy, looking at his original target. Dutch knew how Hennard worked. Dutch+Jacob=main target. Which means Dutch=dead, Jacob=half-way wounded. Starting to move backwards in a defensive posture, Dutch began to sprint in between buildings as Hennard pursued him through the L.L. camp, smashing concrete and stepping on soldiers with no qualms what-so-ever. "Somebody fucking kill this thing!!!" Dutch roared as Hennard pursued him from the scene of the fight and any form of fire support.

Run4urLife!12:05, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob grunted and took off after Hennard and Dutch. He was tired, in pain, and had a cracked sternum, and yet, he still chased Hennard. He was forcing himself to go above and beyond his known limits, for survival, never mind victory. But he still felt he needed to push further, to drive harder. At first, he didn't know why. Then it dawned on him. These people had, somehow, broken his walls. Not only that, they had planted creepers in the cracks. They had got in under his skin, every one of them. He had something to fight for. More than mere destruction of those who submitted to their darker impulses, he had friends to fight for. Weston, lying in the trailer with a slug in his chest, Dutch, wounded and apparently scared. Strauss and Riley hurt for their part. They had jumped in to help him, at a time where he might have abandoned them to their fate. He smiled.

"You're in deeper shit than you think, beast." Jacob snarled to Hennard. Had Hennard known the concept of fear, he would have shat bricks right there. Instead, the creature that had no idea what it was to be human just gawped at him in confusion.

"Hennard kill Vaughton. Hennard kill for Father. Father proud. Proud of Hennard." Hennard rasped. His voice sounded like a slow moving avalanche.

Moving faster than he could remember moving since Fairfax, Jacob stepped in with a kick to the laser burns from Conor's brave, if reckless attack with El Oso's Gatling Laser. Hennard roared, but Jacob paid the beasts pain no heed. He planted another kick on the gunshot wounds Domingo had inflicted as he stood between Hennard and Jacob. Another howl. Jacob kicked his shin against Hennard's thigh, right on the shotgun wounds inflicted by those soldier newcomers. Another howl of pain. Hennard was on the retreat. Having no concept of fear, Hennard was merely confused, but the confusion was getting to him.

"NO!" Hennard roared as Jacob landed a punch on Hennard's jaw. Hennard spun back swinging his cannon-sized arms wildly. Jacob stepped back and ducked out of the way. He could win this. Then Hennard landed a kick right in the centre of his chest, launching him backwards.

"Fuck." Jacob grunted as he stood up and walked back to the fray.

Vegas adict12:20, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis grabbed his rifle and started firing it at hernard."Take this you mutant swine!!".The beast roared and continued to manhandle jacob."What the fuck does it take to kill that thing!!".Crawling back into cover alexis set to continue firing at it.

KuHB1aM12:25, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch started crawling on his back, using his feet to get away until he hit a wall a few seconds later. Hennard turned. NOO FAST PREY DIE! It roared, and pulled a massive chunk of concrete from a building, aiming for Dutch. "Aw fuck." Dutch said. He didn't even have time to dodge. The massive piece of concrete slammed into him like a freight train, slamming him into the wall. If he had been a normal human, he would have been dead. But he was only near losing consciousness, fortunately. His vision shaky, he looked around in 15,000 directions before centering on the massive giant shape stepping towards him, picking him up, and chucking him into another building. Slamming into the building, Dutch fell back down, collapsed.

Fireman0504

Stefanie skidded to a halt as she saw Hennard slamming Dutch around. Drawing the SCM Officer sword given to her earlier by Vaughton, she threw it, spiraling toward the man-beast. The sword slammed blade-first into the thing's shoulder blade, sinking in to the hilt. She heard and inhumane growl as it turned inher direction, grasping behind it to attempt to pull out the sword. Fortunately he couldn't reach it. Unfortunately, he was now even more angry. Stefanie dove for cover as more concrete was thrown her way. She peeked up over a fallen wall to see that the beast was now trudging her way. She looked beyond him at the fallen Dutch Holmes, who she hoped would be getting up, though he hadn't moved in what'd seemed like hours. Stefanie bolted from cover, throwing another knife sidearmed that hit Hennard in the thigh. He was turning back toward Dutch, one of his primary targets, when Stefanie threw her "Stabhappy" knife into the back of Hennards knee, causing the man-beast to collapse as his severed muscle was having trouble supporting his weight. Hopefully someone else could act more decisively.

Run4urLife!12:53, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// My time to shine

Jacob staggered back towards Hennard. He had been trampled in Hennard's eagerness to kill Dutch. Nerve clusters. Like the ones that work on Super Mutants. Jacob thought. His brain was a little addles from being stepped on by the massive Chimera, but he had the general idea. The one just above the kidneys. Right at the adrenal glands. This thing has to have adrenal glands.

Jacob clenched a fist, this things adrenal glands were so fucking big it wouldn't need an extended knuckle to land this pressure point strike. Sliding his foot out sightly to the side, twisting it around on the ball of his foot, Jacob rotated his hips around and pushed off the back foot, throwing all 220lbs of himself into this punch. With the resounding slap of his gauntlet connecting with Hennard's flesh, the strike found its mark, just above the right kidney. Hennard yowled and stumbled away from Jacob. A strike like that to the kidneys of a human would be fatal. Hennard had definitely felt that. He wasn't moving his right arm around as much as he shifted and shuffled around, flaring his nostrils and baring his teeth so as to look intimidating. Jacob had struck a telling blow. He stooped and picked up Dutch's dropped katana, spinning it in his grip as memories of Kenjutsu, Aikido and Ninjutsu training returned to him like an old friend. He eased into a relaxed stance, the tip of the katana pointed straight at Hennard's heart.

"Ready when you are, dog." Jacob snarled.

Vegas adict13:05, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Giant fucking robot on its way

Major Elan Chase of the 10th airborne looked into the cargo bay of he Vertibird.She had been asked to deploy Dr Phillip's robot to the last suspected location of a war criminal called herrnard."Drop the payload".She felt truely sorry for whoever was on the reciving end of Munchie,Besides who came up with that name.

Out of the vertibird a large box droped down and munchie unfoalded.

Scaning area.Conflict .1KM away."Scaning".An unidentified mutant was atacking a cerified enclave trouper and a number of wasters.Lock onto mutant,Munchie moved along at a speed normaly reserved for Mr.Gutsys,Over the hill the wasters heared the thump of his legs.

Run4urLife!13:26, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Hennard could probably go head to head with the BFR

Jacob swayed. Hennard just wasn't giving up, and that last punch the thing had landed had knocked Jacob bow-legged. Jacob swung the katana blindly, gashing across Hennard's chest, but doing little real damage. Then, with what felt like the last of his strength, he thrust the katana forwards and upwards, impaling Hennard on three feet of solid steel. Hennard roared and grabbed Jacob by the shoulders, then flung him away, and pulled the katana from his midriff. What would it take to end this thing?

Jacob roared as Hennard bellowed. Jacob was just flat-out pissed by now. Hennard had beat shit out of his friends. Yes, friends. He couldn't deny it any more. Hennard had jumped in just in time to stop them getting Weston to a doctor. Hennard had fucked him up too. He had tossed Jackal, Dutch, Conor, Stefanie, Roland and Domingo around. Jacob couldn't explain why he wanted to kill Hennard so much because of that, but he did. It was totally irrational, but it felt right. Hennard rushed at him. Jacob knew he couldn't stop Hennard dead, but he knew he could take him down. Just as Hennard was about to slam into him, Jacob sidestepped and landed a torque punch, sending Hennard face-first into the dirt of the Last Legion camp. The place was all but empty. Jacob couldn't hear artillery any more. Shit. Was the battle over?

Jacob pushed the thoughts from his mind as he kicked Hennard in the face as he tried to get back up. Jacob then pulled the sword Stefanie had thrown into Hennard's back out and raised it over his head. Hennard cut off what would have been a killing blow by lashing out and knocking Jacob's feet from under him. Jacob rolled away from Hennard's stinking, bleeding form as the beast scrambled across the ground to get at him. He kicked Hennard in the face as he went to take a bite out of one of his legs. Regaining his composure, Jacob jumped to his feet, ready to continue.


Roarke looked around Jerusalem. The battle was all but over. His forces had packed up the artillery and begun moving it around to Jerusalem's main gate after some pricks had attacked their positions. His forces were mopping up the Airborne in despicably one-sided gunfights, surrounding the Airborne dogs and gunning them down from all angles like animals. To prevent an embarrassing blue on blue incident if an Airborne ducked, the Legionairres fired for the legs, and then shot the body and head when the Shock Trooper hit the ground. Killed writhing in the dirt like the worms they were.

Roarke moved around Jerusalem tower, where most of the Airborne were holding out. The area was still in chaos around here, with the battle spilling in and out of the doorway to Moore's inner sanctum.

Vegas adict13:31, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Could he go head to head with the BFR and Jacob+Homes?

Munchies Ai was working overtime,It went back to its normal program which was to kill mutatants.Herrnard was the largest mutant and he had orders not to hurt the wasters so it pounded towards the fight.Spoting the mutant he swang his field ripper at hernarrd."You are a fugative,The enclave has not sanctioned your existance"

KuHB1aM13:39, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch was on the verge of throwing up blood and vomit at the same time. He was on his side, already coughing up blood, howling in pain, and cradling his stomach, his legs flailing as he kicked dirt up with his combat boots. A concrete shard had lodged itself in his stomach past his combat armor. Although it hadn't penetrated too deep, it was definitely more trouble than it was worth. His mind was going through too much thought, and it was hampering his ability to reason effectively. Looking towards Hennard and then a massive Enclave robot coming down from the hills, Dutch spat blood, eyed his katana, promptly forgot about it, and laid his head back down. He wasn't going anywhere.


"Rally to me!" Thomas roared as the last of the Airborne entered the perimeter of Moore's Inner Sanctum. This was it. There wasn't any combat personnel in the bunker levels holding out. Everyone was here. The Airborne were fighting gallantly, but this battle was lost. The .30 cals were running dry, and soon the Airborne would too. Thomas had one idea remaining. He would charge them, swords drawn. He gathered the company commanders around. "It has become apparent that this battle is lost, gentlemen. However, your spirits are obviously not. We will charge them. Swords drawn, fixed bayonets. Any ammunition no used will be fired as we attack. I want mortar crews to stop firing, and those mortars destroyed. You have your orders." Thomas said, drawing his sword one last time and grabbing his handgun in another. His sword gleamed with the blood of the traitors. Soon, it would be his own blood. The company commanders returned after several minutes. "Your orders have been carried out sir." They replied in unison, saluting by banging their hands on their power armored chest. "It has been my finest pleasure to serve with all of you." Thomas said, raising his sword. As the gunfire stopped, a roar that would shake the heavens came out from the Airborne. From the perimeter, the remaining three-hundred Airborne Shock Troopers charged, leaping over their barricades and slamming into the defensive L.L. lines that had encircled the Inner Sanctum.

Run4urLife!13:58, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Roarke watched as the Airborne charged, the rising sun glinting off their armor. He stood up, and the Last Chancers stood up with him. He had replaced their BRA with Power Armor, so now they truly were the counterparts of the Airborne Legion. Sunlight danced on the armor of both groups as Roarke led a counter charge over his own barricades. Running at the head of the soldiers, Roarke was the first to crash into Thomas' bodyguards, cutting down a man at the head of the tide with a heavy-handed swing of his Field Ripper. He carried the swing on through the chest of the next soldier, smearing his gore across his comrades. Roarke then slammed his elbow backwards into the face of an Airborne Legionairre he recognized all too well. Freddy.

"We have to stop meeting like this, Frederick." Roarke said calmly as he moved into a fighting stance, Field Ripper pointed at Thomas' chest.


Jacob watched as a robot accused Hennard of being a fugitive, and then slammed into the massive Chimera, weilding a ripper the size of a child. Jacob blinked. Had that really just happened? Hennard shoved the robot away, and punched at its massive chest, denting the steel. Jacob sighed and stepped forward. He owed this robot. Hennard had been about to kill him with what Jacob had assumed was a Pre-War telegraph pole.

"Well met, Giant Robot Thing." Jacob said, not entirely sure how to greet the BFR. So instead, he punched Hennard in the face and dodged the return strike.

Vegas adict14:06, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Hello Mr vaughton".Munchie swivled back to herrnard."You have damaged enclave property,Unlocking combat protocals".Munchie swang its claw at hernard opening a gash on its chest before shoting it with the hole of the 20 ammo clip on his submachinegun."I am warning you one last time fugative you must return to the enclave!".Munchie again slid his ripper into its arm.

KuHB1aM14:08, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I know, I know. It's bad for morale." Thomas said, circling with Roarke as the battle raged around them. He motioned for his other body guards to entertain their own deaths however they liked, and lunged forward, side-stepping Roarke's field ripper as it swung heavily. Taking his sword, he used the butt of the handle to slam into Roarke's face, almost cracking his helmet with sheer force. Jumping backwards again, Thomas turned to be nailed in the face by an L.L., who brought his massive sword down as well. Blocking it, Thomas swept the man's feet from under him, slashed at his unprotected throat, and brought his sword to block Roarke as he brought the ripper down.

Run4urLife!14:37, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Is this where Roarke kills Thomas, does Thomas escape, or do I beat Thomas down and hang him later?

Roarke waved the Legionairres away. He was older than Frederick, but he had always been stronger. And Freddy wasn't so much younger that it overrode Roarke's experience. Roarke headbutted Thomas as they locked blades, catching him off-guard and staggering him. Roarke followed up with a kick to Frederick's midriff, staggering him again, and then he swept his Field Ripper around in a roaring arc, the tungsten carbide teeeth spewing sparks as they met Frederick's parry. Roarke calmly held Frederick's sword hand in place and swung his Field Ripper around one-handed, cutting down two Airborne with the one wild, uncontrolled swing. But Roarke took advantage of the momentum. He followed the weight of his weapon and dragged Frederick with him, throwing the younger man over his hip, and slamming him to the ground. Sadly, Frederick rolled to his feet almost immediately.

KuHB1aM17:04, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Escape is implausible. He and three-hundred airborne are surrounded by a massive force. Maybe you can kill him, but I thought Jackal was gonna do that. But either way, can you bury them instead of burning the bodies, please?
Run4urLife!17:17, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// If he pulls them back to the bunker, Jackal can kill him when everyone else is running from Hennard in the bunker levels
--Cerebralz17:57, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Can rapture company air strike Hennard? We has mini nukes and vertibirds.
Run4urLife!17:59, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Read Forum:OMG Vertibirds for why I'm saying no to that, and why I'm telling you that Rapture Co. don't have a lot of V'Birds
--Cerebralz18:02, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// But this is the last vertibird we have for miles! Come on, it's not like the Enclave don't have fifty more vertibirds we can steal.
KuHB1aM18:04, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// What he's saying is that hennard isn't your character. You cant just bomb the living fuck out of him.
Solbur18:05, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// The Enclave has withdrawn all field operations from D.C. after the destruction of Raven Rock and then the Mobile Crawler. You'll have to look harder.
--Cerebralz18:07, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// We'll set up shop in New York then, and import vertibirds to DC. Also, I'm saying if we can. There really isn't any other way to stop him.
KuHB1aM18:08, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Good luck getting through that hellhole. There's a faction war going on right now, all the way up to 2286.
Solbur18:10, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Why do you need Vertibirds, anyway?
--Cerebralz18:11, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Even better, well get hired by the three factions fighting there. BOS, a Enclave general is annoying you eh? Well, were cheaper then talon co and work better! We really don't need them, there just good for transportation. There also death from the sky. Why wouldn't we need them?
KuHB1aM18:13, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// The Enclave don't hire guys, the Brotherhood is against Talon Co. and would see you the same way, and the Crusade would just shoot you on sight because of helping the enemy at Jerusalem. The other factions either are the same or don't have the money, except for the GPA, which is small.
Twentyfists18:31, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Permission to kill Munchie? Be warned that I may not post immediately...
--Cerebralz18:32, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Can we carpet bomb henard though? Once hes under ground though, some rubble will stop him long enough for the gang to escape.
Vegas adict18:34, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// you can damage him but you can't kill him.Unless he kils herrnard in which case yes you can kill it/him
Radiation King19:48, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Just so you guys know, El Oso's laser chaingun is mounted in the front of the tank, across from the pilot's seat, and the .30-cal is currently poked through a hole in the wall on the right side, underneath where the cannon would normally be. Just saying.

Roland looked at his surroundings, back at the tank he had been laid up against. Briefly wondering what had put him in this situation, he looked over towards where he heard the sounds of a rather large fist-on-fist scuffle. He looked over and noted that Jacob was fighting a giant, seven-and-a-half-foot-tall, hairy green guy alongside... Was that a fucking giant robot? Roland shook his head and bit his tongue to the point where he nearly drew blood; this had to be a dream. There was no way his friend was fighting alongside a giant robot... But compared with events from the last few weeks it wouldn't be too out of place to see an event like that. However, he did remember the green guy, if a bit fuzzily. His name was... Hemingway or something like that. EIther way, Roland quickly rushed off to help his Warrior Weapon friend in the fight, ejecting the empty clip from the grease gun and slamming a new one into the reciever.

"Hey fucker!" Roland shouted, grimacing as he drew in for the breath. At least six of his ribs had been brused when Hennard had bitch slapped him into a massive wall. Along the way, he noted that Dutch was pinned behind a massive boulder. Shoehorning his cybernetic arm into the crag where the rock had almost fused with the wall, he pulled and pulled and eventually rolled the rock off of Dutch. He eased the Warrior Weapon into a sitting position, carefully noting that at least a few of his ribs had been fractured in the impact, before Hennard was upon him.

The first thing he felt was that massive thing lifting him off his feet with one hand, brusing his ribs further. Then he turned and point-blank emptied his clip into the monster's forearm and torso. Although he expected no reaction, he was surprised to note that the creature was actually stunned and released hi . Slinging the grease gun, Roland wound back with his left arm and punched the weapon-thing in the side of the chest. The beast blocked with surprising speed, nearly crushing his cybernetic arm. Then Roland was punched again. The blow collapsed his combat armor breastplate and compressed his bruised ribs, but roland undid a few quick-release catches and discarded the breastplate to the side, allowing hi mto breathe.

He moved again by releasing a drop-kick to the creatpure's right kneee, forcing it onto its knees in pain. Roland leapt up and smashed both legs down on the small of the beast's back, forcing it face-first into the mud and sand of the battlefield. Roland had distracted Hennard from Jacob, but now he had to face facts. He was facing off with a well over 7 foot tall monster weighing in at 600 pounds which had one purpose in life: kill everything that moved in its way.

And a 200-pound merchant with a few mettal limbs had just stepped into its way.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:56, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Come on, come on..."

Wrapping a peice of cloth around his upper arm, he flicked the Med X sryinge. Still got stuff in there. Slowly pushing it into his arms, Westons eyes quickly got bigger, then smaller. His friends were in trouble. If he was going to get a addiction from this stuff, so be it. Grabbing a small satchel bag full of them from a nearby dead Crusade Medic, he grabbed his side and groaned. This was going to be painful. Shambling over to a fallen tree, he picked up the Chinese pistol that someone had given him to defend himself in case of a attack. Resting it upon the tree, he aimed at the general direction of the Giant Fucking Beast. Aiming once, and only once, he closed his eyes and fired the entire cliopp off.

"Shit! Fuck, shit, fuck!"

Rolling on the ground from the pain of handling the recoil, he started to crawl towards the trailer, trying not to get anything inside his wound. He was going to live, he could feel that. Did'nt hurt as much whenever he tried to move, even withou the Med X. But, he still was weak. Defenseless. It would take a fucking week for this thing to heal, if that. Could take a month.


Sebastian was starting to come to agian. Slowly, but, he could at least see. Pulling himself slowly out of the trench that he had stumbled into after Hennard hit im, He rolled onto his back, groaning in pain. Hre was starting to feel agian. And he did'nt really want to. Too bad he already used his Med-X a while ago...had to get more later...not now.


Jackson was back to firing at the beast of a human. GHe was shiiting his pants by now, but, still firing. A guy that reminded him of a Half-Robot, Half- Human got into the way of Hendard. Poor fella. Hennard shoved the guy out of his way, and it looked like he was down. For how, long he did'nt know. Bourne was knocked out, and he was inside the trailer that the tank was attached to. He really had to figure out if that thing was working or not. If it was...well, pack your bags and go home. Talon company's dead.

Run4urLife!21:10, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob jumped, slamming his elbow in between Hennard's shoulder blades, sending the massive beast-thing staggering. He followed up with a solid punch to Hennard's other kidney, the one he hadn't wrecked with the nerve cluster strike. Hennard wheeled on him, swinging his hands upwards at Jacob's chest. Jacob dodged and kicked downwards into Hennard's foot as the WMD-thing went to kick him. Hennard's attack was stopped in its tracks by the sole of Jacob's boot. Jacob cross-countered as Hennard moved for a straight jab. The blow caught Hennard off-guard as his head was moving forwards. Hennard's great hairy head snapped backwards from the impact. Hennard growled something unintelligible. Jacob ignored that and planted a kick into Hennard's gut. Hennard's hands were still quick though, and he grabbed Jacob's calf and used the massive Warrior Weapon as a club to hit Jackal with as the venerable Ghoul went to aid his comrade in arms.

Jacob and Jackal both lay in a heap on the ground, each slightly stunned by the impact with the other. Jacob recovered just in time to jump out of the way of an attack by Hennard, while Jackal could do nothing but roll over and over to get away from the massive, hairy beast-monster-thing.Hennard looked up. Dutch Holmes and Jacob Vaughton, his targets were nowhere to be seen. He stood up straight, looking around, curious about this. They had just disappeared. Jacob broke cover, sprinting at Hennard, jumped and landed a flying knee-strike on Hennard's chest, flooring the massive thing. (like Ting and Mad Dog's fight in Ong-Bak)

Jacob sat on Hennard's chest, punching at Hennard's face and chest as Hennard tried desperately to either keep Jacob's hands at bay, or try to tear Jacob's face off. His claws were flailing so much Jacob wasn't entirely sure which. Then Hennard arched his back, launching Jacob off to the side. Jacob rolled, narrowly avoiding Hennard's wild follow-up attack. He got up and circled again, as Hennard got to his feet. The two locked eyes, but Hennard just stared through Jacob. He saw a target. Nothing more. He was a guided missile. Jacob swallowed. There was no way to end this fight other than killing Hennard. There was no escaping. Kill or be killed.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:25, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Not anymore!

The vry same Vertibird that dropped off the Surviors flew over agian. However, instead of just firing at Hennard, as it did last time, it simply just landed and let the ramp down in the back. Unloading a Sentry bot, it simply barked out a elctronic order

GET TO THE CHOPPA! NOW!

Jackson looked at the Vertibird. Mighty tempting to just leave. But, he was'nt going to leave until the job was done. And, in theat case, they had to find Jack, So, they were stuck here until he sprinted either showd himself, or, thegiant beast rean away.

Solbur21:32, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// LMFAO. That Sentry Bot needs to meet Hennard. "You are one ugly motherfucker."
Run4urLife!21:34, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// And Roy! So Roy can put on his "Cunnin Robot Disgize" (read his page for more details) XD
--Cerebralz21:37, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// The following post is made of 100% win

Jack had stolen a Crusade vertbird, parked near Jerusalem. It had barely enough gas to fly a mile, which was probably why it wasn't used already. So, Jack stole it. Currently, he was flying it toward the giant super monster. Smiling to himself, he put the bird in auto pilot, got a parachute, and jumped out of the plane. As it sky rocketed down wards, heading for the giant monster.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:46, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Hey look, theres Jack....OH SHIT!"

Seeing what once was a piolted Vertibird now simply a mass of slying deastruion, Jackson ran. As did neraly everyone. What Jack forgot to do though, was aim the Vertibird towards what he was trying to hit. Not fucking overshoot it! Grabbing onto his Helemtn, Jackson watched as the Vertibird flew straight over there heads and crashed minto a nearby hill. Hitting the ground, Debris fell around eveywehere. Even the iant fucking monster thing ducked. So, it was'nt as stupid as he thought before. Rolling onto his back, Jackson aimed and fired at the monster. All the while, the Sentery Bot moved slowy to the monster, shouting. Well, electoary shouting.

IF IT BLEEDS, WE CAN KILL IT!

--Cerebralz21:59, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// Wonder how he fares against .50 magnum bullets from the sky?

Jack was floating down, whistling a tune from the Enclave radio station. He was listening to it inside the vertibird, and it was now stuck inside his head. It was taking a while to land, so Jack took one of his .50 magnums, and began raining down large bullets onto the monster. It seemed to be distracted by the vertibird crash, how ever its attentions soon shifted to the man floating down from the sky. "Jackson! Shoot it!"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:09, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Thinkingg if Jack even noticed that he was already firing at the giant, Jackson just kept on firing. By this time, the other Surviors had joined in. Getting up and moving to a broke wall that the group had taken cover behind, Jackson contied to fire. The SenteryBot was now rather close to the beast.

"You are one ugly motherfucker!"

Hennard simply swated the Sentery Bot away, and the Bot rolled around a litte, before falling down, trying to get back up. Jackson simply shaked his head at it before ducking and reloading.

"Yo, Heavy! You got anything bigger then that gun ya using?!" Jackson yelled

"Yeah! Something that you don't have!" Heavy repiled.

The entire squad buerst into laugher while they were still firing, save for Jackson. That was the good thing about the Survivors. They could always joke around during times like these.

Run4urLife!22:15, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// He took a HEIAP bullet. I think he can handle bog-standard .50 Cal

Jacob dived off to the side as Jack missed a couple of bullets. He was not being taken out by an ally. He rolled as Hennard went to capitalize on Jacob's aversion to being shot. Jacob jumped to his feet and started backpedalling rapidly to steer clear of Hennard's claws. He dodged again as Hennard kicked at him. He blocked the second kick with his shin. Hennard just kept going. There was no stopping him! Jacob blocked a punch and countered with a backfist to Hennard's jaw. Hennard responded by throwing Jacob over his head. Jacob landed in a heap, and forced himself to his feet. He should have kept a few pistols handy. He felt something at his heel. He looked down and saw that Dutch had slid him over his M1911. Jacob snatched up the pistol and started firing. Hennard keeled over. Jacob stood back up, walked over to Hennard's prone body and emptied the remainder of his clip into the beast. (don't worry, I haven't killed him)

Jacob signalled for the others to follow him as he headed back to the trenches to retrieve his gear from El Oso's trailer. They all geared up again, and got ready to get the hell outta dodge. He was slightly pissed off that his duster was now covered with Cat's hair and Conor's. That had better not be drool.


Meanwhile, Hennard's chest heaved, and the massive beast spluttered. His eyes snapped open and he gave a low growl. His prey were gone from here, but he could smell them. They had gone back the way they had come. Back to the steel box thing. Hennard would kill, Hennard would feed.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:19, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// You leaving on the tank or the Vertibird?
Run4urLife!22:21, 26 May 2009 (UTC)// This is the run-up to the underground bit where Hennard hunts everyone through Jerusalem bunker.
KuHB1aM23:55, 26 May 2009 (UTC) 

Kane Enders reloaded his FN FAL, slapping in a fresh clip. He looked towards the Sarge. "I think it might be in our best interest to link up with those wasters, Sarge." Kane said, slinging his assault rifle as they moved away from the neutralized beast. "Who knows when that thing will start hunting again. It near fucking killed everyone within a square miles." Kane reasoned. "Plus that guy with the duster and the fancy gauntlets knows a thing or two about fighting, and so do his friends. Hell, that one guy got thrown into several concrete buildings, took several bullets, and is still alive. I think we could pro-long the survive scenario if you get what I mean." Kane said, still looking for targets as they moved as a group.


Dutch staggered heavily as the crew regrouped at El Oso. Practically everyone was bruised and battered, chief amongst them Domingo, Jacob, and Dutch, who had weathered the initial assault and fight, both in melee and ranged. Dutch spoke up as he applied bandages. "That thing can't follow us into smaller areas. I think. The entrance to the caverns that link into Jerusalem is about a klick west-north-west of here. He shouldn't be able to follow us there. And if he does... well, he came for me. I can handle the asshole for alittle bit." Dutch said, sheathing his katana as Jacob tossed it to him.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:16, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Whoo, hoo! Kane is finnaly being RPed

Jackson looked around at the ground. He could'nt help but not agree with Kane. He had a rather good point. The guy did get thrown through several walls and is still alive. That counts for som,ething, right? Well, might as well introduce themselves. Waliking up to the one with Glasses, he began talking.

"Names Jackson. Jackson Upham. I think we'll be rolling with you guys today."

Twentyfists00:24, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// ...And I was actually going to pull Hennard out so that BAMSR could start. Too bad you assholes left the trailer unlocked!

Hennard blinked. Why hurt? Why blurry eyes? Why no see? Hennard pondered these questions as it struggled to get up. Suddenly, everything came back in a rush. Prey. Enemy. Holmes. Vaughton. The monster struggled to get up. It hurt. Bad. Covered in hurt. Pain lanced across Hennard's entire body. It was about to get up when the seizure happened. Hennard's tongue and nose suddenly detected acrid senses. Horrible smells and tastes. Suddenly, every nerve ending in Hennard's body felt as though it was on fire. Needles of white-hot fiery pain lanced all over the creature's body. It felt screaming and discordant noises in its ears, and its eyes rolled back in its head as visions of death and destruction filled its eyes. When Hennard's body stopped the spasms, the creature got up with new drive and determination. Hennard prowled into the trailer and began injecting itself with every needle and popping every pill it could find. Then, it set off in the direction of the scents that it knew would lead to its prey.

KuHB1aM00:28, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Whirling and aiming his pistol at head height, Dutch lowered it as the man's arms raised. "Whoah, bud!" The man known as Jackson said. Dutch holstered the pistol. He wasn't in the mood. "Welcome to the anti-giant fucking mutant coalition. Chop your mullet at the door." Dutch said, acting sarcastic as the soldiers entered into the group. Jacob was about to shoot every single one of them, but the fact that Dutch wouldn't join him had ended that thought swiftly.


Kane, eyeing Shades, took up a spot next to Heavy, leaning against the tank with his arms folded. He nodded at Shades. He understood. If a group of combat armored soldiers had approached, he would have shot too. Well, it was good to know he was now part of the anti-giant fucking mutant coalition. He felt slightly safer here. It was almost as if he had super soldiers watching his back. Shades spoke up, rubbing his chest and fixing his jacket. "We should get moving. Hennard is no doubt already on the prowl again, and I have no intention of engaging him." Shades said. Kane nodded, unslinging his FN FAL.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster00:34, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackson slammed a new clip home, before looking at the wounded guy that was trying to get up. Poor Bastard got shot in the side.

"Hey, Shades. What do you guys do with the walking wounded?"

Jackson looked at the guy. Problay around his age. If the Survivors had a medic, he or she would problay be trying to help him. But, nobody was a medic here. If they even tried, they problay would do more harm then good. He took a spot next to Kane and unslung his own Assualt Rifle. Too bad it feel. Picking it up quickly, and went back to walking with the squad.

KuHB1aM00:43, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Well, usually we shoot em'." Dutch said, watching as Jackson's eyes widened. "But in this case, I'm wounded, so it ain't happening. Weston there also happens to be a friend of mine. So yeah, he's coming with us." Dutch said. "And if worst comes to worst, I can carry the poor bastard." Dutch said, unslinging the G36C from his shoulder. Lowering his shades to reveal his blindness, he watched in surprise as the men didn't start joking. They had seen all too well during the fight the punishment Dutch could deliver and take at the same time.


Kane raised a hand. Shades pointed to him. "Heard you talking earlier. You want us to go into that hellhole? It's crawling with Crusade and L.L. goons, a massive hole in the wall leaking rads attracted ferals from all over the county, and most of all we gotta fight that thing in close quarters." Kane said. He wasn't trying to sound pessimistic, but he was trying to point pros and cons. Shades responded with a simple "Yes." Kane stared at him, then cocked his rifle. Yes was all he was looking for.

--Cerebralz01:26, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// There were no ponchos in Aliens I believe.

Jack took off his Poncho, and threw it into the car. It had a large tear in it some how, and it wouldn't help him now. Grabbing his M79 grenade launcher, and his Ak-103. He was only carrying what was necessary. "Survivors, I'm cool with this if you are. Lets make this quick though, I have a feeling if were late Alfred is going to have us clean the latrines." Jack cocked his assault rifle, and waited for the group to start.

KuHB1aM01:31, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Kane hadn't even noticed Cerebral Jack. "Officer on deck!" Kane shouted. Everyone snapped to attention. While not officially an officer and more of an assassin, every marine referred to superiors that way. Dutch raised an eyebrow. Looking towards Jack, he spoke up. "You know these guys?" Dutch said, taking a cigarette from Kane's helmet and lighting it with Stefanie's lighter. This world was small and only getting smaller.

--Cerebralz01:35, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

It seemed Kane had snapped to attention, and was standing up straight now. God damn marines, always bowing to superiors. A message drilled into their heads by instructors no doubt. However, they had not distinguished between the people who were superior in killing, and the people superior in rank. "Stop that, its annoying. And yes, sadly I do know these people. Went out for a crusade bounty one day, and some how ended up here."

KuHB1aM01:43, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"They seem like an good lot of soldiers." Dutch said, flicking the dirt off of Kane's combat armored shoulder. "We should get moving. Now. Hennard is gonna be here pretty soon, and he won't wait for us to get ready like he did last time. He'll jump us. Once we're underground, we're at his mercy, should he be able to follow us." Dutch said. It was true. Hennard was basically superior to the Warrior Weapon ideal in every way except intelligence and thinking outside the box. He could see 20/20 just like Dutch in the dark. However, the rest of the group could not. "I'll take point. We don't want everyone running into ferals face to face." Dutch said.

Solbur01:44, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Strauss... Strauss! Anyone in there?!"

Strauss woke up to the slightest sharp pain in his arm, little more than a pinprick, Alexis' voice asking him a presumably rhetorical question and a firm prod on the forehead. "Gerroff me," Strauss muttered, shuffling around on the floor of the trailer when he realised he was still in his Power Armor. He opened his eyes after a moment, taking note of the hypodermic tranferring its contents into his bloodstream through his wrist, Alexis having slid it unto the vambrace to get at his veins. He narrowed his eyes at Alexis, before moving to wipe what was presumably saliva off his own cheek. Big bastard must've whacked me pretty hard. I don't normally drool. There wasn't much logic behind that little thought, but still.

"Don't worry, it's just an adrenaline shot. Get you up and at 'em, so to speak." Alexis explained, pulling the needle away after a moment. Shortly after he'd said that, Strauss began to feel the effects. He sat up and picked up his helmet, planting it on his head and adjusting its positioning until the visor perfectly aligned with his eyes. He then steadily became aware of what was going on around him. Namely Dutch, Jack and a few other voices talking. Getting to his feet, stretching as much as his armour would permit before strapping Impact to his back and then picking up his bag, he stepped out of the trailer and approached the small crowd.

"So, what's the plan, mi compadres?"

KuHB1aM01:53, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Going offline, don't start the main Aliens part without meh.

"Basically, we're gonna take me, you, Jacob, the marines over there, and Jack through Jerusalem in an effort to stop a giant fucking mutant." Dutch said. Connor's jaw dropped, and Jackson started to grovel. "How do I get out of this chicken shit outfit?" Jackson said in a sly manner. "Jackson! Secure that shit!" Sarge yelled. "Aw man!" Jackson said. Kane rolled his eyes, and Bourne slapped Jackson on the back of the head. "Yeah I know, Pretty straight forward." Dutch said, smiling and tossing away the cigarette in his mouth in a wild grin.

Twentyfists01:57, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Sorry Jack, but now everyone knows who you are and who you work for.

Eugene had not been idle while the others fought with Hennard. He would have tried to get in a few chance strikes, but, for the most part, he kept wandering Crusaders from both sides away from the fray. He now approached the group as he cleaned blood off his rapier.

"Well done, chaps, very well done," he said as he approached. "Top job, really. Now, I personally couldn't help out in your little fight, but don't worry, I kept your perimeter clear. Eugene Randolph at your service," he said, extending a hand. "I see you've already met Jack, one of our more successful assassins, as well as the Survivor squad, a useful bunch in their own right. Now, I personally feel that your escape plan to get away from the big bad beast, as it were, is a sound-enough plan, and I might tag along. However, first things first. Have any of you fine chaps seen a group of about three ghouls? One would be carrying a large Ripper, and another might have been wielding two large, nasty hooks."

--Cerebralz02:00, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Yeah, I knew it had to end some where. At least Bren died before I ever said my name to him, that's got to count? .
Run4urLife!06:14, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// He doesn't die till All My Sins. We're still Pre-Pitt Adventure, timeline-wise here
Fireman0504 // Gotta work in the morning, another 12 hour day. Can someone control Stefanie for me so I don't fall behind? (NOT Vegas) Oh, and reading all the days' posts, it seems we're getting a little Mary-Sueish again, what with the killer robots and such. And the BoS entry that accounted for nothing. And all the different super awesome random merc companies showing up. And sorry Cerebral, but all your "Super Assassins" are getting a little out of hand with their alleged "bad-assness." It's like a bunch more Cerebral Jacks running around. Try branching out with your character creations once.

Stefanie smiled as Strauss came back to the group, seemingly from the dead. It was good to see both he and Dutchie moving around again, though Stefanie looked around because she'd still lost track of Domingo, Weston, Roland, and Riley. She thought she saw Riley over by the trailer before the fight with... whatever that beast was... but she wasn't sure. Now the group was talking about heading into Jerusalem along with several newcomers that she had no idea who they were. Oh well, guess that's what "the Horde" was all about. All these random wasters and merc companies were showing up. And they were all disturbingly well-equiped. Stefanie had only one answer for the whole situation. "I'm coming too." she piped up.

Vegas adict07:15, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// How dare you insult my Big fucking enclave robot,Its enclave and its hear for one purpose to kill Hernard

Alexis finished of tending to strauss to hear them talking about going to jeruselum,Well he had come this far he didn't feal like walking back alone through a huge battle.Also he owed struass and these strangers his life and strauss's was a friend one of the only few he had.He finished dressing strauss's wonds and injected him with another does of stimms.He then made a note on his paper about strauss's and westons contition.Besides he was the only one in the group who had decent medical training aside from riely who was to say the least unprodictable."Im coming with you"he said.


ERP.Prototype 3 or Munchie had stood silent through the merc arival and he had not done much in the fight as his AI had been temperally scrambled.It turned to dutch."As the highest ranking enclave officer in the area i am yours to command,I await your orders"

Fireman0504 // No. How dare YOU continue to make completely outlandish projects that do't fit in the Fallout Universe. And I wasn't ONLY aiming at you.
Vegas adict11:22, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Its not that outlandish.Its only like a step up from a sentry bot
Run4urLife!11:26, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Its a BIG step up. And do I detect a hint of aggression? Anyways, yes, I am trying to tone Jacob down too, and Jackal just got his poor zombie ass whupped in that fight with Hennard. I think, Vegas, another improvement could be made on post length. Your posts are way too short for the acts that the characters perform in them. I didn't think it was possible to point out your character's importance to the group, how they did first aid on another character and decided they were in for the long haul in so short a post.
Vegas adict11:34, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// K im updating
KuHB1aM11:49, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Sniff... I didn't think the Crusade was that outlandish... sniff...

"Yeah." Dutch said, approaching the ghoul menacingly. However, he was held back by Jacob, who locked him with his arms and prevented him from approaching. Calming down, Jacob released him. "Yeah. I know three ghouls. Me and my pal here wupped their assess too. They near tried to take my eye out and kill me. But I'm a fuckin' Enclave Super Duper G.I., so it didn't happen." He turned towards the BFR. "Who and where's your handler, Munchie?" Dutch said. He knew all of the ERP proto-types. "Major Elan Chase is currently not in this area, Captain." Munchie said. Dutch nodded. No way in hell was Munchie gonna fit in the tunnels. He damn near took Hennard apart too. "Hold position until relieved." Dutch said, and turned towards Jacob and Sarge, the respective leaders of either side. "We got two options. We can tell the BFR to go cause havoc at Jerusalem, or we can tell him to do as much damage to Hennard as possible while we get away in the tunnels. Only logical choices. It's not like we can bring him with us. He's too big. Maybe we could have him link up with us later, but like I said; he's just too damn big. He'll draw way too much fire if we go above ground, and that's a death wish because Henard's got mobility." Dutch said, finishing his spiel. Sarge raised a hand. "That mutie ain't so tough! Like my old gunny said: let's draw some fire! Hell, let's go out and kill something!" Sarge said enthusiastically. Dutch patted him on the shoulder. "Ok bud, you succeed where me and Jacob here failed. Kill Hennard. Then we'll talk." Dutch said.


Kane looked towards Jackson, who was eyeing the girl. "I got dibbs on the girly." Jackson said, grinning. Kane slapped him on the back of the head. "Oww!" Jackson said, then sat down to eat some rations. "Do ya think she likes cornbread?" Jackson said. "Worth a try." Kane said. Inside his head he was laughing for once. Kane watched as Jackson approached Stefanie, who obviously wasn't interested. Kane couldn't hear what Jackson said, but what happened was Stefanie taking the cornbread and shoving it into his face. Jackson promptly returned with a yellow coating of mush. "I guess she don't like the cornbread either." Kane said, smiling.

Run4urLife!12:45, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob grinned as Stefanie jammed the conrbread up the poor jarhead's nose, then he realized everyone, even Dutch, had formed in a closer circle around Stefanie. Apparently, they all had some form of protective instinct towards who was essentially the communal little sister. Jackal had taken a hold of his machete. If it had come down to it, Jacob wondered how long it would take for the Ghoul to eviscerate the hapless jarhead. Then he considered how they'd deal with Jack, the Ghoul and the rest of the little Jarhead Team. Survivors, they called themselves. People with names like that tended to wind up dead. Jacob knew full well, he wiped out a Raider crew called the Immortulz. They couldn't spell very well.

"Leave the tin can here, have him watch the tank." Jacob said. Then he considered what Domingo's feelings on the situation might be.

"Domingo, you staying with El Oso or are you tagging along?" Jacob called to Domingo, who was lying under El Oso, trying to dig the mmud into a little path for the tracks. Domingo shouted something unintelligible that could have been "there in a minute" or "bear with a midget".

Jackal was watching the young jarhead like a hawk. If he. Damnit, Liam, Stefanie can look after him herself. She can probably kill him 35 different ways without leaving that spot. And if she can't, I can. Jacob can probably push 40-odd different ways. What the hell am I thinking? She's a grown damn woman! And she knocked hell outta that poor little fella back in Rivet City and tied him spreadeagled to a bedpost. She can take care of herself.

"Well, I'm in. No tellin what trouble you kids could get into without me to look after you." Jackal quipped to Jacob.

"And you! You keep three steps in front of us!" Jackal snapped to Eugene. Apparently, there was a little hard-line Irishman left after 200-odd years of trying to get over that.

Act 8[]

KuHB1aM15:32, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch, smiling after Stefanie had smashed the cornbread in Jackson's face, loosened his grip on his pistol after realizing he was in a defensive stance. He turned towards Jacob. "I suppose that would be a good idea." Dutch said, and turned again to the BFR. "ERP. Numero Tres." Dutch said, causing the robot to snap to attention. "You have new orders. You will cover a fighting withdrawal whilst friendly forces subsequently retreat into said underground tunnels and giant bunker hellhole. No doubt, you will be ripped apart by said giant fucking mutant. But hold him off. This is your final order." Dutch said, and unslung his G36C. "C'mon people, we don't have all day. Enough dilly-dallying with the cornbread." Dutch said, and took point.


"I got a bad feeling about this fight, man." Bourne said, his sniper rifle in hand. Kane waved off the notion like it was nothing. "You always got a bad feeling about these fights. What could possibly be in the bunker levels and those tunnels? Feral ghouls and Death-claws?" Kane said, joking around. Sarge chuckled alittle bit. Bourne rolled his eyes. "All I'm saying is I think we won't be the only thing in those tunnels beside the mutie and our mutual friends." Bourne said, still looking around for trouble. Sarge spoke up at this point. "Alright everybody, cut the chatter. We don't want the whole Last Legion commity welcoming us on our way." Kane piped down, gripping his FN FAL. He actually agreed with Bourne. He had a bad feeling about this particular fight.

Vegas adict15:52, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis grabed the last part's of his kit before falling into line behind strauss and riely.They were actually heading into the home of the crusade,Jeruselum.He looked back at the BFR it was a shame he would'nt have a chance to disect it.Looking at jackal he asked "So wer'e heading underground in tunels that belong to the crusade to escape from a giant mutant while a Big Fucking robot cuases as mutch damage as is posible on said mutant?"

Run4urLife!16:04, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Thats about the height of it lad. If all goes well, we can lose Hennard down there and get the feck outta dodge while the jarhead's friends, the Horde or whatever, show up and cause some amount of havoc on the Last Legion." Jackal said.

"And if it doesn't?" Alexis queried.

"Then there are two kinds of bad. If it goes down the swanny, we have to corner Hennard and waste him, getting nine kinds of shit bet out of us in the process. Numero . . . two . . . kinda bad is where Hennard corners us and we all die." Jackal sighed. He didn't want that happening. Not to these people. Not to his friends.

Jacob padded along behind Dutch, working the action of Mother's Woe to ensure there was a round in the chamber when needed, and that the breach was clear of all dirt, debris and fouling. Being a robust, if heavily modified Chinese Assault Rifle, it would probably work, but he wanted a definite. He didn't want to be clearing a jam while Hennard was bearing down on him. He loosened his Ka Bar in its sheathe and ran his hands over the dozen or so pistols holstered in home-made pockets in his duster and several looted holsters on his belt and two in the small of his back.

"So, how long do we give the BFR before Hennard dismantles it?" Jacob quipped.

"How long does it take for Hennard to say his own name?" Jackal grumbled.

"I think it'll last. Even if Hennard busts it up, I think it'll buy us plenty of time." Alexis said.

Stefanie just shrugged as she moved in towards the middle of the group with Strauss and Riley.

KuHB1aM16:06, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Hudson is awesome

"That's the plan, pappy." Kane said, mocking Aleix. Sarge slammed Kane on the helmet with his assault rifle, then continued on. Fast Foward Ten Minutes. Suddenly the column stopped. "We're here." Shades said up front. "Lock and Load! Let's kick some ass!" Sarge said. "I'm ready, man, check it out. I am the ultimate badass! State of the badass art! You do NOT wanna fuck with me. Check it out! Hey Stefanie, don't worry. Me and my squad of ultimate badasses will protect you! Check it out! Independently targeting bullet launching phalanx. Vwap! Shoot half a city with this puppy. We got missile launchers, plasma pulse rifles, RPGs, we got sonic electronic ball breakers! We got nades, we got knives, sharp sticks..." Jackson said, before he was stopped by Sarge. "Knock it off, Jackson." Sarge said. Kane couldn't help but crack up after that one.

Run4urLife!16:19, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob relaxed. Sarge had stopped Jackson just in time. Otherwise, Jacob might have had to hurt the little annoying man.

"Jackson, stop babbling like that. You draw any unwanted attention to us with an overactive mouth, and the best that I can offer is to cut your tongue out." Jacob said.

"Any alternatives?" Jackson said, making that face that said he didn't want to know the answer but couldn't help asking.

"I could crush your windpipe, tear your throat out, cut your head off, or I could stab, beat or shoot you into the middle of last Thursday." Jacob responded coldly.

"Not good options." Jackson said with a shudder.

Sarge gave Jacob a look that asked that the big vigilante treat his soldiers a little better. Jacob sighed and decided it was better to stop threatening the jarhead than to alienate a potential group of allies. Eugene, on the other hand, seemed quite amused at the myriad deaths Jacob had laid out in front of poor Jackson. He was humming some song that seemed to be annoying Jackal a little. Until Jackal joined in, singing out of tune.

"Rule Britania, marmalade and jam, five Chinese crackers up yer arse go BANG, BANG, BANG, BANG, BANG!" Jackal sang quietly. Eugene looked quite flustered, and stopped humming.

(No offense meant with that. I will remove it if people get pissed at me!)

KuHB1aM16:36, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// What is it, some sort of ethnic mockery?
Run4urLife!16:38, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Ever heard the tune "Rule Britannia"? That's a childhood mockery I learned from friends.
Solbur16:41, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// I say! I, for one, percieve this grave affront to my country and her Queen to be most dissatisfactory. *sips tea, munches crumpets*

Strauss couldn't help but laugh slightly. That had shut him up. Although he didn't know what Britania, marmalade, jam or crackers were, it was still quite funny. So was Jacob threatening the soldier guy just before that. The humour was slightly mitigated for Strauss by the fact that Jacob wasn't joking. Then again, neither was Jackal, by the sounds of it. Not wanting to consider the mental image of five Chinese whatever-they-weres blowing up inside a Ghoul's rear, he cleared his throat, raised his voice slightly and pulled himself away from his thoughts with a spoken question. "Alright, so if we're here, where do we go now?"

Vegas adict16:45, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// i to say this is a great insult to our great and glorious nation. *listens to national anthom*

Alexis grinned at jackal's line.alexis was a scotsman in his blood and the insult amused him.He didn't know much about his history but he knew that was an insult to the english ans in his book that was allways a good thing.

Solbur16:48, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Fixed yer broken RPT Vegas. Also, did you just call Jackal a Scotsman? O_O APOCALYPSE!!!
Vegas adict16:50, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// No i said Alexis was a scotsman
Solbur16:51, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// No, you just quickly changed your post to make it look like that! I'm on to you, Vegas!
Run4urLife!16:56, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Well, that went better than expected
Twentyfists18:44, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// I believe I used that term correctly.

Eugene made a face when Jackal began singing as well. "You 'Hibernians' are always so confrontational. Now, ordinarily, I'd be willing to defend my country in some sort of verbal joust with you, except that I don't feel particularly inclined to talk politics about extinct nations in the midst of a battle." Eugene frowned. He really didn't have anything against the Irish, he just couldn't see why they would refuse to accept the great nation of England as their sovereigns (I don't actually espouse this opinion). As soon as the ghoul was out of earshot, Eugene began humming again at a lower volume.

Run4urLife!19:02, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal mumbled about 800 years of something or other. Jacob wasn't really listening to him, he had his ears trained on the path ahead. Listening out for the yelps or gargles of Feral Ghouls. Or worse, Mirelurks or Bedlurkers. He had stepped on one of those before. Its barbs went clean through his boot. Worst pain he had ever felt. He shuddered at the thought. That was at least in part the reason for upgrading his boots. Switched them out for boots cut from Crusade T-51b Power Armor. Those came in handy for kicking Raiders to death too.

"Eyes open, mouths shut," Jacob snapped to Jackal and Eugene. Both Ghouls shared a look of mutual annoyance at being distracted from their broodings.

Jacob stopped dead as he heard something up ahead. He turned to Riley, who had lived in these caves. Riley shrugged and turned to Cat. The dog whined and lay down on his belly, dragging himself along on his forepaws. That was never a good thing.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:54, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Lights on!"

Sarge whispered. With that, The Survivors turned on the flashlights that they had duck-taped to there helments a long time ago. Well, to those who had helemts. Which kinda only Jackson, Kane and Heavy had them. The other two wore baseball caps. There was a almost erie quiet in the caves. Peering around, he looked at the group that they were following. Seemed like a preety good group. Save for a giant fucking guy that could kill the enitre damn squad in less then a few seconds and a chick that can't seem to take a joke, yeah. Good group. Jackson wished that she...Stefaine, was it? Did'nt ruin his cornbread. Sure, the cornbread was shit, but, it was his rations. At least he still had his candy bar. Dropping back a little, he came up to Bourne.

"Hey man, does this place give you the creeps?"

"Hell yeah. Like this is some kind of fucking deathtrap?"

"Sorta..."

"But man! Were the god-damn Survivors! You can't kill us! Semper Fi!"

Fist-bumbing Bourne, Jackson moved back ahead. Keeping his Assualt rifle in a casual postion, but ready to fire, he contuined to walk with the main group. He was'nt at point, but he was near it. Thinking of his girlfriend, his thoughts and attenion begin to drift away. At least until Sarge hit him upside the head. Then it was back to war.



Weston was manging to keep up with the group, if with a limp. He was hanging near the middle-back, with two of the new 'Survivor' guys. One named...Bourne, was it? Another one he did'nt catch his name. That did'nt matter. He loaded his the Sawn-Off Shotgun that someone gave him and contuined to walk, holding the badndages by his side. The Med-X was helping, and he could run if he needed to. But, it would hurt like hell. Watching one of the jarheads get hit by one of there guys...Sarge, he could'nt help but laugh. It was preety funny. But, for now; All he needed to worry about was getting home. Alive.

KuHB1aM20:06, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I don't like this, Sarge." Kane said, unslinging his own Remington 870 and loading a couple shells in. Shades, known as Dutch Holmes to everyone else, spoke up as gun-fire erupted outside. "Hennard just engaged the BFR." Dutch said, drawing his G36C. "Hey bud, you hear that?" Jackson said. Dutch signaled a hold sign as Sarge motioned for Kane to move up with Jackson behind him. His helmet flashlight flashing across the cavern walls, Kane shot an all clear signal, popped a flare, and threw it around a corner ahead. "Gimme a second." Kane said, and turned the corner, dissappearing from view. It was way too quiet. Nothing. Then it moved. Cocking his shotgun, Kane squinted his eyes. Aw fuck. "Fuck!" Kane roared, firing his shotgun and back pedaling again. "Ferals!" Kane shouted before being jumped by a feral ghoul. "Somebody get it off me!" Kane yelled, grappling with the feral ghoul. "There's more of em' coming this way!" Dutch said,G36C is hand, moving around the corner, and firing in rapid bursts.

Twentyfists20:55, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Hennard growled. The robot was trying to rush him. He dodged back and opened fire with George again as the metal man tried to advance with its Ripper and Claw at the ready. What was probably Hennard's last shred of human reasoning warned him to stay away from the melee weapons. Hennard laughed, a deep sound like a Ripper cutting into the glass head of a Robobrain, as the robot's ineffectual 10mm rounds splashed over his chest. Hennard fired again.

Suddenly, Munchie rushed in and slashed with its claw. Hennard growled at the creature, then moved in to dodge its Field Ripper sweep. Hennard grabbed the robot and turned with all its might, using its hips and bulk to throw the robot. It was all over. Hennard slammed downward with Belton and smashed into the robot's pelvis. As it struggled to get up, Hennard scooped up his weaponry and lef the area, prowling after the smell of its prey.

Run4urLife!21:13, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// From TehK

Cat was growling at the Feral ghouls and jumped on the one that had Kane pinned. More weight on Kane but it was for the best, as Cat ripped apart the ghouls neck before jumping on another one, rinse and repeat. Riley on the other hand was testing his new modifications for his Quad-Beam, which he now calls a Tetra-Laser. The shows torched and incinerated the ghouls as they made contact with their skin.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:22, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackson was firing at the Feral Ghouls, who just would'nt stop RUNNING!. No matter how many times you shot up there friends, they would'nt call it quits! Removing the empty mag for his Chinese Assualt Rifle, he brought a fresh one in. Pulling back the recviver, Jackson aimed for a Feral Ghoul that was getting awfully close. Pulling the trigger, the said Ghouls head exploded into a foutain of gore. Grinning slighty, he looked for a new target. Did'nt take long for one to appear. Aiming for its head agian, the shot went lower and hit the ghoul in the chest. Still coming, Jackson let off a quick burst that killed the ghoul, not before it stumbled over a shopping cart and nearly landed on him. Shaking it off, he saw Cat rip the neck out of a Ghoul.

"Good Doggie."

Contuing to fire, he noticed that Heavy moved up and the minigun began to search for a target.

KuHB1aM21:43, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// I'll post as Dutch later.

Shoving off the dead corpse, Kane barely had time to grab his shotgun and fire at a lunging ghoul, opening up it's chest and spraying blood everywhere as it was sent in the opposite direction. Well at least the blood ain't acidic. Wiping off the blood from his face, Kane jumped to his feet, pumped in another shell, and was just about to move around the corner again when he found himself face to face with a glowing one, it's luminescent face in front of his. "Well hello there sunshine!" Kane said, and shoved the glowing one away, backing off and monitoring his geiger counter. Turning his attention back to the ghoul, he fired a point blank shell, blowing it's face clean off and easily removing it's head, replacing it with a blood stump. "Score one for the marines." Kane said, grinning.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:22, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Oh-rah!"

Shouted Jackson. Firing a 10 round brust, he almost sliced a Ghoul in fgalf by firing from the lower chest all the way up to one of the shoulder blades. The Lifeless body fell to the ground, where another Feral FGhoul tripped over it. This one had remmants of Armour. Charging Jackson, it was cut down from a burst of Heavy's Minigun while Jackson was trying to draw his pistol. He really needed a new holster for that thing. So far, the Ghouls were just piling up. Maybe a dozen left, and they made a last ditch rush. Firing his Chinese Assualt Rifle in long bursts, he swept it across the charging Ghouls, killing one and wounding several.



As for Weston, he was breaking open his Sawn-Off shotgun to reload when the Ghouls decided to do a sucide sprint. Ramming a single shell, he closed the Shotgun before sticking it past somebody and blowing a Ferals Ghoul head off. Blood sprayed everywhere. Grinning, he cracked the shotgun open agian and propely reloaded. This time, he stood by the guy named Jackson. Grimancing as he fired, Another Feral Ghoul died. This time with the ghoul having whats left of its guy spilling out and looking at Weston right before he died. A little sasfaction was in order for that one.


Radiation King22:38, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo threw another Ghoul off him, tossing him face-first into the wall and setting upon it with wide swipes of his SMERSH-5. He dropped the ghoul after scattering the blood of the beast up his arm and face, layering it up his already muddy exterior like a macabre trophy. Coughing as one caught him from behind, winding him as the beast struck in his back, Domingo whirled and pistol-whipped it, knocking it onto its face with a collapsed skull plate.

"They're everywhere!" The spaniard shouted, taking a drag on his cigar and adding a faint glow to the room around him, revealing at least eight more Ghouls inbound on him. Roland dropped in just in time, hosing down the other five ghouls while Domingo mopped up threee with some quick-shooting SAA action. "They just keep coming!" The two men shouted in unison, facing off with another wave of the living not-dead.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster22:52, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

The Last ghoul just stood there, looking dumbfounded that his comrades were wiped out. Heavy simply just rammed the Minigun into the ghoul and pulled the trigger. Of course, blood got all over his face mask, but, it was a safstifying way to see it go. At least to heavy. The ghoul itself was now a torn peice of meat, so to speak. Well, a riddled peice of meat that no one wants. Wiping some blood from his eyes, Jackson nodded at Sarge, who nodded back.

"Well, that was easy. Anybody hurt?

Solbur22:53, 27 May 2009 (UTC)// Sorry, have to.

As it seemed to be cooling down, a ventilation shaft grating on the wall flew off and hit the floor with a clatter, and out climbed another Feral Ghoul. Another grate broke open and several more of the wretches emerged. "They're coming out of the god-damn walls in swarms!" Strauss yelled as he started shooting blindly and rapidly into the approaching masses with his Laser Rifle.


Radiation King22:58, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Retreat! Fucking book!" Were the first words out of Roland's mouth the second that Ghoul wrenched its way out of the ventilation shaft, followed by several more of his bretheren. "Fuck this noise, let's go people!" The merchant shouted, using the night vision in his eye to guide him through the dark corridors of Jerusalem as though they were as bright as the battlefield above, bathed as it were in bright afternoon sun.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:04, 27 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Christ, this is another bughunt...anybody know where we at?"

Jackson wondred, following the man as the rest of the group did. Turing around and firing at the ossccinal Fera; Ghoul, he ran beside Bourne. The wounded kid was doing a preety good job of catching up. In fact, he was'nt the guy all the way in the back. It was Heavy. But, Heavy was enjoying himself mowing down Ghouls. Did'nt need to worry about him.

KuHB1aM01:05, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Guys, remember to refer to the layout from Pg 7's talk page area

It was too chaotic for Dutch inside the corridors. "Everybody fucking stop!" Dutch said, firing his assault rifle into the air and smashing the cieling. They were right outside the ventilation shaft exit inside Jerusalem. It was waaaaay dark. Sparks were flying, the hallways were wrecked, and corpses of loyalists and feral ghouls littered the ground and adjacent rooms. Except for Heavy guarding the ventilation shaft, it was quiet from gun-fire. "Three-minute break. Pick a room with some buds, do an ammo and head count. We're too damn un-organized right now." Dutch said, sliding a fresh clip in. Anarchy was Hennard's natural environment. Acting like this ran the risk of un-effective combat.


Shoving the men into an auxiliary room, Sarge began relaying orders. "Kane, take Bourne, and recon the rest of the level. I don't want these damn zombies creeping up on us again. Jackson, you cover em'." Sarge said, and moved off to guard the ventilation shaft with Heavy. "Do ya think the zombies like cornbread?" Kane said, mocking Jackson. Bourne started to crack up a bit. "Shut up, Enders." Jackson said, not amused at his failed attempt with the moo-lah. They had just exited the level corridors and entered a large hangar bay, stacked with crates and extra junk that blocked vision and combat awareness. Stepping over a broken bulkhead and ducking to avoid getting hit on the head on other fallen bulkheads, Kane took point, his 870 in hand. "I don't like this." Bourne said. "You never like this shit." Kane said, pushing over some crates to make a path. A scratching noise quickly brought him to a stop. Bringing his hand up in a fist, Kane moved up ahead, flare in hand. "Aw fuckkkkkkkk...." Kane said quietly, immediately trying to conceal the flare. He turned back towards Jackson and Bourne. "There's a fucking nest of em' feeding on crusade corpses!" Kane whispered. "Turn off your damn flashlight, Jackson!" Kane said, whispering as quietly as possible.

Radiation King11:27, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Going offline after this for school

Domingo plunged into the dark after Roland, spotting the merchant dodge into an empty supply closet. Domingo turned on the small generator in the back of the room and flicked on the single naked light-bulb hanging from the cieling.

"Take inventory," The spaniard ordered, "We're heading back out in just a second."

Roland obeyed. Removing his duster to reveal a sewn-in combat harness, he removed all of the ammunition he could find. There were, in total, four clips for the Grease Gun, his two Desert Eagles with a magazine each and a hatchet and wicked-looking short sword from some sort of fantasy shop in DC or somewhere. Digging through his pockets, he came up with two Nuka-grenades, four frags and one pulse grenade. "All I've got." He said dejectedly.

(Will finish sometime later)

Vegas adict12:01, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis looked through his backpack.He had 50 microfusion cells left for his laser rifle and 20 .44 magnum rounds.It should last him for a while.He wondered if weston was still ok."Weston how you holding up back there"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster12:11, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 


Jackson, quickly shutting off his flashlight, look around the room. You could see the ghouls from the sparks in the room. There animals, fucking animals. They rely only on numbers. Thats it. These little ghoulies can stop you, Mr. Jackson "Badass" Upham! Thought Jacskon. Bringing his Assualt rifle to his shoulder, but, not firing it, he waited for Kane to start firing. For now, they had to watch the disgusting process of the Ghouls tearing away bits and peices of flesh and eating it. He wanted to Throw up so bad. But, if he did, the entrie damn ghoul ARMY would come down on three men.

"Kane, Borune...what now? We just sit here until they leave, or we mow 'em down?"

Jackson asked, whispering. He just wantred something to break the awful slience.


"Fine Alexis. piss Off."

Weston asked, looking slighty annyoed. Here he was, stuck in the same Room as Conor and Alexis. Connor, he did'nt mind so much. He was cool, someone who he could realy on. Alexis, however, made him mad. Just for no reasoon, he made him mad. Shuffling over to another corner of the room, Weston checked his own pockets. Around...20 More Shotgun shells, 8 Mag's for his 10MM SMG and...that was it. No more Ammo, guns. Nothing. Groaning slighty, half to the pain and half due to the fact he wished he had more ammo, he serached around the room a little. So far, nothing. Looking into a crate, he grinned. One shotgun shell.

Run4urLife!12:49, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Is it OK if I line Freddy up for death by Jackal here?

Jackal was actually having quite a pleasant time. The Ferals accepted him completely. He sat on a crate in a large room full of corpses and corpse eaters, calmly reloading his weapons. Unlike Weston, the merchants and the Jarheads, he hadn't opened fire on everything that moved, and so had plenty of ammunition left. And the Ferals were leaving him in peace. He was pretty sure the gargle one of them made was an invitation to join them for lunch. That or it was asking him where his wife was. He wasn't entirely sure what all of their little communication habits were. And he'd been studying them for almost forty years now. Mostly as a means of Ghoulifying Frederick Thomas. But also to see if there was any way to salvage a Feral's mind. Sometimes he wondered if there was any of the person they used to be in there, or if the madness just took over and there was nothing but the instinct to survive.


Jacob was sweating. He hadn't been paying attention when the Ferals had attacked them and had had to kill most of his unfortunate aggressors with his bare hands. It had been some amount of work, between punching, kicking, headbutting and breaking necks. The cracked sternum and the adrenaline comedown he was suffering after the fight with Hennard, and the severe bruising and a few glancing hits from the sniper fire after those Rapture Company Ghouls had done a runner on them. He tried to stretch his arms up to expand his lungs and catch his breath, but his sternum cried out in protest, sending sharp, spiking pain all through his chest. He slipped a fresh clip into Mother's Woe and checked that all of his pistols were secure in his duster, hanging from a shelf in the broom cupboard that was serving as a bunker for him now. He slipped his duster back on and stepped quietly from the room. His boots sounded like the dawn chorus as he tried to move along the steel-floored hallway. Or so he thought.

He spotted something up ahead, three men in a large room, with some of the most disgusting sounds he had ever heard coming from the far side of the humans. As he moved closer, he eased his Ka-Bar from its sheathe on his belt and started to move in a slow crouch, only the gentle scrape of his boots on the floor giving away that he was there at all. He was about to strike at the closest one, when he realised it was Kane. One of the jarheads. He sheathed the knife immediately, and moved up alongside. Kane and Jacob both grabbed Jackson as he jumped, startled by Jacob. Jacob drew a dirty look from Kane, and then realised why. Kane had pinned one of Jackson's hands and covered his mouth. Jacob had pinned the other hand and grabbed his throat. Jacob let go immediately. Kane shook his head as Jackson gasped as quietly as he could. Jacob shrugged in apology. Then gestured with his hands.

What now? He signed to Kane, hoping his hand movements were visible in the light from the Glowing Ones.

Solbur15:26, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss consulted the small electronic metre on the side of his Laser Rifle for a readout, and then checked his bag and combat harness. After this, he nodded to himself and spoke. "I got 64% charge on the current cell, three extra Microfusion Cells for my Laser Rifle. That's about ninety bursts on a moderate setting. And, uh, four mags for my D'Eagle, counting the one inside it, but I'm not sure how many shots I fired with it. Three Frags, one Pulse and a big fuckin' hammer of course." Then it hit him. If he couldn't rely on his Laser Rifle in this situation, then he had to remind himself that he was standing in the central headquarters of the organisation that used the same sidearm as he did as a standard-issue weapon. He used Impact's bladed end to open up a nearby crate, similar to how he'd use a crowbar. Nothing. He quickly located another crate, rinsed and repeated to the same result.

KuHB1aM16:41, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Sure, why not

Dutch, standing in the corridor, did an ammuniton count for himself. He had six clips of .45 rounds, with several 5.56 x 45mm clips for his G36C. Add that to his katana and frag grenades, and he could fight for a damn week if he rationed everything correctly. He began to move about to each room, slamming his hand on the outside of each doorway several times. "We're moving again as soon as the jarheads, Jackal and Jacob return." Dutch said, his rifle in hand. Looking around the wrecked corridor, Dutch spotted something that he could use: an auxiliary weapon closet inside the hangar administrative office. Clearing the room with his initial entry, Dutch kicked tables, chairs, and crates, and other junk aside to clear a path as he struggled to maintain a straight path through the trashed room. Reaching the closet, he fired two bursts, shooting off the lock. "Fancy." Dutch said, slinging his rifle. There were several .44 ammunition boxes, a couple Paulsen tripple-barrels, and some shotgun shells. There was even some microfusion cells and some 5.56 x45mm boxes, even if these smaller cases only carried about ten cell, eight slugss and about thirty rounds each, respectively. Dutch slammed his fist against the wall to get some attention. "Christmas! Come see what this Santa bugger brought you!" Dutch shouted, grinning as he grabbed one of the Paulsens and two boxs of shells.


"I say we throw frags and light up those fuckers." Kane said, grabbing a frag grenade. "Aw shit." Bourne said. "What?" Kane whispered. "They're milling about. Just cut us off from the hallway corridors." Bourne said, pointing back towards the way they had come. Ferals, not caring what way they went, had milled about, and now were feeding on corpses near the hallway. "Relax, Bourne. We'll shoot our way out of here." Kane said. "Besides, we got a friendly ghoul and Nerves of Steel right beside us." Kane said, pointing towards Jackal and Jacob. "Hell no man! This is it! Game over!" Jackson said, gripping his shotgun. "Shut up, Jackson!" Kane said, raising his voice. "Bad idea, bud." Jackal said, sitting and smoking a cigarette on top of a pile of crates. The ferals had heard Kane, and were screaming and shouting and clawing to find where the voice had come from. "Now you've done it, asshole!" Bourne said. "We're screwed!" Jackson said. "Shut up, Jackson!" Kane said, pulling out his shotgun and giving facial surgery to a glowing one who had gotten to close. However, more ghouls had seen the shotgun fire, and were closing in. "Get out of here! Let's go!" Kane said, waving everyone to follow him as they rounded a corner of crates. "Marines, we are LEAVING!" Kane roared, firing his shotgun at a charging feral, blood spraying everywhere.

Run4urLife!17:09, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Eyes and guns ahead. If I get shot I'm killing every las one of you!" Jacob shouted, doubting the young marine's judgement in the dubious light of the Glowing Ones. He trusted Kane and Bourne not to spray in every direction and kill them all, likewise with Jackal, but Jackson, the jumpy one, was nothing like the last Jackson Jacob had worked with. Jacob hit Jackson as he turned to shoot a Feral to Jacob's left.

"I said guns ahead for a reason you moron. That would have blown off my arm." Jacob snarled. Then he heard Dutch shouting something about Christmas. That meant guns. Then Jacob slashed the neck of a Feral bearing down on them and thrust his Arkansas Toothpick into the next one. Then he sheathed the Ka-Bar and drew his captured SCM Praetorian Sword, coupling it with his Arkansas Toothpick. Whirling both long blades around, Jacob became not unlike a hurricane as he tore through the Ghouls, slashing throats and piercing hearts as he went. He was rapidly outpacing the poor marines, almost leaving them for dead in the room until Jackal stepped in whirling his machete among his Feral brethren. Surprised by this sudden onslaught from an unforseen foe, the Ghouls began to panic, milling about. Jacob saw a Glowing One club a Roamer to death in a desperate attempt to evade attack. Jacob turned back into the fray, rapidly meeting the marines and the ancient Ghoul as he hacked and slashed like a mad butcher.

Jackal moved from the crowd. He wanted to see what was up for grabs in that room. He didn't need ammunition, he just wanted to see what these buggers had stocked up in their little beehive. He wiped his machete and got moving, leaving Jacob and the jarheads to clear up. "That's kinda catchy. Jacob and the Jarheads."' Jackal shuddered. It sounded like a poor man's showband.

Dutch turned around as Jackal bulled through the door, shotgun raised. They both lowered their weapons as the pathetic sodium lamp on the ceiling lit the room with an eerie yellow light. Jackal's eyes alighted immediately on a four foot long box on the bottom shelf to his left. Confiscated from suspected foreign spies. That had to be worth a look. As Jackal snatched up the box, Dutch's face dropped to an annoyed expression. Apparently, the blind man could somehow read the label.

Jackal opened the box, and his eyes lit up. A Chinese sword. A Dadao, specifically. He hadn't used one of those since the Kung Fu club in University. He hefted it in his grip, feeling the familiar forward balance ofa heavy blade, much like his machete. He fixed the sheath across his back and slid the sword in slowly. It fit perfectly into the sheath. This thing was the genuine article. A real Chinese Greatsword!

As Jackal stepped out of the room, he saw an opportunity he'd never pass up. The oh-so familiar shape of Frederick Thomas' Armor charging down a hallway. Jackal drew his new sword and took off after him. He ignored Jacob and Dutch's calls to come back. This was his own war. They had theirs, he had his. He'd get that bastard this time. Fuck the torture, Jackal would forgo the pleasure of torturing Freddy for the simple satisfaction of killing him now.

KuHB1aM17:23, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// You can control Freddy. I don't feel like it. Decapitate or sever his limbs however you wish, lol.

"Fuck it, he's not coming back." Dutch said, almost completely forgetting to shut the blastdoor to the corridor as the ferals slammed into it, scratching incessantly with their claws as the group calmed down and rummaged through the closet weaponry. "Just trash the place some more." Dutch said, moving aside. Still, he couldn't help but feel the same about guns. They were like boxes of chocolates. Anyhow, he already had grabbed all the ammunition he needed from the closet. He was decked out. An assault rifle, katana, two Colt M1911s, and a Paulsen tripple-barrel. He was set to go. He looked towards the group. "We gotta go back through there, so hurry up. Hennard is probably ripping the BFR to shreads right now."


Breathing heavily, Kane reloaded his shotgun, and promptly left the room, heading for Sarge and Heavy, who were still guarding the ventilation shaft. "Reporting for duty, sir!" Kane said, sweating like crazy, with scratch marks and blood running down his face. Fixing his helmet from it's crooked position, Kane snapped a mock salute, then slung his shotgun. "Where the hell have you been, Enders?" Sarge asked, raising an eyebrow. "On a bug hunt, sir!" Kane said, grinning and spitting blood. Heavy started cracking up. "They had the whole damn zombie brigade right inside the hangar, sir!" Kane said, also cracking up with his kiss-ass attitude. "I won't ask. Grab some ammunition from Shade's ammo closet. He says the mutie will be back soon." Sarge said.

Run4urLife!18:02, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackal smiled as he began to gain on that prick. He whirled his sword around in his grip and jumped at Frederick. He landed against Freddys back, sending him to the floor. They both rolled to their feet. Frederick had lost his helmet in the duel with Roarke, and had blood dripping from his nose and mouth. Apparently, Roarke had been wearing his own helmet for the last clash of heads.

"You." Frederick snarled.

"Yer damn right. Your head's mine to take motherfucker." Jackal said. "Roarke not up to the job?"

"Oh, he could have done me in. Just like I could have ended him. One of my machinegunners sprayed the melee when Roarke and I were the last ones left fighting. We broke off, and I led my men down here, for the last stand. For the Marshall." Frederick responded.

"Well, apparently, fate pushed us back together." Jackal said.

"So, do we stop talking or do we wait for me to die of old age and you to go Feral?" Thomas said.

Without responding, Jackal kicked out, knocking one of Freddys feet from under him, staggering the Major. Major now, according to the stripes on his shoulder. Haha. Major Tom!

"Get many calls from ground control there, Major Tom?" Jackal taunted as he blocked a sword thrust with his newly acquired Dadao. Freddy snarled and lunged again. He was in no mood to take taunts from the Ghoul. Not least because it was a Ghoul taunting him. He roared as he charged straight at Jackal, crashing him against the wall. He repeatedly knee-kicked Jackal as he pinned him to the wall with the weight and strength of his power armor. Jackal headbutted Freddy in the face, again and again, until the asshole sumbled away, concussed from the repeated impacts. Jackal grinned. His head was used to being used as a weapon.

Jackal swung his sword around. Thomas barely blocked. Jackal had the advantage this time. He was fresh to the battle this time, and Freddy was exhausted. Jackal had won the last time they fought, with the tables turned. Jackal pressed the advantage. But Thomas was the better trained soldier. He saw the swing coming a mile away. He parried and countered. The slash cut across Jackal's ribs. Jackal snarled and staggered back. Then he saw what was going on around them. A large group of Feral Ghouls had surrounded them both. Jackal looked around. The Ghouls did nothing. They seemed to know what was going on. It was eerie. One of them groaned and pushed Jackal back towards Freddy. Jackal smiled. He let that short spark of madness start a little fire.

Thomas looked death in the face that second. He roared as he lunged at Jackal, ignoring the circle of Ferals that had gathered to watch Jackal, their messiah, facing off against their greatest persecutor. There was a mind in there after all. They knew what was happening. And it terrified Frederick that they knew what was going on. It terrified him that Jackal had just been handed a cause, while Fredericks came crashing down around his ears. Jackal parried Frederick's uncharacteristically wild swing and brought his elbow up under Frederick's guard, staggering him.

Before Frederick had recovered, Jackal swung his Dadao overhand, one-handed. Frederick roared as the swing cut his sword arm off at the elbow. Frederick, after a second staring at his stump, grabbed the sword in his left hand and swung back at Jackal. Jackal had to leap backwards to avoid the suddenly determined attacks. Jackal then parried another attack, redirecting Frederick's sword and landing another headbutt. Frederick staggered back. Jackal disarmed him with a strike with the back of his blade. Frederick staggered back.

"Jackal, I'm a broken man. What's the point? Leave me go, and I'll be nothing more than a memory." Frederick said.

Jackal paused. He could do that. He could have him wander and let the locals lynch him. One of the Ferals yowled. Jackal jumed back as Frederick lunged a combat knife at him. With a hefty two-handed undercut, Jackal severed Frederick's hand.

"Now how about leaving you go and seeing how the locals deal with you? Gonna plead again? Appeal to my better nature?" Jackal taunted.

"Whats the point?" Frederick sneered. He spat at Jackal's feet, and met Jackal's raised eyebrow with a look of admirable defiance.

Jackal stepped forward, raising his sword in a two-handed grip. He brought it down, splitting Frederick's head in two, right down the middle.

Jackal stooped, taking Frederick's Gold Plated D'Ealge and his sword, with its hand-made sheath. Then he stood, turned and walked through the circle of Ferals, who parted before him, as if in some form of respect. Jackal wiped his sword and walked on. Frederick Thomas was dead. His little war was over. Jackal looked back once, seeing the Ferals taking turns ripping Frederick's carcass apart. The name of Frederick Thomas, smeared in the dirt by the Ghouls he persecuted for so long. A fitting end.

"See you in hell Freddy. There ain't no flipside left for you." Jackal sighed.

Radiation King19:35, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 

Domingo sprinted into the small armory room where Dutch had found the Paulsen. Dodghing past Dutch, he plucked a Paulsen, a bandolier, a box of slug rounds and two boxes of .00 buck. Slamming the slug rounds into the bandolier and slinging it over his shoulder, he pocketed the two boxes of buckshot and snapped the Paulsen to his back, over the top of the bandolier. He walked back out as Roland walked in, plucking three boxes of .45 ammunition, two standard Grease Gun magazines, a box of .357 and an SCM .357 Auto Revolver. Dutch was right; the event wasn't entirely unlike christmas- the free guns and ammunition and the advent of world (somewhat) peace.

"Alright," Domingo said as he moved up alongside Dutch, holding his SMERSH-5 in one hand and a cigar butt in the other. "I'm all kitted out. Field Ripper, Single Action Army revolver, Paulsen triple-barrel and combat knife. I could take on a fucking army with this gear."

KuHB1aM19:42, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// A dignified end for Freddy.

"If you can take a fucking army, I can kill off the entire Last Legion." Dutch said, joking around. He looked around. Everyone was almost finished re-stocking on ammunition. "Hey jarheads, get over here!" Dutch shouted, motioning to the marines to come on over. "Y'all are on point with me. We're clearing that hangar bay." Dutch said, Paulsen in hand. He looked towards the group. "Jacob and the jarheads," Dutch said, "say there's an entire legion of ghouls inside. We," Dutch continued on, "are gonna thin them out, and get to the main armory surplus level. The Crusade keeps all the real goodies down there. Then we get said goodies, and shoot the fuck out of Hennard. Any questions?" Dutch looking around.

--Cerebralz19:50, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// You guys do realize how impractical desert eagles really are, right?

Jack grabbed some 5.56 ammunition, and looked around for anything that could of been used for a .50 magnum. Absolutely nothing, he sighed and started looking for a hand gun. The first thing he found was a pair of Desert Eagles, and that was what he was going to use for now. A few clips of deagle ammunition, and six or seven clips of 5.56. Good enough for now, he grabbed a shinier SMC sword, and started to group up with the Survivors. "I'm assuming you guys don't have any .50 rounds?"

KuHB1aM19:53, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// We're just going by the fact that they're bad-ass and look awesome.
Solbur19:54, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Damn straight.

Strauss dropped another two .357 magazines for his Desert Eagle into his bag, the only ammo he'd found for it. Everyone else had already called dibs on the small amount of Microfusion Cells in the munitions found - gee, that sort of thing's happening a lot lately, isn't it? - so he was forced to pick up one of the nifty-looking triple-barreled shotguns, which were in reasonably healthy supply, and a couple of boxes of twelve gauge shells that were in similar quantity. These things would probably have ungodly recoil, but they'd come in handy in close quarters. He broke it open and slid home three shells before flipping it shut again, then slipped the leather sling over his left shoulder and right arm, took hold of the it by the stock and rested the trio of barrels on his armour's pauldron. "Yeah," Strauss called over to Dutch. "What 'bout the rest of us?"

Radiation King19:56, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// They're also delicate, rare and impractical to lug around. THe things must way, what, six pounds a piece? That may not be a problem for WWs, but for people like Roland who aren't much more than twigs with cybernetic enhancements in certain places (don't take anything pervy from that) it adds a lot of weight. Also, who took MF cells around here? Neither of my characters have energy weapons, or any volition to use energy weapons in the near future. Aside from Domingo, who has a fucking chaingun bolted to his tank

Roland, ever pragmatic and foresighted, raised his hand. "What if Hennard gets to us first?" He looked back towards the bolted, locked bulkhead door. "We all saw what that beast could do back on the surface."

Domingo interjected, "He almost flipped my tank over!" He scratched his head for a second. "That's twelve tons of metal when it's attached to the trailer and five without. A hell of a lot of mass to shift."

Roland quickly continued: "If it can almost roll a five-ton tank attached to a seven-ton trailer filled with eight people, radio broadcasting equipment, armor, weapons and chems up to the gills, how much will that bulkhead door slow him down?" He looked over at the group. "We should probably just burrow straight through the center mass of the Ghouls. They may look tough; but age has slowed them down a lot and they don't really attack with much other than claws and teeth." He held up his Grease Gun. "We have fire and steel on our side." Lowering the grease gun, he concluded: "It's pretty much our best shot to just burrow through the Ghouls and hope for the best on the way down."

KuHB1aM20:04, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Solbur gets the idea. If I wanted something practical and well balanced, I would've chosen an M9.

"As a matter of fact, I don't. But I think Sarge carries a .50 on him. You could ask him, sir." Kane said to Jack, then turned towards Shades, who was talking to a power armored man with a massive super sledge. "I just said we're gonna clear out the ghouls, sonny. It's just me and the jarheads are on point. Once we enter, we'll split up and take separate wings. I don't care who goes where. but we need to finish this in less than ten minutes." Dutch said, feeling the shaking as Hennard most likely smashed his way inside the caverns. "Let's hit it!" Heavy said, hefting his mini-gun. The group silently made it's way inside the corridor, people taking positions on other side of the blastdoor. "In three... two... one." Dutch said, grabbing the manual control on the right side, Kane doing the same on the left. Both sides pulled apart, with Dutch and Kane entering first, followed by Dom, the squad, and Jacob plus Jackal. "Eyes on." Sarge could be heard saying. Flipping on his helmet light, Kane stopped immediatly, raising his shotgun. "And here... we... go." Dutch said, and the entire room errupted in gun-fire and severed limbs.

Vegas adict20:13, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis dashed into the armoury room dutch had stubled appon.Grabbing some microfussion cells he spoted a case saying.Medival hammer do not open ignoring the sign he opened the case and pulled out a hammer with spikes on it.He wondered of the rest of the group were doing ."if anyone in thats group has any wonds that needs tending speek now or hold your banages in place for a long time"

Run4urLife!20:25, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Again, CP, you criticize when you are in no position to do so. Unless you plan on hunting large pachyderms or getting into EOD, .50 Cal anything is highly impractical. At least my D'Eagles are .44 Magnum

Jacob roared as he blasted the first Feral to move. The Marines were moving forward, as Jackal followed on with some sort of sword. A big Chinese thing that severed the Feral's heads left, right and centre. Jacob pummeled the next Feral with the stock of his Assault Rifle. Then he kicked out at head height, breaking the next Feral's neck, while nearly taking Jackson's head off in the process. Jacob then stabbed his bayonet into another Feral. A Reaver this time, about to prime its grenade. Jacob jumped back as another Reaver went at him with an SCM Sword (If they can use grenades, they can use a chopper).

Jackal was whaling the tar out of his Feral cousins. Some of them backed off the group. Either out of fear or respect for their de facto king. He stepped away from the Ferals and signalled to the group to stop. One Feral kept attacking, but rapidly found an end to its pathetic existence as Jacob sidestepped and snapped its neck. Everyone looked at him.

"They won't fight us. Not with me here." Jackal said. He waved for them to follow, and, just like he said, the Ferals returned to eating the corpses.

Run4urLife!20:26, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Vegas, did you even read KuHB1aM's post where we moved on to attack the Ghouls?
KuHB1aM20:36, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Well, you killed the bug hunt. Now we gotta wait for Hennard to rear his ugly face.

Dutch still had his Paulsen raised to the head of a feral ghoul, it's ugly face still smiling crookedly in his direction without realizing it was in danger. "Your kidding?" Dutch said, pulling the trigger anyway and ending it's miserable existence. This was complete bullshit. Kane exploded. "You telling me you didn't stop em' earlier simply because you like watching jarheads getting ripped to shreds?" Kane asked, firing his Remington into the air, getting Jackal's attention. "This is just fucking great." Jackson said, slinging his rifle. "Shut up, Jackson!" Dutch said. Moving towards a dimly lit, yet still working terminal, Dutch began to press keyes and navigate the database. "Well... we're on Level Eight. Nine, Ten, Eleven, and Twelve are barracks areas, which means there is definetly some fighting going on down there we want to avoid. Thirteen through sixteen are maintenance and required stuff, like generators and the water chip processor. Wait a sec... here we go. Seventeen is the full blown fuckin' armory surplus and prison area. No doubt it's been ransacked, but those gun racks and ammo boxes can't be completely picked clean. We don't want to go any farther. After that, it's just Moore's fucking loyalists guarding his inner sanctum on Eighteen through Twenty." Dutch said, logging off and smashing the terminal with the butt of his Paulsen. Eyeing the ghouls, he relaxed a bit. "If there's anything we can use to kill Hennard, it'll be on Level Seventeen, mates." Dutch said, shoving away a sniffing feral.

Run4urLife!20:44, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// If you'd prefer, I can edit that post so they only stop attacking Jackal, but keep attacking everyone else
KuHB1aM20:46, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Don't worry about it. I don't want to edit my own post aswell. I'll cook up some Loyalists wearing BRA suits to pop up and steal the show.
Run4urLife!20:48, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// K. A3 suits? That way, we need headshots (well, not Jacob, Mother's Woe is full of HEIAP bullets, but if you keep 'em comin, he'll have to switch weapons to something without HEIAP shots)
Vegas adict20:51, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Fucking edit conflicts i delted the post

Alexis took on dutchs information.If there was an armoury on floor 17 they could rewire some of the munitions."Could we overload some of the munitions to kill the mutant?".If they could do that they could save themselves a lot of time.He grabbed the rest of his kit and turned to dutch.At the same time he shot a feral clawing at him.

KuHB1aM21:10, 28 May 2009 (UTC)// Sure, why not. BRAs in general are resistant to ballistic weapons, as implied, so even standard bullets would have a hard time penetrating. You'd need Strauss and Riley, and maybe Dutch (alien rifle) to take them down with lucky shots.

"Sergeant, get that door open now!" Captain Clark said, firing his G36c at approaching feral ghouls. They were still on Level Eight, but at the first set of blast-doors on the eastern end. As Lewis and Manatoba worked to get the door open, the rest of the platoon, with some of them wearing power armor and others wearing BRA armor, provided covering fire at the ghouls charging them. "I got it!" Lewis shouted, throwing away the hacking device and opening the blast-doors. "Everyone inside!" Clark yelled, waving them in. The men poured inside, and within a few seconds, the blast-doors were once again shut. "Not the same from my childhood, Cap'n." Lewis said. "I certainly wish it were, Sergeant." Clark said. The entire base had gone to hell. This wasn't even his actual unit. It was just a collection of marines and Airborne. Some men wore BRA variants, others wore power armor, and others, such as Lewis and Clark, wore simply military fatigues with the sleeves rolled up. It was a ramshackle group of soldiers, with one purpose: link up with the others on Levels Eighteen, Nineteen, and Twenty. "Sergeant Lewis, Sergeant Manatoba, I want an ammunition count, armor type census, and general combat status on every single man we have." Clark said. The sergeants saluted, and began to move to different parts of the wrecked corridor, observing each of the twenty men. They returned after several minutes. "Twenty men, sir. Most of em' are armed with G36C's and .357 Deagles, with a few clips for each plus what they got in their weapons. About 90% of em' aren't fit for combat duty; all of them are wounded with at least medium-grade injuries. A couple of them won't live to see tomorrow. The majority of our guys are strapped up in A1s, and we've got a couple of those Airborne bastards in T-51bs'. The real kicker is that we've got five guys in A3s wielding .30 cals and mini-guns. Anyhow, we're about as ready for combat as a new-born baby holding a toy gun." Lewis said. Clark nodded. "We'll take the corridor. The exit to Eighteen is in the hangar bay. No doubt there's going to be ferals. We'll have the A3s cover us while we get down there." Clark said. He looked towards the group. Most of them were missing helmets, some had field splints on their arms, and others were missing armor parts. "Let's roll, gentlemen!" Clark said, ruffling his fatigues and unslinging his G36c.


Rhinosasaurus21:13, 28 May 2009 (UTC) 

Boythorn screamed out in pain as a blast of plasma surged through his body leaving him on the brink of concinousness. "where did you find it? Just tell me and this can stop!" an officer screamed charging another shot. Boythorn's head slumped foward as he took another shot to his chest. He was cut and burnt and in no fit state to talk but the torturer took no notice, he was enjoying it, he place the pistol down and took out a knife. "This is your last chance to tell me before you start losing THINGs." the man said running the blade along the burn wounds. Boythron responded by spitting a mouthfull of blood at his tormenter. "Oh how I hope you don't talk." The man whispered wiping his face. Boythorn groaned, he knew as soon as he talked his throat would be cut, but if he didn't talk soon he'd be killed anyway. He was between hell and high water as he'd once heard his father say. "Are you a masochist or something? Just bloody tell me! No fine don't tell me, gives me an excuse to have some fun." The inquisiter had been running a blade along Boythorn's chest as he spoke but now he pressed harder, piercing the skin, leaving a crimson trail where ever he took the knife. Boythorn could barely feel anything, he was dancing between conciousness and unconciousness. An intense pain brought him screaming back to reality as he had a toe cut off. His mind was deviod of anything but pain, he couldn't think, he couldn't speak, he could only scream.

Fireman0504 // Sorry guys, gonna need you to move Stef along for a couple days. Gonna be away from my computer until Sunday. Just keep her participating because I really want to finish the story with you all and keep going in "All My Sins."

Stefanie McRae danced a bloody dance among the feral ghoul population of Jerusalem. Finally, her abilities could be shown full scale. The fragile nature of these twisted former humans meant that every strike she landed, ever blow she dealt, was punishing and unforgiving. Their clumsiness and disorientation gave her movements a graceful and lithe sense of fatality as every delicate move spelled death for another ghoul. She ducked low underneath a grasping set of hands, spinning and sweeping the legs from under it, before rising with an uppercut with her Power Fist to smash another's jaw straight up into it's head. She jumped hard, both feet landing on the fallen ghoul's head, which splattered underneath her weight like a watermelon.

Another grabbed her from behind and she put her hip into it, throwing it over. She rolled through and ended up sitting on its chest. Pinning its arms with the spikes on her boots, it struggled as she lashed out at another with her Power Fist, landing a blow that shattered ribs and caved in the chest cavity of the unfortunate creature. Looking back down she drew a knife quickly, and rammed it through the feral's throat, pushing until she felt it scrape concrete beneath it. Standing up she met a third ghoul with a roundhouse kick that sent it into the wall.

Yet another came on and she hit this one with an axe kick that floored it downward onto it's face. Stepping onto it's back and twisting she landed a solid spinning backhand to the one that'd just gotten up. She stomped down hard on the base of the first's skull underneath her, severing the spinal column. The other was getting up, yet again, and Stefanie spun once more, this time cutting it's throat with one of the sharpened spurs on her boots. Blood sprayed all over her as the ghoul unknowingly bled out, writhing on the ground.

Stefanie continued on until she finally caught up with the rest of the group. Smiling as she bumped into Jackal and Jacob, she was happy to be with everyone again. The ferals were now leaving them alone. How odd. She felt a slap on the back and turned to see Domingo grinning away. She smiled back and gave him a wink as they continued on, turning around and surveying everyone, it appeared as if the were all there. Even that gung ho jarhead who's face she smeared with cornbread earlier. Hopefully she'd seen what she was capable of in a fight, maybe he'd bring more wit and less cornbread next time. Then again, maybe he'd be tied to a bed in Rivet City sometime. Who knew? Time to focus now. The group was heading toward an armory. Hopefully there'd be some useful shit in there. Or a missile launcher? Stefanie chuckled quietly to herself.

Run4urLife!15:33, 29 May 2009 (UTC)// I'll be gone from tomorrow morning till around Monday evening. Just tag Jacob and Jackal along

Jackal looked around the hallways. They were fast approaching an armory. And that meant guns for dealing with the big ugly they had left up on the surface. Whenever he got down here and tried to rip them yet another new asshole. He nooded to Stefanie as they caught up. He was in a much better mood now that he had killed Frederick Thomas. The world would sleep easier at his passing. Ghouls in particular. The Ferals were forming a strange crowd around him now. Last time he had this big a crowd hanging on was Bregrod. And that hadn't ended well. Jackal thought he heard muffled screaming coming from a side room as they entered the Armory Level 17. Jacob apparently did too.


The CCI agent switched the little dial on the gun. It looked like the fire selector on those AK-47 things the Ruskies used. It emitted a strange chime. He pointed it at the captive's chest, and was about to pull the trigger when the door burst inwards.

Jacob hit the one with the big revolver first, launching him into the unfortunate captive, sending them both to the floor in a heap. Jacob grabbed the gun the CCI Agent had been pointing at the Wastelander and rolled over, firing it at the nearest soldier. The muzzle flashed blue and left a strange white after-image as he fired at the soldier. The thing emitted a deep boom, like a railgun, when it fired. And it blasted a hole the size of a human head clean through the soldier. After a few seconds staring at the destruction the pistol had caused, Jacob and the second soldier returned their attentions to each other. Jacob pulled the trigger again, with similar results. The man's corpse slumped to the ground, a large hole blown in his chest. Jacob drew his Ka-Bar and began to cut the captive's bonds. The poor kid had been relieved of his shoes and was missing a toe. Probably cut off as part of torture. He was covered in bruises. Too large to have been inflicted by human hands. Jacob assumed that this weird energy weapon could do that sort of damage, as it seemed to be set to the second of three points, with a fourth pointing off in the opposite direction to them. A safety Jacob assumed. Jacob then helped the captive to his feet and went to put the pistol into his duster.

"That's mine. They took it from me. Wanted to know where to find more." Boythorn said, putting a hand on Jacob's arm.

"Well, do you know where to find more?" Jacob asked as he handed the pistol back to the former prisoner.

"Whats your name anyway?" Jacob added.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:34, 29 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Holy shit!"

Both Jackson and Weston shouted, at the same time. After that, they both quickly looked at each other, exchanged some intodructions and went back to looking at the captive.

"Poor bastard...looks like he got the shit beat out of him." said Jackson.


"I guess so...look at those Bruises!" said Weston.

Dropping his old clip, Jackson brought a new clip before pulling back the revicver. Or whatever the hell it's called. Weston did sometrhing akin with his shotgun. Breaking it open, he pulled out the two empty shells and replaced them with two new ones. Thats when a a idea hit both of them, nearly at the same time. Checking the dead bodies, they began to scoruge for ammo. Finding nothing more then pocket lint and kinfies, they returend to leaning agiasnt the wall.


Sebastian was quickly shimming down the pipe. He had manged to come through a vent, not unlike the ones that the Feral Ghouls kept on using. In fact, Sebastian had to kill some of them when they were coming a bit too close. Putting his feet down on the ground, he looked around. Nearly total darkness. Almost no sounds, save for running feet, the groans of the dying and the howls of the Ghouls. And someone shouting something about Shit being holy. Moving in that directions, he saw a dimly lit room with several people that looked familar in it. Quyickly pressing himself agiasnt a wall, he checked the surroidng area. No other cover, save for the dead bodies. The ghouls did'nt see him, and hopefully the group inside did'nt see him. The grop inisde forgot about one thing, he's now back to being Frelance. Damn Cursade is falling apart and he at least wants to get inisde there money resvere, grab a sackfull of Cap's, maybe some new weapons and book it out of here. That is, if he got past this group. He could'nt go anyway, for some two bastards, one Wounded guy and a Rapture Company jarhead, was guarding the door. Just be quiwet Sebastian, just...be....quiet... he told himself. Breathing softly, he waited for the group to leave. If they ever did.

--Cerebralz19:46, 29 May 2009 (UTC)// When the hell did people start calling Rapture soldiers jar heads?
--Rhinosasaurus20:37, 29 May 2009 (UTC) 

Boythorn winced trying to take a step "I'm Boythorn and I would honestly tell you I have no idea where you could get something like this, but I could show you where I got this if help me get out here." He tried to take another step but he collapsed, the pain was to much. "Now I really appreciate what you've done for me" He said pointing to Jacob "But I'd be so much more greatful if one of you could spare some Med-X." After a few seconds there was some jammed into his leg and a sudden coolness spread through his body easing the pain. He holstered his pistol and took a few shakey steps towards the man that had burst in and saved him so easily. "Now may I ask who you are?" He enquired waving his at the group that had been assembling outside the door.

--Cerebralz20:44, 29 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Were the national asshole commitee, now lets leave before a giant monster comes in and kills us all." The man just blinked, and stared at Jack as if he was a mad man. Jack would of done the same thing in his position. "We'll explain it to you later, lets go." Jack then took out two of the desert eagles, he was running low on 5.56.

KuHB1aM21:21, 29 May 2009 (UTC)// They're marines, lol. And Twenty, when you gonna post again? btw, I'll post as Kane later.

"Now hold up a damn second, Jack." Dutch said, and tossed his G36C to Boythorn, along with the ammunition bandolier. "You'll need that. That fancy boy toy pistol of yours won't save you down here." Dutch said. He turned towards a prison terminal, not unlike the one in the VTOL hangar bays. Surfing the database, he again came up the navigation section. "We're about a mile off; the armory is west of here, down through the main prison block. However, it looks like the prisoners got loose." Dutch said, noting how several of the cell switches had been opened on the terminal. "No doubt the prisoners just wanna get out, but we're not a rescue force." Dutch said, and punched the terminal display with his hand, cracking it easily. Pulling off the balaclava from the dead CCI operative and pushing over the top of his head, he felt like a real insurgent now. The group just stared at him. "I'm chilly." Dutch said, making his way for the door.

--Cerebralz21:33, 29 May 2009 (UTC) 

Making their way there, Jack suddenly heard an odd sound, and looked up at a vent. Aiming his desert eagle, he slowly approached it. It seemed that Dutch and Jacob also noticed, as they were also approaching it. Then, it happened. A feral ghoul flew out of the vent, tackling a odd figure. The group shot the feral in every place imaginable, till it was just a large torso on top of a figure. "Well, if it isn't the princess." Walking over, Jack removed the feral ghoul off him, and pointed his desert eagle at his face. "I believe it's ass hole now though?"

Boris was flying toward Jerusalem, heading back. Chay and Alfred were asking him questions. "Are you sure you don't want me to drive? I mean, you've had a lot to drink boris, and I've seen how you drive with out you being drunk..." Boris responded, and pointed at the wind shield. "Fuck you Chay, I've seen your driving. Remember the time in which the super mutant behemoth was throwing shit at us, and you refused to drive the vertibird right into it?" "Because it would of killed us!" Boris then flipped him off, took another swig of vodka, and kept on driving.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster01:51, 30 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Shades is princess, i'm asshole."

Said Sebastian. Keeping his hands inbetwwen the Desert Eagle and his face, although it woukld'nt really do anything. KJust slow the massive bullet down a little. If that.

"No, for my little pead. Ahem. Well, i'm here to do one little thing, grab a stash of Caps and get out of here. I say we stick together, try to surivie thiss little heell-hole, asnd go our sperate ways, a few thousand caps rixchcer. You all game?"


Jacson quicklyflipped his gun around, for the barrel was pointing in his own body. Earning a quick slap on the back of the head from Sarge and a few looks from thew rest of the Survivors. Nlow, with his gun facing the right way, Jackson opened hios mouth.

"Who's this guy?"

--Cerebralz13:22, 30 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I'm the one pointing the big fucking gun at your face, now I can call you what ever I damn well please. You got that butter scotch?"

Boris continued driving, take another swig of vodka. Looking back, he saw sasuke sleeping, little bastard was supposed to get out once they neared the faculity. Alfred and Boris looked at each other, and Chay looked at Sasuke. "Does he know he's sleeping right next to the vertibird hatch?" Before he could say anything else, Alfred ran over and opened the hatch, while Sean Abbot pushed him out. Chay tried to grab Sasuke, before he fell out, and noticed the vertibird was flying three feet off the ground. And that Jerusalem was with in eye sight. The vertibird erupted in laughter.

Ms. Itua20:28, 30 May 2009 (UTC)// Can i join now??

Jean was scouting out the area near Jerusalem for Talon Company. Lot'sa fighting. Bullets everywhere. Nothing she couldn't possibly handle. She radioed in to Commander Jabsco. "Commander, drop 'em in, heavy fighting, we can wait it out or go in guns n' blazing, what do you say?" she waited for a reply, "Guns n' blazing, I like your style, we have a captured Crusade bird coming to pick you up, they'll drop you into Jerusalem at the top level and you'll lead the assault. Five minutes tops, and keep that dog from go'n crazy."

She readied her Chinese Assault Rifle and waited, about six minutes later what looked like a Crusade Vertibird landed and she was greeted by a Talon Sergeant, "Get the fuck in lady we don't have all day!" he said and she jumped in.

Twentyfists01:53, 31 May 2009 (UTC)// Hennard needs to kill something to prove that he's not a bullshitter.

Dark. Light. Neither made any difference to Hennard. His catlike vision could cut straight through the darkness of the cavernous rooms and inky-black tunnels as clear as day. In the light, Hennard could see perfectly. The massive man-beast crawled stealthily through the tunnels, following the scent of its prey. Even though it was huge and was carrying many pounds of ordnance, the hunter could be surprisingly light on its feet and extremely furtive when it wanted to.

Hennard saw the two Reavers well in advance. His animal mind did not see the value in sneaking around; better to kill them when he had the chance. The first one never stood a chance. It had no idea that Hennard was there until the massive creature dove on top of it, using its weight to pin it down and crack its bones. Hennard balled its hands into fists and growled in a low, guttural voice, "Hennard break." It smashed its fists down, pulverizing the unfortunate ghoul in a matter of seconds. The second ghoul hissed and hurled itself at the large hunter. Hennard shot its hands out, claws outstretched. The ghoul suddenly halted in midair as Hennard's massive claws dug into the soft skin and organs of the ghoul's belly. The ghoul found room through the pain to change its skull-like face into a picture of abject terror as Hennard's grotesque face cracked into a frightening wicked grin. Hennard suddenly drew his hands apart, slashing through the ghoul's stomach and tearing its gut open. Hennard bent down to feed, then, hunger satisfied, got up to hunt again.

KuHB1aM02:37, 31 May 2009 (UTC)// Ms. Itua, I'm sorry but your assault is impossible, and if you do attempt the assault, it will fail because the story line has already been decided. Anyhow, Jerusalem and the dozen square miles around it are a hell hole. Last Legionnaires and Crusaders are fighting a massive pitched battle, although the main surface area inside Jerusalem has been captured. Talon Company, although a tried and true merc company, would be cut to shreds easily. They wouldn't stand a chance. They are well equipped and trained, but not nearly as much as the other factions vying for control. Btw, I'll post as Kane later.

"I thought I left you at the log, tied up for the ferals to get you." Dutch said, grabbing "Seabass" by the collar and lifting him up from the ground. "You shouldn't have followed me. Now I have to kill you." Dutch said, slamming Seabass into a wall. Taking his fist, he punched Seabass several times in the gut, knocking the wind out of him. Dropping him to the floor with a thud, Dutch kicked him across the face, sending him face first on his belly, having already been knocked to the floor. Kicking him in the ribs several times, Dutch was about to shoot him with his M1911 when the ground started shaking. "He's fucking got here." Dutch said, not registering what was happening. Planting his combat boot on the back of Seabass' neck, Dutch looked towards the group. "What's the verdict? I need to know now, before said giant fucking mutant arrives." Dutch said.

--Cerebralz02:57, 31 May 2009 (UTC) 

"I say we stick that little fucker back in the vent. It'll distract the giant fucking monster for a few seconds for us." Jack drew his desert eagle, and shot Sebastian twice. One bullet in each leg. "Stop squirming! You'll be dead in a few minutes any way!" Jack lifted the man, and threw his body inside the vent. "What the hell are the others doing right now? How don't we know he's coming for them!" Jack started walking toward the door, heading for the next level.

Radiation King12:02, 31 May 2009 (UTC) 

It was at this point where Roland did something very unexpected. He turned and, with his cybernetic arm, bitch-slapped Jack right across the side of the head. "What the fuck, Jack?" He inquired, pulling Sebastian out of the vent. "Here this guy is, a crusade spy who no doubt has worked out of Jerusalem before, possibly has access to security, top-secret credentials and all that shit, and you're just going to kill him like a dog?" He helped Sebastian carefully to a chair, bandaged his leg and stabbed a syringe of Med-X and a Stimpak into him, then procured a pair of folding crutches from an emergency medical ward.

"We don't have any ex-Crusade personnel handy with us right now," Roland stated simply as he gimped Sebastian and his crutches over to his position. "So if you have a better plan for stalling Hennard than 'stand there and shoot the fuck out of him', let's hear it. Because if Sebastian can access the security systems we may just have a chance to slow him down." He then turned to Sebastian.

"Of course, if you don't, I'll be glad to shoot you here and save you from dyin' in a most painful and unplelasant manner." By 'a most painful and unpleasant manner' he could have meant either 'Fillet a la Dutch', 'More of Jack's .50-caliber bullets to the knees', or 'Hennard, which pretty much explains itself'.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster12:23, 31 May 2009 (UTC) 

"You got a deal. I'll help."

Sebastian said, semi grimmainces. Next time he sees Jack, he'll just shoot the fucker. Even if he has his little group with him.

"Alright, first stop. Down the hall is a room. Go in that room and i'll have acess to all the secruity cameras in here. Thus, we'll be able to see where were going, plan,. You know, the stuff anybody would do."

Cracking his back, and checking his ammo, Sebastian stood up. Two bullets in the leg would slow him down, for sure. But, if the giant fucking animal came in, like hell he was simply going to walk and fire into it. No, no. He's going to nbe running towards a room, lock himself in, and that'll be the end of it.

Fireman0504

Stefanie looked around worriedly as the rumbling of the ground grew louder. She had no idea who this "ex-Crudsade spy" was or how he got here. Or what "Hennard" was either. All she knew was that that huge fuckin man-beast was on his way and they needed to get haulin ass before he showed up. "I hate to break up your moral tea party," she said, still looking around at the darkness, "but we should probably fuckin' move and find that armory so when tall, dark, and buldging gets here we have some good shit to blast him with." They just kind of looked at her as if she didn't know what she was talking about. Well, Dutchie was blind and did know exactly what she was talking about. "The girly's right," he grunted. "Lets go." Stefanie turned into the darkness again as the group moved on. She shook her head as she thought about Jack, who had taken a 180 and was starting to get on her nerves. Why was always such a dick now? Maybe he was just trying to look cool in front of his assassin buddies, who weren't even here now. She chuckled to herself. Haha, the key word in assassin? Ass. Twice.

--Cerebralz18:46, 31 May 2009 (UTC)// Wait, when did I stop making jack an asshole? Where did his assassin buddies go?

Jack got up, rubbing his face. How the fuck does a merchant get robotic arms anyway? Bastard probably broke something. "Roland, why would a crusade spy be let into the higher levels. He's a spy, their working for some one else one way or another. And if he had access to security, top-secret credentials and all that shit he wouldn't be crawling through a fucking vent, and he's here to steal cash. From his employer. That mean's, he freelance, probably hasn't even worked for the Crusade long."

Radiation King18:58, 31 May 2009 (UTC) 

"All's still well, though." Roland grunted, checking over his .357 Auto-Revolver as he spoke. "If this guy didn't work here ong he still probably has limited access to the CCI mainframe. He may as well be able to do something." He put the gun away before speaking again.

"And when push comes to shove, we've got another gun hand anyways."

--Cerebralz19:06, 31 May 2009 (UTC) 

Looking over his desert eagles, Jack holstered them again. "Well, I suppose your right. But it would of taken Hennard at least ten seconds to fish the kid out of the vent. And another ten to devour the kid. Took me five seconds to shoot him and shove him in the vent. We would of had a 15 second head start, which we just lost. Who do you think he's going to eat first?" Jack said jokingly, it seemed that not many of them thought that it was funny. "Well, lets go before he rips our legs off."

KuHB1aM20:26, 31 May 2009 (UTC) 

"Your lucky. Very lucky." Dutch said, kicking Seabass in the gut as he motioned for Alexis and Riley to work their medic magic and fix up Seabass's legs. He turned towards Stefanie, who seemed confused by all this talk of Hennard and why he was here. "I already explained this once today to Jacob, but I'll say it one more time, considering everyone here was off in la-la land for a minute while we were getting shot at by George." Dutch said. "George? I though it was Hennard!" Domingo said. "There's two of em'! Aw fuck! Game over man!" Jackson said, pissing himself scared. "Shut up! George is his gun, dipshit." Dutch said. "We've got at least a half hour before he gets to us, so gather around, children, and listen to my childhood story." Dutch said, firing his pistol to gain everyone's undivided attention. "As most of you know, me and Jacob go way back. We're not the only ones of our kind. Yeah, there's more of us. Don't despair, though; Jacob killed all of em', for the most part." Dutch said, looking towards Jacob, who waved his hand. "Some time after Jacob left, Jacob de facto father's assistant, Jankowski, or "Janice," as we call him, decides he wants to make us some rivals, and prove he's got the better kick-ass enclave super soldier project. Makes two unsanctioned proto-types, Skyler and Honda. Lucky for us, they both died on the other side of the country, and lucky for them, they didn't face me. Anyhow, Janice gets discovered for his unsanctioned project, and his staff gets killed off. But no, he doesn't stop there. He wants to prove he's valuable. Then here comes Big Daddy out of the lab, toting a mini-gun and shootin' down all the G.I.s guarding the place. His orders? A. Kill all the supers, starting with me, and B. Kill all the super deserters, AKA Jake here." Dutch said, a brooklyn attitude in his voice. "So here he goes, starting with me. Kills off several other kick-ass classmates; personal friends of mine, too, along with several dozen G.I.s a few klicks south of Jerusalem in an Enclave staging base. Fucking bastard near took my jaw off." Dutch said, taking a moment to punch Seabass in the gut. "Me and Jacob over there are the reason he's following us. So now your in the loop." Dutch said. "Happy now? I figured you was wondering why Henhouse was taking such an affectionate interest in me and my big brother over there." Dutch said, pulling out a cigarette and lighting it, puffing the smoke out in a cloud.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster21:53, 31 May 2009 (UTC) 

Jackson was shaking like crazy. There was more of these pyscho killing machines! Maybe not like henneard, but, still! The Enclavce could have simply just taken over the DC area with that type of soldiers! All of Amercia wwould bow down to them.

"Shit man...shit. Were fucked man! Were not going to get of here man! Game Over!"

"Shut up Jackson! Thats a order" Barked Dutch.

"IOh, fine! Whty sdon't we just put him in charge?!"With that, Jackson begin leaning agiasnt a wall, rubbing his hands together constally, mutterng something about how he should have never joined with this death squad.

Fireman0504

Stefanie shrugged. She'd seen enough to know that this Henhouse guy was more than she could mess with. She sat down on the chest of dead feral on the floor, listening as the fragile ribs cracked beneath her weight. "So how do we beat him?" she asked, "is there some kinda super powerful weapon in the armory we're lookin for?" She hoped Jacob and Dutchie would have a plan. Dutchie in particular had to know what was up. After all, he did wear the slickest jacket of the group. Stefanie looked around. Everyone else did too, somewhat nervously, as they listened to the rumbling deeper in Jerusalem, indistinguishable if it was from the battle still going outside, or from Hennard running around. "So if storytime is over, can we get going?" Stefanie asked no one in particular.

KuHB1aM01:54, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch stepped towards Jackson, picking him up by the collar and slamming against the same wall. "Because me and Jacob over there are the only reason you'll make it through this, ok jarhead!" Dutch said, dropping Jackson to the floor. Fixing his jacket and shades, Dutch picked up a fallen G36C from the ground and the adjacent bandolier next to it, and slung the weapon over his shoulder. He looked towards Stefanie and the group. "Honey, if I had a plan, you'd think I'd have implemented it by now, yes? I'm more in the loop than anybody here, and I still can't figure out an effective solution other than to pump it full of led and shrapnel." Dutch explained. "I mean, I can't charm the thing. Shades and a jacket have proven ineffective thus far, babe." Dutch said, sarcastically. "Let's go, ladies!" Dutch shouted, moving for the door. The armory was less than about a hundred yards in front of him, being on the same level. Sure, it would definitely be stripped down some because of the fighting, but there was no way all of that ordnance could have been removed and used up.

Skip one hour ahead. I wanna rap this up and get to All My Sins Remembered. If you've been wanting that special rare weapon for awhile, it'll be here locked away somewhere. Now you've got an improbable excuse to find this weapon of yours.

Dutch, raising his G36C, put one hand on the manual blast-door release, and slowly pulled the iron handle. Instead of opening, however, the blast-door simply fell backwards, having been blasted off it's hinges long ago. "Hmm. So much for breach and clear tactics." Kane said, his shotgun raised behind him to back up Dutch. Smirking at the comment, Dutch stepped over the blast-door, rifle in hand. Looking around, Dutch surveyed the room and it's connecting rooms as well. The entry room had been cleared pretty much, but the other rooms still had ordnance. Several gun racks, gun lockers, ammunition boxes, and other equipment bearing crates were scattered about. "Take what you need. But bear in mind we're lucking for AP rounds and heavy ordnance." Dutch said, kicking over a crate and spilling .30 caliber ammunition belts onto the floor. His eyes fluttering about, he spotted something peculiar: a blast-door marked Customs. His eyes not moving away, he shouted towards the group. "Somebody come help me with this door!" Dutch said, grabbing a crowbar from a maintenance rack.

Radiation King11:00, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Don't take any offense to this, Dutch." Roland hoisted the shining finger in Dutch's direction, and Shades looked like he was about to rip a hole in Roland's chest when he peeled back the artificial skin over it, and a small blue flame leapt into being. "Butane torch. I can use it to light fires, cut through door locks, or burn the pants off annoying historians." The merchant then walked over to the gun rack Dutch was working on and, with a few deft motions of everyone's favorite finger, sliced the doors wide open. Flicking his wrist, he put out the butane torch, folded the skin back into place and opened the doors.

He briefly surmised the guns that were inside and decided immediately against the energy weapons in there: the damn things were too delicate and ended up frying him whenever he tried to shoot them. He pased over to a Fat Man tactical-nuclear-FUCKING-catapault. Carefully lifting it off the rack, he offered the gun to Dutch. "I'm no good with big guns, you might want to use this instead. There's about six more mini-nukes in there." Roland then pulled out a few boxes of HE .357 rounds and .45ACP rounds.


Domingo, meanwhile, was stocking up on every large weapon he could fit onto his person. He had strapped the ammunition case of a minigun to his back and along with it a long spool of .30-caliber ammuntion. In his hands was, sans bipod, an SCM .30 Light Machine Gun. "Tracers, incendiary rounds, heavy explosive rounds... All on the same spool... Glad I took time to scrounge for some spare rounds before I left El Oso." Domingo said to himself as he looked at the gun, which was tied over his chest with a sash made of his gray T-shirt. Yes, he was now bare-chested beneath that jacket. No, nobody knew why.

He picked up the rest of his guns: his Paulsen triple-barrel was on a sling over his back, beneath the ammo case. His SAA was in the lining of his Bomber jacket, and his SMERSH-5 was tied down on his leg. Aside from Jacob, Dutch or Vladimir (or Stefanie), he was probably the best-armed member of the group by now.

Vegas adict17:56, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis quickly scaned the room,Mostly weapons and ammo but there was somthings worth grabing.In the corner were 4 things that atrackted him the most.There was a full pre war med kit that he grabed and a medivil Warhammer as well as that there was an exotic looking railgun.Grabbing those weapons and the med kit he turned back to the group."Has anyone found any demo charges we could you's to kill herrnard or slow him down?"

Run4urLife!19:13, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob smiled. Domingo looked like he was ready to keel over under the weight of his newly acquired hardware, while Alexis had grabbed a Warhammer, presumably to replace his old sledgehammer. The thing looked too heavy for the little historian to swing, but then Jacob was calling Alexis little relative to himself. And at 6' 4" and 220lbs, everyone but Hennard was little compared to Jacob.

"Groovy" he muttered as he stepped towards a freshly-opened case and grabbed a pair of Okatana (they're like Katanas, but longer) from a shelf, and fixed their sheaths across his back. Then he drew the swords and flourished them a little. He wasn't planning on keeping them both after the battle. One of them would probably end up lodged in Hennard, but if he could keep just one of these masterpieces, he'd be happy.

Jacob slid the blades back into their scabbards after a few more flourishes, smiled to himself and began stocking up on HEIAP ammunition from the large crates in the corner marked EOD and Anti-Materiel. After years hunting for this powerful force of destruction, Jacob knew full-well where to find his trademark HEIAP bullets. And this being an airbase, and HEIAP ammunition being perfect for dogfighting aircraft, he was like a fat kid in a cake shop, grabbing every last box he could carry. Hennard would have to compete with these "dirty" bullets next time they met.

Jackal was just stocking up on ammunition. AP and HE ammunition for the SMG, and slugs and shredder ammunition for the shotgun parts of his main weapon. He snatched a few of Jacob's favourite HEIAP ammunition for his D'Eagles too. Then he switched out his rust-pocked combat knife for a deadly-looking Ka-Bar, and snatched up a Kukri to supplement his machete, SCM Sword and Dadao. He was now sporting enough melee weapons to withstand four disarmings. And considering Hennard was more than capable of hitting him hard enough to force him to drop his weapons, that was a very good thing.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:26, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Weston was grabbing Shotgun shells left and right, and had swithed out his Sawed Off shotgun for a Combat Shotgun. Hefting it a little, it felt just about right. Smiling, he looked around. Finding a small greeande laucher, he loaded it with some greandes and shoved the rest of them inside a small bag he found/ Slinging sthe said grenade laucher of his back, Weston coutnied to look around for better weapons


As for Jackson, he found some werid looking item that fit in your hand. Turning it on by mistake, he saw that it actually tarcked human heartbeats or something like that. Moving back to the group, Jacskon nearly tripped and fell over a box of ammo, in which he immentdialy recived a whap on the head from Sarge and some extra Clips from the said box.

"Hey, guys! I found something...i think we'll know when Hennards coming!"

Twentyfists19:30, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// Everyone BUT Ku wants Hennard to die. Ku wants him to survive to kill Dutch's kid. What's gonna happen?

Eugene twirled his rapier in his hand as he walked around the armory. Most weapons here didn't suit Eugene, and he felt that his weapons were better than most of the ones that he would use anyway. Then something caught Eugene's eye. A large, medieval dagger. A Rondel dagger. Eugene looked around cautiously, then scooped up the weapon and belted it to his side, next to his rapier's sheath. He turned and spotted a medieval longsword next, which he picked up as well. Today was his lucky day. Eugene whistled as he walked around the room, picking up ammunition. Then, it caught his eye. Eugene whistled a tone of appreciation as he saw a modern-day LeMat Revolver, chambered for .32 rounds as well as the standard 16-gauge shotshell, as well as improving upon the weapon's design. Eugene took out his old revolver and placed it on the table, then armed himself with the LeMat.


Hennard stalked through the tunnels. Ghouls avoided him by now. The scent was stronger. Prey closer. Hennard come to kill.

KuHB1aM19:33, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// I just want Hennard to hunt down Dutch's son, not kill him. I guess hennard can die; we just have to change the story again.
Run4urLife!19:38, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// If Hennard must die, Jacob can do it. On another note, when Dutchie kicks the bucket (or when Hennard kicks it for him) Dave could blame Jacob for it and come after him.
KuHB1aM19:40, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// I'd rather not have him be disemboweled so early in his life. I thought you said he was gonna be like a protege or something?
--Cerebralz19:42, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// Wait, when does the Crusade have dog fights? Wouldn't all of it have been used by now?

Jack was shifting through Crusade weaponry. Why the hell did they carry so much foreign shit? Did they really need to have katanas? I mean, I thought they were killing ghouls and super mutants to protect the American way or some bull shit! Getting some grenade launcher ammo, he soon turned his attention to a box marked S.A.N. What the hell was that? Grabbing the near by crow bar, he opened the box. And found Swiss army knives. A large box filled with Crusade swiss army knives. He was really doubting the Crusades mentality here. Sighing he shifted threw the box, and found a Paulsen triple barrel, along with several other things that made stuff went boom. They hid HEIAP rounds in here, specifically 5.56 rounds. He got a paulsen triple barrel too. "Think it would make that big a difference to saw this thing off?"

KuHB1aM19:50, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// Dog fights? Anyhow, all of this stuff we're finding is scattered around several large wrecked rooms. The majority of the stuff has been cleared out, but with reduced numbers, not everything was taken. Going offline for a little, will be on again later.
Solbur19:55, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Naw," Strauss said to Jack as he went through the process of arming himself, "Probably not. It's only a stock, right? Might wanna be careful with the barrels, though." He advised while he filled his bag and whatever holster or holder his harness had with munitions. So far, he'd swiped not one, but two SCM Officer Swords, both of slightly different designs. He wasn't planning to use them both at once - that'd be suicidal, Strauss was strictly right-handed - but for some reason, two felt good. He'd always have a spare, at least. And a big fucking hammer was the slightest bit unwieldly in close quarters, he'd came to learn over the years. He swiped as many .357 HE and AP rounds as he could, discarding his standard Desert Eagle ammunition to make room, and also what looked like a modified flare gun. Cradling it in his hand, he picked up a nearby 40mm grenade and smiled. He stocked up on as many of those as he could carry, as well. To round it off, he also retrieved a shit-load of Microfusion Cells. It was a shame he hadn't brought Worthington, otherwise he could have walked out with a lot more.

Run4urLife!19:58, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// The Crusade are an airborne regiment. It stands to reason that they might want to be able to handle air-to-air combat.
Rhinosasauras20:40, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Boythorn had just been following the group, quietly listening to what they said and watching them. He heard talk about something called Hennard and super soldiers and guns called George. All of it suggested to him that he had passed out, that he was dreaming, but the noises felt real, the smells, the gun he was fumbling with as he walked. Boythorn was undecided, as to what was happening so he just nodded at the right times and just tried to blend in. When they got to the amoury he watched all off them chasing after various ammo and weapons, they were like Brahmin gorging themselves on grass. But when in Rome he thought to himself stuffing his pockets and bags with various types of grenades.

KuHB1aM22:22, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Sitting down on a crate, Dutch downed some whiskey, emptying it and chucking the bottle flask away. Rubbing his forehead, he close his eyes for a minute as he ran his hands through his hair. Something didn't feel right. Sure, Dutch had been through worse fights, but something about Hennard showing up down here was giving him the feeling it would be his last. Dutch eyed the Fat Man that Roland had given him. The mini-nukes would kill everyone down here, but maybe he could just shove the thing full of frags and light up Hennard that way. Still brainstorming, Dutch pulled out a picture of his de facto son and him sparring. The picture depicted Dutch having Dave in a choke-hold, completely immobile. Still, it was a nice thought from three years ago. "Going soft on me, Dutch?" Jacob asked, twirling a pistol in his hand. Quickly putting the picture away, Dutch felt a little embarassed. No class mate would be caught dead thinking of family. Combat was his first priority.

Run4urLife!22:51, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob pulled out a picture as he sat down next to Holmes. He hadn't been able to pluck up the courage to look at that in eleven years. He swallowed hard as he looked at the faces of a clean-shaven, younger version of himself, holding a little boy, standing next to a blond-haired woman holding a tiny baby.

"My wife, my son and my daughter." Jacob said. For the first time, he didn't hide his shaking hands.

"Bobbie, my son, just starting to walk. Sara, my daughter. Happiest baby you ever saw. Jenna, my wife. Most beautiful girl in the world." Jacob said, swallowing again. "Fed to Talon Company dogs. I haven't been able to look at this picture for eleven years."

Jacob looked into the middle distance. He thought back to the day he came staggering back to the smoking ruin of his house. The smell. He would never forget that smell. Not until his dying day. Those bastards had paid with their lives. Every last one of them. But that hadn't been enough. Killing had never been enough. He had to destroy them, and everything like them. It had gone beyond desire. It had become animal compulsion. What had he become? What had happened to the smiling man in the photo.

"I died with them that day." Jacob said.

KuHB1aM23:02, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"We weren't created to have hearts, Jake." Dutch said, pulling the picture back out and staring at it. He looked over to Jacob. "I want you to get this fancy sword to my son if I get offed at some course during the day, ok?" Dutch said, pulling the sword and sheath from his belt and handing it to Jacob. "Just in case. I told that boy I'd give it to him when I got back. I wonder when he'll figure out he'll have to find me." Dutch said, joking somberly. The sword was a symbol to him and Dave. It was like a family heirloom of sorts. Jacob was about to hand it back to him, but Dutch stopped him with his hand. "Just in case. I'll take it back after the battle." Dutch said. He stared at the picture again. "My son and yours could have been good friends. Then again, we were enemies at the time." Dutch said, looking over to Jacob's boy and wife. "She's pretty, eh?" Dutch said, trying to lighten the air. "My boy is adopted. I trained him for seventeen years as an enemy, not a father. Hell, I didn't even give him advice on women." Dutch said, catching a raised eyebrow from Stefanie.

Run4urLife!23:13, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Never got a shot at training mine. They were murdered not too long after a workmate took this picture on Christmas day." Jacob said. "Raikov tried so hard to make us better. Physically, we are. But mind and heart, we're all too human. Corrupt, afraid, heartbroken. Everything a man can suffer, we can. But if we suffer it, we can act on it and nothing can stop us. Thats why Raikov and the Senate want me dead."

Jacob frowned as he contemplated the profundity of existence. It was killing him to talk about his family now. He wanted to scream, cry, tear this room apart. But he couldn't. He'd lost something along the way. Somewhere, he had lost what made him act the vigilante. He had lost what drove him, and he had gone on killing. Without true purpose. He murdered countless people for doing that. He couldn't remember names, but he saw the faces all the time. But he had never cared. He was what he hated most.

Jackal watched the Super Soldiers having a heart to heart. It seemed odd. Seeing those two WMDs talking about their families. Jacob looked like he was feeling emotions he didn't know how to feel. Jackal began to worry that Jacob might kill them all. Or explode. Which would probably kill them all.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:15, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Weston looked over towards the two warrior Weapons, who had saddened looks on there faces.Shuffling over, he pulled up another crate and set with them, forming something like a triangle.

"So, whats bothering you two? Sound like you are going to cry".

Weston set his Combat Shotgun across his lap, barrel towards the door. Lighting a Cigarrette, he tok a few puffs before putting it away.

Radiation King23:17, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"I didn't know you had a family." Roland strode over to the two Warrior Weapons. His normally calm face was half-obscured by a power armor helmet that wasn't completely pulled over him, and he was decked out in power armor over most of his clothes (his duster and combat armor breastplate were discarded in a locked crate somewhere nearby). He was decked out with a modified combat harness that held numerous explosives and holsters, which contained his SCM .357 Auto, his machete and hatchet, four Grease Gun magazines and various pouches of ammunition that were strung up around his waist. He clutched his grease gun in his right hand. He eased himself into a sitting position, forcing the helmet down the rest of the way. "But I guess when you come from a Vault and you've been struggling on subsistence for the last few years, that thing kind of gets tossed to the wayside, eh?"

He produced a small picture from one of the pockets on his belt. It showed a party of assorted wastelanders standing in front of the Grey Lady somewhere on the Washington coast. "That's my family." He pointed out one half of the group. "They're from Mamie, the ship I grew up on. The one with the big white hair-do? That's Doc Loew, my foster father. In front of him is my... Well, I guess you could call her a fiancee. We all got something to live for, y'know?" He placed the picture back in his pocket.

"Well, guess we better get moving." He turned away from Jacob and Dutch and shouted, "Domingo?"

After a few moments, a strained "Si" echoed from across the room. Domingo lumbered out, wearing combat armor and a combat helmet, over which was his leather jacket, with the Minigun still strapped hopelessly to his back. "There's just no getting that thing off you."

"I must be ready if we are to fight that monstruo, camarada." Domingo mused. "Besides, I'm almost used to luging this thing around."

KuHB1aM23:30, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// Gonna have Dave enter the fray as Dutch gets killed

Dutch turned towards Jacob. "Just between you me; I think it will be the case with that sword. Keep it somewhere safe until after the fight, ok?" Dutch said, standing up. Slamming his hand on the wall, he called for the group. "Rise and shine, everybody! Play time is over!" Dutch shouted. The remainder of the group stopped their scrounging and gathered around Dutch. "I assume everyone in here has gathered up enough ammunition and weapons to each take down a small army. By the end of the day, all of that ammo will be gone and those weapons will be trash. Anyhow, we got two options. We can distract the thing while me and Jake attack it in close combat, immobilize it, and kill it, or we can use heavy ordnance. However, unfortunately I think it will be option numero uno. No way in hell are we gonna use frags and missiles to kill it in a confined space." Dutch said. He looked up at the ceiling, which was at least fifteen feet high. The room and it's surrounding rooms were also fairly wide. Maybe they could use frags, but only frags. "He'll be here soon. Pick a spot, coordinate fire, and don't shoot me or Jake. We'll be right up next to thing." Dutch said. "Question?"

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:36, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"How do i get out of th-"

Jackson was satying before being slicned by Kane. Turing on his heartbeat sensor, he flidded with it. Thats when the lights started to flicker before being turn off complety. Drawing his Assualt rifle, Jackson swilved around a bit, swearching for Hennard, not seeing it, he slowly dfropped his Assualt rifle to about waist length.

"He cut the power!" Shouted Sarge.

"How can he cut the power! He's a goddamn animal!" cried Jackson.

Turning on his Flashlight, Jackson looked around. So far, the beast was'nt in here. Good. Looking back at the sensor, Jackson looked for anuything that did'nt look like a human, or at least semi-normal human, heartbeat.

"O-k-k-k Shades...lead on."

--Cerebralz23:37, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

Jack got up, and grabbed the heavy machine gun next to him. Filled with HEIAP rounds. Walking over, he grabbed a crate and started dragging it to a position. Walking back, he got two suits of power armor and put them in the crate. Probably wouldn't stop the the damn mini gun of the monster, but what ever. Lying down, he propped the machine gun up against the box. Waiting for that thing to come. "Couldn't we just get the hell out of here? I assume level eight is where they stored the vertibirds. Probably could use missile launchers down there".

Run4urLife!23:40, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Is it a paying job this time?" Jackal joked. Gallows humour had always been a speciality of his.

"Whatever you have on you that survives the battle." Jacob said flatly. He stood up, fixing Dutch's katana to his back, safest place he could think of. Dutch had an adopted son. And if Dutch died, he'd need to find him and give him this damn sword. Dutch couldn't die. Not without Hennard dying too. Jacob snarled at the thought of Hennard standing over his friends. Friends. First time he'd used that word in relation to anyone but the Outcasts and Roland. For a time, that had almost been taboo to him. Friends complicated things. It was irrational. But so was killing.

"When I die, I want no part in heaven, I wouldn't do heaven's work well." Jacob said.

"Let Hell follow with us then." Jackal said, quoting the Rapture.

"Cry havoc and let loose the dogs of war." Jacob said, quoting Caesar. He drew Mother's Woe and took up position next to the door.


Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:44, 1 June 2009 (UTC) 

"To be or not to be!"

Said Weston, exticdely. He was behind several crates arragned into a Battlement type look. With everyone looking at him, Weston just shurgged.

"Well, since we were all quoting stuff, i thought i might throw that on in..."

Focusing his attention back on the door, he could feel erveryones stares looking at him. He always had a kncak for worming himself into situations like this. At least he liked most of te people here.

Cerebralz23:50, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// I read on the warrior weapon page that charged magnectic fields give them migrains. Would that work on Hennard?

"Morituri te salutamus" Jack muttered, before turning his guns safety off. Jackson looked over. The whole group looked at him, with a questioning look on their faces. "It means for those who are about to die, we salute you."

Run4urLife!23:52, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// No. He doesn't have the same proportion of Iron in his blood
Radiation King23:58, 1 June 2009 (UTC)}Maybe not, considering he's basically everything the Enclave had floating in the shallow end of the gene pool at that time wrapped into one fucking massive package 

"Let's kill 'em all and let whatever deity there may be left sort them out." Roalnd crouched behind a bullet-proof gun cabinet he had stacked on the door opposite Jacob. He levelled his Grease Gun on the doorway and waited. Domingo stood nearby, whispering something incoherent in Spanish as he spun the chaingun he was carrying to life.

KuHB1aM23:59, 1 June 2009 (UTC)// Lol Weston, another Aliens reference?Yo Twenty, where are you

A trench knife in his hand, Dutch hid behind some crates next to the other only entrance in the armory. Hennard was gonna get a fist-full can of whup-ass when he came inside. The initial hailstorm would be so intense that he would probably drop to one knee. Or maybe not. Maybe he would take the punishment, not drop down as Dutch hoped, discover Dutch, rip him apart limb from limb, and snap his body in half and use it as a club. The prospect was one he was fond of. However, like every living thing, Hennard drew blood. Where there was blood, there were arteries. And he could cut those open like a tin can. Still, Dutch knew the chances were slim. He was in a bad enough condition as it was. Several cracked and bruised ribs, numerous cuts and gashes, and his body was exhausted. The odds weren't looking too great right now.


Dave Holmes crested the hill, his M24 in hand. "Let's see what we got here." Dave said. It had been almost a three week's hike here from that base north of Richmond. Note to self: don't follow dad on suicide mission. To think he had been foolish enough to follow his dad into the Capitol Wastes. He was such an idiot. And to think that he had dropped right into a giant battle between two massive legions of death and destruction, too. What was that sound? Turning around, Dave's eyes widened underneath his shades and he scrambled on his back as a radscorp passed by, this one rarely passive. It turned towards him, crawling with malicious intent. "Aw fuck! It's a creepy crawly!" Dave said, his mouth moving in horror. Not realizing he had moved over the hill's edge, and began rolling on his back down the hill, tumbling as he tried to keep a grasp on the M24. Slamming into something hard and dull, Dave rubbed his head, grabbing the M24 off to the side. Then he realized what he had hit. A fucking tank? Fixing his shades, Dave slew the rifle over his back, climbing to the top and hopping inside. "Cool." Dave said, grinning. "What's all this junk?" Dave said, looking at stuff he mistook for junk. Tossing out gun ammunition and maintenance tools with no regard, Dave yawned, climbing out of the tank and dropping to the ground. "Piece of worthless shit." Dave said, kicking the tank on the side of it's hull and immediately regretting it. "Ooow!" Dave said, hobbling and turning to a collapsed entrance in a rock face. A broken robot with torn apart legs and chassy lay at the front, along with a lot of blood and spent 5mm ammunition. Interested, Dutch drew his USP, clicking off the safety, and moved towards the dark entrance, noting the many dead ferals lying in the dark.

Radiation King00:24, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Domingo's tank senses are tingling.

Domingo loked out the door as if his eyes could pierce the darkness. He couldn't see Hennard, but he could feel in his bones that the monster was coming and fast. And yet...

"I'm sure someone's up there fucking with my tank." Domingo said out loud, mostly to himself. The room was briefly filled with airless laughter as the merchant's silent observation fell on deaf ears. And yet he just knew that someone was up there right now. However, it would probably be best to just ignore it for now. There was, after all, a battle about to take place.

--Cerebralz01:11, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Going to post for Bren as Sasuke. He probably wouldn't mind. I think he forgot about him or something

Watching the man kick the tank, and walk into the tunnels, the ninja followed. Holding onto a nail bomb connected to a dagger, he waited a few minutes before entering again. Activating his recon suit, with the specially enabled stealth suit inside of it. Those scavenger bastards were quite crafty. He threw the knife, it missing only by an inch, embedding itself into the wall. Oh well, the nail bomb would still kill the man. It exploded, sending shrapnel everywhere, and nearly all of it embedded below the head. This guy was a lucky bastard alright. Walking over, he stared at the man, lying there. Still alive alright, and Sasuke really didn't care.

KuHB1aM01:26, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Until Hennard comes, I'm gonna post as Dave to get him closer to the group

Dave rolled to the side as an explosion took place to his right. Lying on his back. Dave breathed heavy as he flicked off the shadowy figure near the cave entrance. "What the fuck is wrong with you, you pompous fuck!" Dave said, gripping his ripped up jacket back, and rubbing it as he pulled his USP from his holster and fired it twice, one of the rounds hitting the shimmering figure and causing it's stealth properties to disable and the figure to drop to one knee, rubbing it's leg. "You bloody asshole!" Dave said, staggering as he got up, leaning against a wall and rubbing his back. "You just tore up my dad's jacket, you stealthy dipshit!" Dutch said, using all manners of expletives to describe his anger. Holstering his USP, Dutch took a breather, drank some of his father's whiskey, and proceeded to bandage his backside.

--Cerebralz01:29, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Odd, few could react that well after the blast. "I am deeply sorry, I confused you for some one from earlier that attacked me and my group of friends. If you would allow me to give you aid, I would help you get through this place safely. I am here to scout out the place, and plant explosives." Putting his hands up, dropped his last three nail bombs to the ground.

Twentyfists01:54, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Now, fine fellows, let's get this done," Eugene said, a tinge of nervousness in his voice. He had never fought a creature like Hennard before, and he was woefully unarmed in proportion to the other fighters. Oh well.


Hennard saw Holmes. Finally. The monster had tracked them, and had flanked them slightly in the darkness of tunnels and rooms. Now, it was time for Holmes to get what was coming to him. He stood up slowly, pulled off George, and began to whirl the barrels. George was starting up.

Suddenly, Eugene turned. He'd heard the noise. He pulled out his .50 and began firing in the direction of the noise. In a sudden break of character and manners, the ghoul yelled, "Let's teach the ugly fucker a lesson!"

Hennard screamed. It's voice wasn't the normal high-volume growl. Instead, it was all of the creature's hatred, pain, and fury all squeezed into one syllable. "HOLMES!" Hennard yelled. Immediately, George began spitting out 5mm rounds, chewing up the floor, walls, ceiling, and contents of the armory. It was payback time.

Fireman0504

With a chorus of very profane, but very illegible words, Stefanie rolled behind a concrete wall corner, just before 5mm rounds chipped and broke the concrete around her. She flattened herself against the wall as the rest of the group either started firing back or broke for cover. Tall, dark, and ugly had caught up with them and now it was fight or die. Stefanie had no intention of dying. Too bad she'd left her .44 at ome. It's sure come in handy here. She looked around for something frantically to shoot, throw, or kick at the giant with the minigun. She grabbed a fire extinguisher off the wall, holding it just around the corner with her foot, she smashed the end off. The CO2 inside made it into kind of a rocket and Stefanie couldn't help but laugh a little as the rocket found it's way directly into Hennard's crotch, impacting with a heavy thud. The whole battle seemed to pause as Hennard doubled up.

Run4urLife!10:09, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Moving as if in slow motion, Jacob took off towards Hennard, tossing Stefaniea .44 Revolver ass he went. Hennard was doubled over after Stefanie's stunt with the bottle rocket, and now was as good a time as any to begin the close-range onslaught Jacob tossed his duster and Mother's Woe to Jackal, who caught them quite admirably, folding the duster over one arm in mid-air and catching Mother's Woe by the stock. Rather than get pissed off at being treated like a butler, Jackal stared on as Hennard began to straighten up. Was Jacob going to close the distance in time?

Yes. Jacob had drawn both katanas, and was now down to his civvies, home-made combat boots and gauntlets and Pre-War tactical vest. Like combat armor with smaller shoulder pads. He whirled the weapons in his grip, simultaneously forming a killing field around him with a five-foot radius and a shielding screen of steel between himself and Hennard as the razor-sharp blades whipped around. Jackal couldn't help but stare as Jacob moved the swords around as fast as a lesser man might move an empty hand. Hennard was hard-pressed to block the attacks with George's barrel as Vaughton continued his onslaught. Hennard yowled as a blade gashed across his right forearm, and again as the other blade sliced across his left bicep. He jumped back, flinging George at Jacob, who kicked the massive minigun out of the air without breaking stride. Hennard had drawn Belton by the time Jacob had reached him. As Hennard began swinging, Jacob's storm of blades rapidly became a desperate defensive shield as he backtracked across the room to avoid being pulped by that massive hammer.

Radiation King11:29, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Roland stood as Jacob's onslaught turned into a defensive barrier. He immediately looked over at Hennard, who was flailing his arms about wildly as he moved Belton like a pro fencer. Roland imediately placed his grease gun religiously on the side of the gun cabinet. "If I don't make it back from this," The merchant shouted to Domingo, who was busy attempting to find a line of fire on Hennard with his .30, "Take this gun back to the Gray Lady and leave it with my crew."

And then off he went, sprinting as fast as a charging rhino with about half the force, drawing his machete and hatchet as he went. He sprinted right up next to Jacob and embedded his hatchet- the very same one he had found on the long-dead man in Austin- in the back of Hennard's right hand, forcing his grip to loosen on Belton. He swung the machete, which merely bounced off the beast's hardened bicep.

Run4urLife!11:47, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Gunfire and muzzle flashes casting lunatic shadows. Battlecries, screams of terror. The pounding of Jacob's own heart, blood and adrenaline pumping through his veins like a flood. The smell of blood, that sickly coppery scent. The stench of death. Roland by his side. Fighting an indominable, unrelenting, utterly unstoppable foe. Working off the back foot. Fighting for survival. Not victory, merely for one more breath. Just like Fairfax. Jacob hacked and slashed, trying to keep Hennard at bay. Then Roland lashed out at the leviathan creature. Hennard's grip on Belton loosened. Jacob took up the offensive again, forcing Hennard backwards.

Jacob flashed back to standing among the Outcasts. Blood all over the trenches. Dead bodies everywhere. This time, it had been Hennard killing all in his path. Hennard answered Jacob's onslaught with a return strike from Belton. The massive sledge swept through the air, catching Jacob off-guard. It was only the haft that hit him, but it still hit like a freight train. Jacob jumped to his feet, savagely tearing his stomach muscles as he lunged upwards. Great, one more injury on top of the busted sternum. And the cracked ribs, Jacob realised as he went to stretch his right arm.

Fireman0504

Stefanie ran from cover to join her friends. Jacob and Roland were fighting a whirling melee with the man-beast Hennard and Stefanie knew that this was her type of fight. Even if by giving up her own life to an opponent who outclasses even her exraordinary martial prowess, she could save her friends, she was prepared to do it. These people treated her as one of thier own. They cared for her and looked out for her more than anyone else had since her parents thirteen years ago. They were the closest thing Stefanie McRae had to family in this harsh, unforgiving wasteland.

Stefanie ducked under a swing from Belton, savagely landing a blow to Hennard's midsection with her Power Fist. A downward swing from Hennard's fist floored her, but she was able to roll away with minimal damage. Roll with the punch, use it's momentum with your own and the force will be lessened. That was a trick taught to her by Cell fighter Barry "The Axe" Masters. She'd learned many tips, tricks, and tweaks fighting in the Cell, and all over Zanadu, and she'd need them all here if she wanted to survive, let alone prevail. She rose into a wrestler's stance as the three warriors circled Hennard, who seemed still to be focused mainly on Jacob and Dutchie.

KuHB1aM12:39, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Dutch quickly rolled twice, trying to keep Hennard guessing as he took time to turn with his massive mini-gun. All of that gunfire doing nothing. Instead of rolling a second time, Dutch dove closer to Hennard, two frag grenades in his one hand. It wasn't his intent to defeat Hennard with a single, death-defying blow, but to neutralize him slowly. Trench Knife in the other hand, he latched onto Hennard's leg, driving the knife as hard he could into Hennard's skin to draw blood, who promptly dropped his mini-gun to pull Dutch into the air. Just what I was hoping for. Acting like he was trying to squirm away from Hennard's grasp, Dutch acted calm as Hennard brought Dutch close to his face in the air, breathing with spit and slober in his mouth. "You ugly mother fucker." Dutch said, and shoved the two grenade inside Hennard's mouth, who threw Dutch aside with such force that it nearly knocked him unconscious as he was smashed through three separate stacks of titanium crates. Blood flowed freely from his mouth. Hennard on the other hand had easily pulled the grenade from his mouth as it exploded in it's face. Shrapnel embedded itself in his skin, tearing up his face as he bellowed in anger. "HOLMES!!!" It roared, picking it's massive mini-gun at the barrel and smashed aside Jacob, who failed stop him with his pair of okatanas. "HOLMES!!!" It shouted again, as it pushed itself through the crates with it's massive mini-gun. Dutch was hardly able to move after such a forceful hit. Drawing both M1911s in his hands, he opened up on Hennard's face. "Come here you son of a bitch!" Dutch shouted half-heartedly, still on his back and a mere three feet away from Hennard.


"Yeah, I noticed the intent to cause harmful injury, asshole." Dave said, having finished up bandaging his back. Deeper in the caverns, he noticed another massive hole in the ground, where it dropped through several metal floors into what looked like an interrogation room. Taking several minutes to get to it, considering he wouldn't be sprinting any time soon, something told him to not drop down and to instead head for the ventilation shaft at the far end of the caverns. However, common sense told Dave he didn't want to fight ferals right now. "You coming, sonny?" Dave said with a typical twenty-year old cockiness. The ninja-like figure didn't respond immediately, but rather simply just followed him. "You got a name?" Dave said, dropping down level by level through the massive hole, noting the odd amount of corpses and 5mm casings.

Rhinosasaurus15:54, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Boythorn shivered at the sight of the massive creature, he followed his insticnt and balled up in a corner. It was then that he realised that it was all real, he knew he wouldn't dream up someting as fucked up as the beast that his rescuers were fighting. It also dawned on him that is that thing didn't die he would, painfully, the realiziation washed over him like icy water. He couldn't run because he had no idea where he was, so he have to fight. He sat for a minute trying to make himself stand up but he couldn't help but picture a million diiferent ways that the thing would kill him. "But if that thing dies then that won't happen." He said aloud, bringing a few curious looks in his direction. He got on his knee's and crawled out of the doorway to a spot where he could get a clear shot on Hennard but was far enough away that the beast took no notice of him. He took a deep breath and felt a certain calm, he was more than likely going to die here and there was no fighting it. The certainy of the situation steadied his arm, he aimed his telsa pistol set to kill and then fired three shots before sliding the pistol up to the man who had used it so skillfully before, was Jacob his name he thought while yelling the same thing.

//--TehK16:01, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Riley was too busy listening to its thoughts to even bother aiming his Alien Rifle at the thing. "HOLMES HOLMES HOLMES HOLMES HOLMES HOLMES! What the fuck is that all he thinks about or something..?? HOLMES!" Riley said, he was getting very annoyed at it, "Lets give it a sunbath!" Riley said, and pulled the trigger on his Alien Rifle. "Oh right.. Solar Powered." he said, and instead took out his Tetra-Laser and fired a few times, but the thing was STILL trying to kill Holmes. "I wonder if it likes Pork n' Beans," Riley said, and he signaled for Cat to stay behind him as he threw a can of Pork n' Beans past the thing. "Why didn't you use that thing on Cat before! Woulda saved me some clean clothes!!" Strauss remarked.

Solbur16:10, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss muttered something incoherently about damn cats as he aimed his new Grenade Pistol and fired at Hennard from a distance. The grenade landed slightly clear of it, and he knew any shrapnel would only graze the bastard. Fuck. He scooped up his Laser Rifle, setting on the max, from the crate (full of armour, conviniently) he was taking cover behind and fired at Hennard, hitting him square in the chest. His hair was singed and he gave a grunt of pain, and that was the only acknowledgement Strauss got. "Why the fuck won't this thing die?!" Strauss yelled as he dropped to a sitting position behind the crate, pressing his back against it. He pushed it further towards Hennard as he shuffled along the ground whilst reloading his Grenade Pistol for another, closer-ranged shot.

KuHB1aM16:16, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// NO!!! NOT CAT!!! And Krush, you didn't have to sacrifice him. Dutch is going to die anyway.
//--TehK16:18, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Fine, lol.
Vegas adict17:07, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Alexis fired the railgun at herrnard the round punched the beast in the leg but it shruged it off."FUCKING DIE ASEHOLE!!!". He moved closer to the monster hammer in his left hand and his new laser pistol in the other.Dutch was fighting the damm monster in combat and it wasn't looking good.Alexis scaned the monster in his mind."Someone aim for the damm things eyes!!"

Run4urLife!17:20, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Make longer posts Vegas

Jacob slashed across Hennard's back with his Okatanas, creating a deep X-shaped set of cuts across the behemoth's shoulders. Hennard roared and wheeled on him. Hennard brought Belton cartwheeling upwards, and Jacob barely got a blade between himself and the hammer on time. The blade shattered on contact with Belton. Not good. Jacob thought as the haft of the hammer came streaking towards him again. Jacob jumped, landing and balancing on Beltons haft and head for a second. Pretty nifty, huh? Jacob thought, just before Hennard swung Belton upwards, with Jacob still on top and slammed the Warrior Weapon into the ceiling. Jacob crashed to the ground, landing in an awkward heap on top of a pile of broken crate material. Jacob saw Boythorn's gun lying there.

With a surge of energy, Jacob dived across the space between himself and the pistol. He skidded across the smooth steel floor as he snatched up the pistol and drew a bead on Hennard, who was between two minds whether to go back to killing Dutch, or to go after Jacob and risk the blind man recovering, or worse, escaping. His decision was made for him as Jacob fired the pistol, waited for it to ready itself again, and fired it a second time. Jacob tossed it back to Boythorn as Hennard closed the distance, and he engaged the beast in melee once more. Okatana met Super sledge as Jacob used his remaining sword two-handed, the sound of the duel ringing through the surrounding hallways, punctuated by Hennard's roars and Jacob's own bellows.

Vegas adict17:21, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// yesh bosh

Fireman0504

Stefanie ran back into the melle. Maybe she could be enough of a disraction to give Jacob a clear advantage. She watched as Hennard swung with Belton, for a brief second knocking Jacob's guard aside, through sheer power. He would've landed a critical, if not fatal blow if Stefanie hadn't lunged. She hopped up on Hennard's back, gripping the sides of his head with her thighs. She pounded away with her Power Fist until a swatting backhand blow knocked her backwards. Relentlessly she hung on with her thighs, uscatching her bearings for a second before realizing Jacob was attacking again and using her abdominal muscles to pull herself back upright. Pounding again she ducked another swat as Hennard was now alternating attacks between Stefanie and Jacob.

Stefanie hung backwards again, rolling down and to the side to avoid a kick from Hennard that would've sent her through a wall. She looked up to see Jacob regaining some kind of advantage and she circled around to Hennard's side, gauging her next move.

Run4urLife!17:52, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// If Dutch is gonna die, we kinda need KuH and Twentyfists for this, don't we?
KuHB1aM18:11, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Yeah, let Hennard manhandle us for now. Once Dutch is dead and Dave appears, you guys go berserk and whup his ass for me, ok? Time for final sacrifice

Dutch looked on in horror as Hennard, annoyed with Stefanie and Jackson, picked up George, and much like his encounter with Dutch, used it as a club. No way in hell would either of them survive a direct swing from that thing. Dutch had barely survived the impact once, but they certainly wouldn't. As Hennard moved to swing, Dutch launched himself again, taking a pistol and firing it point blank into his back to prevent him from moving for either Jacob, Jackson or Stefanie. Hennard bellowed in pain, grabbing at Dutch, seizing him by the head and swinging him like a ball and smashing him into the ground repeatedly. Confident that he would finish off Dutch, Hennard threw him aside through several more titanium crates. This time, Dutch wasn't getting up. He could barely maintain consciousness and coherent hand-eye coordination. His left arm and leg were pinned in place by a fallen missile launcher and several other large weapons. Hennard picked up his mini-gun again, hefting it like a baseball bat.


Dave slammed downwards, noting the big number "17" on the wall. Sasuke followed him, ever attentive. Sounds of gunfire and shouting filled the air on the other side of the level. He thought he heard the name Dutch, but he couldn't be sure. Still, if Dutch was anywhere, this was the place. His dad was always a source of gun-fire or a recipient. His USP in hand, Dave started jogging around the corridor for several minutes, being careful to watch out for broken bulkheads and blast-doors. The entire place looked like a tornado had gone through it. "HOLMES!!!" Something roared. Instinctively searching for a target, Dave realized there was no one in sight. That's gotta be Dad. Holstering his USP, Dave eagerly, albeit misguidedly, ran off in the direction of the voice.

Twentyfists18:23, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Delete this post if Dutch isn't going to die yet.

Kill. Kill. Kill. Kill. The word formed a steady beat of a hammer in Hennard's head, giving him a rhythm and cadence. The creature knew it had the hated enemy now, and it could press its advantage. Hennard moved towards Dutch, firing George to cover its advance. Once it was upon Dutch, Hennard could finally kill. The creature dropped the minigun and punched Dutch in the chest. Then, it bent down and picked the hapless Warrior weapon up by the throat. Vaughton was already advacing...KILL.

The creature wrapped its massive muscled arms around the warrior weapons and began squeezing and flexing its muscles. It applied pressure, and Dutch's vertebrae cracked audibly as Hennard's bear hug crushed him. Dutch tried to fight, but every time he tried to escape, Hennard pushed harder, yelling, "FATHER PROUD! PROUD OF HENNARD! HENNARD KILL!" The warrior weapon had one last mighty howl, and then the hug broke his spine. With a roar of triumph, Hennard unsheathed his claws and cut deep rents across the deceased Warrior Weapon's spine. Hennard had killed. Now, to kill more. Kill. Kill. Kill.

KuHB1aM18:24, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Well, I might have wanted a few last words...
Twentyfists18:27, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// You're free to chuck them in...
KuHB1aM18:38, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Nah, it's fine. Dave will appear though. Actually, right now. Don't target him too fast, ok?

Dave had just turned the corner when he spotted a massive beast bear-hugging and killing someone in his grip, with gun-fire trying to bring him down. The figure in the beast's grasp cocked his head sideways just long enough to mouth something before he was squeezed to death, his limp body thrown aside like some lifeless puppet. Then Dave recognized him. The shades and jacket were unmistakable. Dad. "Dad!" Dave shouted, and began to rush to his side when the massive beast turned towards him. "HOLMES OFFSPRING! OFFSPRING DIE!!!" It bellowed, angry and very pissed off. Dave didn't even have time to mourn as he got to his father's side. Dutch was losing too much blood, and he wasn't even conscious. Dave's eyes were starting to give up tracks of tears through his grimy face, but he didn't have time. Slinging Dutch over his shoulder, Dave bolted for a stack of crates as Hennard had to turn his attention to another person. Cradling his father's head in his lap, Dave fought to hold back tears, as his father's blood ran through both of their jackets.

//--TehK18:42, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// I suggest somebody kill Hennard using all 3 special weapons we have (the 2 alien rifles, and the tesla pistol) at once. I give permission to use my character for that. And Dutch is dead now so pick up his rifle. EDIT: Wait, lol, my rifle wont work down here cus its solar powered.
//--TehK18:58, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Grr! Somebody take Dutchs Alien Rifle already! I suggest Dave take it.


Brengarrett19:14, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

(no one informed me that sasuke is in the story, guess Itake voer as him)

Sasuke was freaked out, Sbnakes he coudl take, Deathclaws no problems, but this "thing" was a demon that had to be stoped, no matter what fear he hed "Dave RUN!" Sasuke shouted as he saw the beast looking at him, vbut then it saw Sasuke (please note Sasuke won't kill him, but he will at least wound him) "GOULY GET SMASHED " It shouted at Sasuke and it began to run to him "God damn it" He muttered in Japanese and he drew a Throwing knife with a Frag tied to thehandled "See ya in hell" He shouted as he pulled the pin and threw it into Hennarsds Eleft eye, the Explosion englufed hsi head and he cried in pain, but it didn't kill him, Sasuke may have blinded him or at least pisssed him off, but Sasuke Grabbed Daves hand "Kid scome on, we have torun" He said trying hard to lift Dutch onto his shoulder, He saw Dutch die liek a man, he deserves to be remmebered

//--TehK19:16, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// No bren, don't take the Alien Rifle. We need it to kill Hennard! Either leave it here, or just leave Dave here with it.
Solbur19:17, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Firstly, I don't think Sasuke is getting the Alien Rifle. Oh no. Secondly, when was Sasuke in the story? o_O And thirdly, how is being hugged tightly by a tall, muscular, hairy man a manly way to die?
//--TehK19:21, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Nice. And he was here since Dave joined.


Vegas adict19:23, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Sasuke was with dave i think

"Fuck yes!"alexis yelled "ninga ghoul's rock!".Alexis raised his pistol again and carefully using herrnards blindnes to his advantage shot thr mutant once in the other eye."Jacob!!,Jack someone hit the damm thing now its blind!".Turning alexis saw the broken body of dutch there would be time to morn later but for now they had to kill the mutant.Grabing his med kit alexis ran back away from the mutant.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster19:30, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Weston dropped the drum clip for the Combat shotgun. Bringing up nother one, he slammed it home before pulling back the revicer. Aiming for Hennard, he fired. Buckshot flew through the air and hit the beast in the back. Not even resgrting it, the beast..Hennard was it's name., went on to casuing more pain to everybody near him. Thats when a idea went into Westons head. Shuffling over to where it said "Heavy weapons" Weston grabbed a SCM .30 Cal. Setting it up the fastest he could and loading it, he whistled rather loudly. Hennard turned its head to Weston, who had stolen one of Domingos cigars and now had it in his mouth. Pulling back the reciver for the gun, he shouted.

"Hey, fucker! Suck on this!"

Weston opened fire mon the BFMTFH, or, Big Fucking Muntant Thing from Hell. Roaring in pain, Hennard still went upon his business,. Weston was bound to be a target now. But, who knows! Maybe Hennard would fall at his feet.

Radiation King19:36, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Roland looked over at the dead Dutch, noting Hennard was now coated in the Warrior Weapon's blood. Something napped inside the little Bostonian's head at that moment, and three years of Institute assassin training flooded back into his mind. Although his face was racked in turmoil from the sudden onslaught of killing techniques, he calmed himself relatively and sprinted at Hennard. Ignoring the pain in his chest and head, Roland almost doubled in speed, sprinting along at a merry 50-ish miles per hour. What may have been some sort of animal cry burbled out of the merchant's throat as he slammed head-on into Hennard.The beast, blind, off balance and caught by surprised, was thrown flat on its side. Roland immediately went for his machete and started swinging, using the boot of his power armor to keep the beast's neck pinned as he slashed wildly.

"INTERLOPER IDENTIFIED. HENNARD KILL INTERLOPER FOR FATHER!" Hennard shouted, and with a burst of strength tossed Roland off him. Roland landed in a crumpled heap somewhere halfway across the room, stranded on his back as he flailed his limbs in an attempt to right himself. Institute programming didn't exactly cover landing recovery while in a power armor. Roland fumbled with the holster on his chest as Hennard slowly turned back towards Jacob, and immediately began pulling hte trigger until the chambers wer emty. Repeating the earlier events, the bullets had no effect.

--Cerebralz19:50, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// How do you go fifty miles per hour when you don't have wheels and are bi-pedal? By the way, the australian top seven (forget name) and Alfred Hardy pushed him out of a low flying vertibird once they got near Jerusalem.

Jack had finally got a chance to fire full-auto on the damn monster. Before all he could do was shoot single fire with the machine gun, his comrades getting in the way. Comrades? Starting to think like Boris... Anyway, his machine gun roared to life as it impacted Hennard. Then it immediately stopped. Out of fucking ammo already. Sighing, he looked around the room, and saw Dutches Alien Rifle lying next to Hennard. Leaping over his cover, he did a slide maneuver (Yes, I realize that what I just wrote sounded stupid), and grabbed Dutches gun. Before sprinting it as fast as he could back to the cover. "I'll give the gun back to you as soon as this is over." He didn't think Dutches son noticed.

Radiation King19:56, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// The magic of exaggeration
Weston "Henchmen" Foster20:04, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Shaking his head, due to the fact that Jack forgot that he wasd right next to him and spent .30 Cal cartdiges were now all arounsd him, Weston lifted his .30 Cal and began to fire it at the hip. Moving slowly towards Hennard, he glanced aty Sebastian binging .44 Rounds into the slide. At least he was still with them. Nodding towards Sebastians idrwection, Weston contuied on his slow walk of death. Well, Death towards ehnnard, hopefulyl.

Fireman0504

Stefanie felt a hot rage build inside her. White hot tears ran down her cheeks as she sprinted forward with a growl. Dutchie was dead. No more shades, no more jacket, no more Dtuchie. She missed him already. Sure he was Enclave, and sure he was nearly always a prick to her. There were still times though she found him backing her up, protecting her. Exactly like an older brother. That's what she'd condsidered Dutch Holmes. She leapt, using her weight to swing downward as the murderous machine gun fire paused to reload. Hennard was staggering off balance and at the moment was an easy target. Stefanie threw her weight downw, then brought everything up behind her with her Power Fist, landing an uppercut that knocked several teeth through the air. "HENNARD KILL!" the beast screamed as it swiped it's massive fists at her. She ducked twice and jumped back to avoid a downward smash from George, which was now being used as a club. She landed a sidekick to his chest which sent him slightly off balance again. She dropped to her belly as the sound of automatic fire picked up again and bright red spouts of mist hit Hennard, pushing him backwards. Stefanie rolled behind some crates and quickly scampered out of the line of fire.

KuHB1aM21:16, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Dave didn't feel like moving and running away. Ignoring Sasuke's warnings, he removed Dutch's jacket, placed it over his head, and retrieved Dutch's sunglasses, which were nearby, lying on the cold steel floor. Picking them up, Dave collapsed against the crates again, staring at Dutch's pair and Dave's own pair of shades. Sure, they were only sunglasses, but they meant much more to Dave than mere family heirlooms. Then he noticed Dutch's army backpack not two feet away. Crawling and retrieving it, he went through Dutch's old stuff, sifting past their sparring picture. What interested him more was a weapon in the bottom. It was obviously not of human design, and it glowed an eery color. Pulling the trigger, Dave jumped out of suprise when the weapon fired a horizontal laser blast that embedded itself into the wall. One thing entered Dave's head. Retribution. Pulling himself up, Dave popped from cover, eyeing his father's killer. Propping the weapon against the crate, he looked to the side at a latino man staring at him. "Are my eyes deceiving me or are you Dutch reincarnated, sonny?" Domingo said, looking at Dave's own jacket and shades. "I'm his son, numnuts." Dave said somberly, not bothering to extend a hand. Wow. Didn't think I looked that much like the old man. Maybe it's the shades and jacket... nah. Turning his attention back towards vengeance for a moment, Dave slowly pulled the trigger, firing five times, each blade slamming into Hennard and driving him back. The blades dug deep, and pinned him against the wall, one blade for each limb, the fifth shot having gone wide.

Run4urLife!21:22, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Hennard can survive this if Twentyfists so wishes

Jacob stood up slowly as first. When he had finally settled into a decent balanced position, he looked around the room. He had watched Hennard break Dutch like a match. And he knew Hennard could do the exaact same thing to him. But it didn't matter now. Jacob didn't give a fuck. This stopped now. One death was enough. One death was too many. Jacob had few friends in this world, and now he was one short. He couldn't explain, or rationalize this anger welling up in him. This need to feel Hennard's lifeblood fountain over him. This need to gut Hennard, to tear him open and splay his entrails over the dirty ground. Jacob flexed his fingers around the grip of his Okatana, and drew Dutch's katana in his left hand. He spun them both through his grip as Hennard tore himself free of the wall and turned to face him.

"This ends here monster. You'll come no further. You'll never see your father again. If I get the chance, I'll kill your father myself. And there's nothing you can do, because I'm gonna kill you. Right here, right now." Jacob snarled. His hands were shaking. His heart was pounding. He could feel every crack in the ground. He could feel the draft from the surface. He could hear everyone in the room breathing. That heightened sense of awareness, as a man faces death, one on one. He blinked slowly as Hennard began his gurgling laugh. Hennard moved forwards.

Jacob stepped back. Gone was the clunky blocking and ducking of the earlier fight. Gone was that sense of nervousness. Gone was that niggling sense of "will I make it?" Jacob was in a state of utter calm. Every movement was fluid. Every defence redirected Hennard, forcing him off balance, making him correct himself, tiring him. Every attack was landed with dazzling precision, inflicting pain, but not shortening the fight. It was torture. Vaughton was right there, not three feet away, and Hennard couldn't lay a finger on him. Belton was cumbersome, unweildy, but he couldn't use his hands, Vaughton would cut them off. Jacob sidestepped another attack, whirling his Okatana round, slicing clean through Hennard's right hamstring. Hennard was halfway through turning to face Jacob as he fell to his knees.

Jacob stabbed his Okatana through Hennard's chest, through the heart this time. Hennard dribbled blood as his vision began to blur. But then adrenaline surged through him. He gripped Vaughton's sword, holding tight. He raised Belton in the other hand, but Vaughton stepped clear of him, spinning round and slashing Dutch's katana across Hennard's neck. The blow didn't so much decapitate him as turn him into a Pez Dispensor.

Jacob stooped to Hennard's body and wrenched his Okatana free of the beast's barrel chest, as the Chimera's blood leaked out onto the floor, his hollow eyes staring into nothing. For the first time in his life, Jacob didn't stoop to close the fallen foe's eyes. Hennard killed his friend. As far as Jacob was concerned, this one deserved to stare into oblivion for all eternity.

Solbur21:29, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// A pez dispenser, huh? Deadly Little Jacob...

Strauss was two metres away from Hennard, Impact held high over his head when Jacob made his move. As much as he wanted to kill the big bastard himself after what happened to Dutch, he knew that Jacob stood a better chance against him than Strauss would. And he, if anyone, deserved the kill. If Jacob was actually born of a human woman on this earth, Dutch would have probably been his brother. Instead, he stepped backwards, retreating to cover in case the beast made one last twirl with George in any direction. As Jacob finished him, Strauss couldn't help but smile. He would have threw his arms and whooped at the top of his voice if the fight hadn't been so costly to the group.

Fireman0504

Stefanie sniffled a long sniffle as she looked down at the broken body of Dutch Holmes. Dutchie. He'd pulled her free of the Crusade, he'd become her friend. One of few in the world. Now he was no more. She looked down as blood began to seep around her feet. Turning, she looked somberly at the near-decapitated Hennard. He layed staring at the ceiling. Her gaze returned to Dutch as she sniffled again. They were no longer hunted. Not longer something's prey. But they'd lost so much. Stefanie knelt down and straightened Dutch's ruffled jacket. Her usual brightness and vigor vanishing for a second as she tended to her friend. Silently she stood up and turned away, her Power Fist hanging by her side. She sat down on a crate, and stared into oblivion, wondering what they'd do next.

KuHB1aM21:35, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Lol pez dispenser

Dave sat against the wall, dropping the alien rifle to the floor and letting it crack slightly as it hit the ground with a thud. Standing up, Dave rubbed his back, staggering over to his dad's body and scooping it up in both arms, Dutch's old backpack secured tightly on his back. He moved towards the figure who had decapitated the beast. "You must be Jacob." Dave said, noting his father's katana in the man's grip. He wasn't sure, but if Dutch's stories from his childhood were true, this was him. "I'm Dave." Dave said, still staring at the headless beast. Laying down Dutch's body, Dave took the moment to line up a field goal, aimed, and kicked Hennard's head several dozen yards into a wall on the other side of the room.

Radiation King21:51, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Err..." A voice spoke from the corner of the room.

"I hate to ruin this moment of emotionally charged tension and all, guys, but..." Roland looked up at the cieling, still attempting to right himself in the cumbersome power armor. "Is there any way that someone could lift me up here?" Domingo walked over from his cover position and hauled Roland to his feet, carefully. Roland gruffly nodded to his Hispanic counterpart before retreaving his Grease Gun and Duster from the boxes scattered around the room. Then he approached the corpse of Dutch.

He looked faithfully at his Grease Gun. The ancient weapon had served him for how long, now? Well over several years. Not once had it jammed while he was in combat, and it still shone with the same glinting colors it had shne before it was issued to him. Now it was time for the old SMG to serve with a different master. Reverently, he collapsed the stock and laid his Grease Gun alongside Dutch, along with all of his .45 Colt magazines and every box of ammo he had scrounged from the armory.

"Good luck, friend," Roland said as he removed his helmet and bowed his head in respect.

After a few moments, he looked up. "Alright, folks." Roland said simply. "Let's give the Crusade hell for Dutch. We need to go." Pulling his hatchet from Hennard's paw with a sickening splurch, Roland returned the hatchet to his belt.

Domingo had long since slung his .30-caliber and now stood alongside Roland and Stefanie, his face etched with silent mourning not entirely unlike the others'. He looked over wordlessly at Stefanie and sighed. "He was a good man," The merchant conceded, wrapping an arm around the pit fighter's shoulder and wrapping her in a bearlike hug.

KuHB1aM21:58, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Turning away from Jacob briefly, Dave turned towards the mourners. "I'm guessing you all knew Pops?" Dave said, trying to lighten the mood. It seemed as if all of these people were like friends to Dutch. If so, Dave had just discovered the impossible. Dutch with friends. Dutch had never had friends, as far as Dave had known. Then again, he was a cold-blooded killer with a sarcastic tone, and he had trained Dave to be just like him minus the super man enhancements.


Brengarrett22:07, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Sasuke looked at JAcob and Dutch, well at leasty the body of Dutch, those 2 wearn't human and Sasuke had a feeling there was more then meets the eye.

Sasuke walked to JAcob "Jacob was it, where did you learn those moves, your skills can equal to my master, my clans arts, and other tmoves from around the world, now Talk" Sasuke said trying to be a little forcefukl, of course he was asking for Trouble but for some Reason Jacob smirked at him in an almost mocking way

Run4urLife!22:10, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob looked Sasuke straight in the eyes.

"Whoever you are, you are not a friend. I have lost a friend, an ally, a brother. We can speak later, but if you try to push the subject right now, you're a dead man-Ghoul-thing." Jacob said. To emphasize his point, he aggressively wiped his Okatana and flourished it in front of Sasuke. Then he walked over to Dave

"Aye, that would be me." Jacob said to Dave, sniffing. That was a state of emotion that would leave any other man lying on the ground, screaming and crying. But that sniff, and the wipe of his nose was all Jacob could muster for his fallen ally. For his fallen friend. He wiped Dutch's katana and sheathed it. He handed it reverently to the young man and walked over to Dutch's body. Jacob crouched and wrapped Dutch's broken form in his duster. He unfurled a hood from under the collar and stretched it down over Dutch's face.

"I'm not leaving him down here. If anyone disagrees, by all means, bow your head and let me do the cutting." Jacob said, brandishing his freshly-cleaned Okatana dangrously. Jack and Sebastian looked like they might have had something to say, but Jack shrugged, and Sebastian faltered as they met Jacob's gaze. If anyone said they should leave Dutch's body down here to the Ferals, they would find themselves in a similar position.

With no one saying otherwise, Jacob lifted Dutch's body over his shoulders, holding it in place with one hand, and carrying one of his P90 M-Heavies in the other. He grunted and led the mournful group onwards towards the surface. God help any Crusaders or Legionairres who crossed their paths. God rest any who barred their way.

Jackal moved alongside, muttering a Catholic prayer for the dead. He reverently took out a set of Rosary Beads and began going over them, reciting the prayers as the group trekked to freedom, and the Horde.


Brengarrett22:17, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Sasuke felt bad, he knew that lives would be lost o nthe battle field, the moment he learn ed the ninja arts, so out of respect for the dead he mutter a prayer for him in Japanese hoping his soul will come back in the form a strong animal (He is Aniu) He then looked at Henard and was thankful that Jacob was there, and that he was able to at least blind it. HE then followed everyone out of the area, his mission was done at thise point and he needed some food, some of that Lurk meat would hit the stpot right now

Radiation King22:20, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

Roland felt hollow inside, and not the "hollow" feeling you get when you haven't eaten in a few days. The kind of empty pit in your gut you get when your friend dies next to you. His boots clomped heavily on the concrete floor of the bunker as he marched on Jacob's right side, watching as his Grease Gun swung slowly back and forth, occasionally clinking against the back of Jacob's armor. He watched Jackal rubbing his rosary beads and turned away silently, taking a long snort through his nose and clearing his sinuses before spitting on the floor of the Jerusalem bunker. Silently, he started a song.

For such a tall, skinny man with a charmingly off-kilter disposition, the leather-lunged and rough voice producing the lyrics was disconcerting, almost, but Roland didn't care. He poured his heart and soul into every word as he continued the procession up the tunnel to the surface.

Weston "Henchmen" Foster23:16, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

As for Weston, he walked alongside Dutchs son..Dave. Fitting

"Hey, buddy. Knew youre dad. Good man."

Was bassivcly all Weston could muster. He was sure that Dutch would make it. I mean, he seemed like he would. He was still there when he had taken the massive slug to the side iof his body. He rembered looking into those Sunglasses, thinking Damn...i can't die. But...now he's dead. Dead. Dead and beging Carried by Dutch. Rolan was sining but, it felt slightiy in-cync with the current events.

"Hey, Dave. You need a group to hang out with, you can roll with us for a bit. I guess."

Weston then lit a Cigarrette and slung the Combat Shotgun over his back, waitint for Dutch's son to answer.

Twentyfists23:22, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// RIP Dutch Holmes and Hennard. By the way, I'm not sure I gave permission for you people to blind Hennard before you killed him, but whatever.

Eugene Randolph glanced at Jackal. Catholic prayer indeed. For the little space of time that he'd seen Dutch in combat, Eugene would miss the man's prowess, and, as a red-blooded Englishman, he felt that a real prayer was in order. He was glad that he didn't have to fight the monster, and, for that, Eugene did something that he hadn't done for a long time. Eugene pulled out his LeMat and checked to see that it was loaded, then bowed his head and said a quick prayer to the Lord begging for the easy rest of Dutch Holmes' soul. Then, once that was done, he listened to the mournful tune that Roland keened out as they walked through the tunnels.

Run4urLife!23:48, 2 June 2009 (UTC)// Gonna move this ahead

"Well, Alfred. You went and let the Wastelanders get the upper hand." Roarke said, standing in front of Field Marshall Moore..

"I did no such thing, Nathaniel. They attacked, they failed. It was you who broke the Crusade." Moore said, defiant to the last as the Last Legion forces moved into Jerusalem, digging graves around the walls for the dead from both sides. At least they had enough respect to do that.

"Well, Alfred, we have come to an end, haven't we?" Roarke sighed, drawing his Field Ripper. "Any last words?"

"Your reign won't last, Nathaniel." Moore said.

Roarke looked at him.Then he lunged forward, swinging his Field Ripper around in a wide, roaring arc. Moore's torso fell to the ground as his legs went the other direction, bisected by the blow. Roarke straightened up, looking around as gunfire erupted outside the walls. He shouted as his soldiers turned back. Wastelanders at the walls. He heard shouts of something that sounded like "Horde". It was drowned out by the Last Legion's war-cry, "Pro Patria Mori".


Jacob and the others moved out through the main door of Jerusalem, having torn through a good seven firefights on the way up. Jerusalem had suddenly become a warzone. The Horde had arrived. But the attack was already faltering. The Horde had pushed through the breach in places, but they were being controlled and pushed back. Jacob and his compatriots moved along the side of the tower, and then out to the wall. They began trying to slink along what remained of the mighty fortifications. This was not good. Yet again, they had become caught between two massive forces, butting heads.

Radiation King23:57, 2 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Senors and senoras, it's time to go!" Domingo made a break for his tank, about five yards away. However, the route was covered heavily by snipers, and soon Domingo found himself alternating between suppressing the sharpshooters with his light .30 and sprinting towards the trenches the man's tank had formerly been contained in. Surprisingly, he made the gap to find Dave's handiwork laying everywhere. No time, no time, Domingo said as more bullets whirred past him. He quickly gathered up as much junk as he could carry and threw it into the back of the trailer, narrowly avoiding the cots and the radio equipment before he sprinted up and over the side of El Osoand dove for the cockpit. Slamming on the ignition, he smashed the T-bar forward as soon as the engine caught, and El Oso leapt across the trench, dragging its trailer by a few loose bolts. Domingo shouted from the driver's compartment as everyone climbed into the trailer, "GET THE DAMN BOLTS IN SECURELY!"

Roland, passing the connecting joint, pulled his helmet on as he worked each separate bolt tightly into the joint before making it to the trailer, where he promptly collapsed onto the ground. "everyone, get inside!" He managed to shout, crawling back towards the far end of the trailer before he ran out of steam, falling asleep on the floor of the trailer.

Run4urLife!00:27, 3 June 2009 (UTC) 

Jacob leaped into the trailer, from a surprising distance, given that he was carrying Dutch's body. He lay Dutch's body down fairly reverently, and caught Stefanie's hand as she jumped towards the trailer and narrowly missed. He dragged her in, and did likewise with Weston, who could barely make the distance after his various injuries.

Jackal dived into the trailer, narrowly missing Jacob. He sat up in the trailer, looking around as everyone else gradually piled in.

"Well, looks like we made it." Jackal sighed, then, looking at Dutch's body, he added mournfully,"Almost."

Jackal pulled the duster hood over Dutch's face again. In spite of only knowing him for a brief time, Dutch had made a massive impression on Jackal. And now Jackal couldn't bring himself to look at his dead friend's face. He swallowed hard, and looked across the trailer at Eugene.

"Well, looks like we're gonna have to learn to work together. That or . . . well, looks like we'll need to learn." Jackal said, realising that joking about killing Eugene was more than inappropriate.

Radiation King00:33, 3 June 2009 (UTC) 

"Yeah," Roland said from his corner of the trailer. He appeared to be in a trance, his upper body free of power armor with his lower bbody untouched. His face was dazed. "And our actions here will be remembered for centuries." He cleared his throat a bit, coughed up a little blood. His ribs were still damaged, and it looks like there was a slight amount of internal bleeding as well. "Well, actions doesn't sound like the right word. Maybe sins? Yeah, all our sins'll be remembered."

(HAW! DELIVERED THE TAGLINE!)

Run4urLife!00:43, 3 June 2009 (UTC)// Skip ahead an hour

Jacob had finished digging the grave. He looked over at Dave, who had finished his own half of the hole. Jacob climbed out and helped Dave lay his father to rest. Jacob stood up, taking a handful of soil and scattering it over Dutch's body, no longer wrapped in his duster, but bearing one of his revolvers.

"Sleep well, brother. May you be welcomed at the table of your ancestors." Jacob sighed, before returning to the circle.

"I hope we meet again some day, in more peaceful times. Find peace, Dutch." Jackal sighed as he stepped forward and scattered another handful of soil over Dutch's body.

Sasuke stood back from the group. He didn't know Dutch. He had only seen him dead. He leaned on a nearby boulder, his arms folded. He would let them have their moment, give it a little time, and then pump this Jacob Vaughton for some knowledge on where he learned his skills.

(give your final words to Dutch, and then we can finish this)

Radiation King00:54, 3 June 2009 (UTC) 

Roland stood at the edge of Dutch's grave, using a crutch to support himself. As fate would have it, Roland had suffered from five fractured ribs, a fractured tibia, broken foot and two sprained ankles from the fight. It was a miracle he was still standing, let alone coherent enough to talk, doped up on meds as he was. He took one last long look at Dutch with his faithful Grease Gun. It had served him through every conflict for over ten years, beaten Sweepers, Biosoldiers, Enclave and Crusade troopers and wild beasts from Connecticut to California.

"Take good care of that gun, Dutch. If you do I'll be taking it back when I meet you in hell. If you don't, I'll be marching down there and taking it back." Then, looking upon the poor soldier's face, he turned and gimped it back to the trailer. Domingo was sitting on the bumper, cradling his face in his arms. Not crying, necessarily, but just emotional.

The merchant looked out over the horizon. The setting sun cast a bright flame orange over the desert wastes, giving everything an auburn-ish glow. It heralded that he had survived another day, but the feeling was bittersweet at best. One of his friends and one of the group's best warriors had been killed fighting a monstrosity, a monstrosity that had been spawned by the twisted minds of man. Today gave him more of a reason to hate the enclave than ever.

Yes, it would be a long day tomorrow.

Solbur01:00, 3 June 2009 (UTC) 

Strauss swallowed and pulled off his helmet, leaving Impact propped against a nearby rock as he bent down and scooped up a handful of soil in his gloved hand. He sighed - it would have been nice to have something meaningful of his to leave in Dutch's grave. Either out of selfishness or a genuine need for them, he couldn't give anything. Then he had an idea. He slipped his hand under a damaged ceramic plate he'd attached to his Power Armor, and with a mighty, servo-enhanced yank, he pulled it free from the main chestplate. It was originally from an Advanced Power Armor MKII suit he'd scavenged. It had a hole in the middle and a crack running down it. This had been the plate that had taken the CCI sniper's poorly aimed shot when he was inadvertedly drawing fire away from the recently deceased blind man as he tried to finish off the bastards. He looked at it and smiled slightly. It'd bought Dutch possibly vital time. Careful to not put it in the soil Jacob and Jackal had deposited, he bent down over the grave and lowered it in, placing it neatly over Dutch's chest. At least it was something. He clenched his now-free hand into a fist and held it over his chest, his vision becoming bleary as his tear ducts caught up with the fact a friend of his was dead.

"I h-hope that'll protect you as it protected me. Heh... I guess I'll see you when I get there, huh, Dutch?" Strauss managed to say as he emptied his hand of soil into the grave. With that done, he took exhaled heavily and spoke again. "Rest easy, my friend."

He took a step back and bowed his head in respect.

KuHB1aM02:09, 3 June 2009 (UTC) 

Dave had never seen so many people like his father. Dutch, as Dave had known him, was cold, unfeeling, and tough, with a hint of sarcasm and humor in his voice every now and then. To these people, it was like they were Dutch's own children. Taking his trench knife, Dave stepped towards his father's grave, dropping on one knee. Making a Sign of the Cross, Dave jammed the trench knife at the head of the grave, since there was no tombstone, and twisted it, securing it with rocks to mark his grave until scavengers would most likely desecrate it. Dave also placed Dutch's pair of sunglasses on the trench knife embedded in the grave, noting how one lense was gone and the other was cracked, caked in blood. "Rest in piece, Pops." Dave said, avoiding teary eyes with his own pair of shades. Jacob patted him on the shoulder as he stood up. "Dutch was right. You are a chip off the old block." Jacob said in a light hearted manner. "Too much so, I think." Dave said. He looked at some of the group as they stared at him back. It was true they bared similarities, but only in choice of clothing and fighting style. Still, Dave's shades and jacket were a little too much for some of the crew. "So Princess had a son?" One of them spoke up. It was a hooded man, walking straight up to Dave. "Yeah. And Princess' son could whup your ass, cupcake, so watch yourself." Dave said, patting the man named Sebastian on the shoulder with his hand. The older man was entertaining. Dave could find himself fitting in just fine.

Twentyfists02:10, 3 June 2009 (UTC) 

Eugene bowed his head. He didn't really know Dutch. He'd only fought alongside the mighty warrior, albeit briefly. But that was enough, wasn't it? Even though they hadn't been able to become real friends, Eugene'd still remember the strength Dutch brought to combat and the inspiration he could instill in the other members of the group, including, although Eugene was loathe to admit it, himself. He said a simple prayer for the man, then moved over to where Sasuke was. Eugene had a little bit of advice to give to the fellow Rapture assassin.

"Sasuke, my good man," he whisper, "if you're going to talk to the large gentleman over there," he pointed towards Jacob, "be warned that the man is extremely deadly and, in my opinion, a tad bit teperamental and unstable."

Fireman0504

Stefanie knelt down on both knees beside the grave. Dutch was a man she considered her hero. He'd saved her from being executed by the Crusade and was the man to pull her along and out of Jersualem. He'd been through so much and despite his abruptness, bluntness, and snippiness toward her, things she reflected all too well, he'd been like a big brother to her. The former slave pit fighter shed a single tear as she slid her Power Fist free of her right hand. Aranging the fingers into a fist, she laid it on top of the chest plate, forming some type of salute she'd seen done before. "G-g-goodbye Dutchie," she said softly, "I'll s-s-see you later on ok-k-kay? We're all destined ta follow ya." She stood back up and backed away from the grave, sitting on, then sliding down in front of a boulder as she watched the others say their goodbyes to "Dutchie."


Vegas adict19:58, 3 June 2009 (UTC)// I know this rp is finished i just wanted a goodbye post to give dutch

Alexis stood in front of dutch's grave.He hadn't known the man for long but he felt in the short time he had he owed dutch his life several times over.Alexis took out his prised magnum the gun had been a gift from his father on his deathbed and alexis felt it was time to let it go.He placed the magnum and its shells in a symbolic representaion of the american flag.From what he knew of dutch he would have apreciated the gesture.

THE END..until All My Sins Remembered!

Move on to Forum:Be All My Sins Remember'd

Advertisement